home *** CD-ROM | disk | FTP | other *** search
Text File | 1994-03-01 | 653.4 KB | 15,436 lines |
- **Welcome To The World of Free Plain Vanilla Electronic Texts**
-
- **Etexts Readable By Both Humans and By Computers, Since 1971**
-
- *These Etexts Prepared By Hundreds of Volunteers and Donations*
-
- Information on contacting Project Gutenberg to get Etexts, and
- further information is included below. We need your donations.
-
-
- *The Project Gutenberg Etext of A Connecticut Yankee, by Twain*
- ******This file should be named yanke10.txt or yanke10.zip*****
-
- Corrected EDITIONS of our etexts get a new NUMBER, yanke11.txt
- VERSIONS based on separate sources get new LETTER, yanke10a.txt
-
-
- October, 1993 [Etext #85] Originally a Wiretap Etext Edition
- Not one character of this book has been changed. If you would
- be interested in creating a new edition of this Etext: please
- contact Project Gutenberg.
-
- Information about Project Gutenberg (one page)
-
- We produce about two million dollars for each hour we work. The
- fifty hours is one conservative estimate for how long it we take
- to get any etext selected, entered, proofread, edited, copyright
- searched and analyzed, the copyright letters written, etc. This
- projected audience is one hundred million readers. If our value
- per text is nominally estimated at one dollar, then we produce 2
- million dollars per hour this year we will have to do four text
- files per month: thus upping our productivity from one million.
- The Goal of Project Gutenberg is to Give Away One Trillion Etext
- Files by the December 31, 2001. [10,000 x 100,000,000=Trillion]
- This is ten thousand titles each to one hundred million readers,
- which is 10% of the expected number of computer users by the end
- of the year 2001.
-
- We need your donations more than ever!
-
- All donations should be made to "Project Gutenberg/IBC", and are
- tax deductible to the extent allowable by law ("IBC" is Illinois
- Benedictine College). (Subscriptions to our paper newsletter go
- to IBC, too)
-
- For these and other matters, please mail to:
-
- Project Gutenberg
- P. O. Box 2782
- Champaign, IL 61825
-
- When all other email fails try our Michael S. Hart, Executive
- Director:
- hart@vmd.cso.uiuc.edu (internet) hart@uiucvmd (bitnet)
-
- We would prefer to send you this information by email
- (Internet, Bitnet, Compuserve, ATTMAIL or MCImail).
-
- ******
- If you have an FTP program (or emulator), please
- FTP directly to the Project Gutenberg archives:
- [Mac users, do NOT point and click. . .type]
-
- ftp mrcnext.cso.uiuc.edu
- login: anonymous
- password: your@login
- cd etext/etext91
- or cd etext92
- or cd etext93 [for new books] [now also in cd etext/etext93]
- or cd etext/articles [get suggest gut for more information]
- dir [to see files]
- get or mget [to get files. . .set bin for zip files]
- GET 0INDEX.GUT
- for a list of books
- and
- GET NEW GUT for general information
- and
- MGET GUT* for newsletters.
-
- **Information prepared by the Project Gutenberg legal advisor**
- (Three Pages)
-
-
- ***START**THE SMALL PRINT!**FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS**START***
- Why is this "Small Print!" statement here? You know: lawyers.
- They tell us you might sue us if there is something wrong with
- your copy of this etext, even if you got it for free from
- someone other than us, and even if what's wrong is not our
- fault. So, among other things, this "Small Print!" statement
- disclaims most of our liability to you. It also tells you how
- you can distribute copies of this etext if you want to.
-
- *BEFORE!* YOU USE OR READ THIS ETEXT
- By using or reading any part of this PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
- etext, you indicate that you understand, agree to and accept
- this "Small Print!" statement. If you do not, you can receive
- a refund of the money (if any) you paid for this etext by
- sending a request within 30 days of receiving it to the person
- you got it from. If you received this etext on a physical
- medium (such as a disk), you must return it with your request.
-
- ABOUT PROJECT GUTENBERG-TM ETEXTS
- This PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext, like most PROJECT GUTENBERG-
- tm etexts, is a "public domain" work distributed by Professor
- Michael S. Hart through the Project Gutenberg Association at
- Illinois Benedictine College (the "Project"). Among other
- things, this means that no one owns a United States copyright
- on or for this work, so the Project (and you!) can copy and
- distribute it in the United States without permission and
- without paying copyright royalties. Special rules, set forth
- below, apply if you wish to copy and distribute this etext
- under the Project's "PROJECT GUTENBERG" trademark.
-
- To create these etexts, the Project expends considerable
- efforts to identify, transcribe and proofread public domain
- works. Despite these efforts, the Project's etexts and any
- medium they may be on may contain "Defects". Among other
- things, Defects may take the form of incomplete, inaccurate or
- corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
- intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged
- disk or other etext medium, a computer virus, or computer
- codes that damage or cannot be read by your equipment.
-
- LIMTED WARRANTY; DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES
- But for the "Right of Replacement or Refund" described below,
- [1] the Project (and any other party you may receive this
- etext from as a PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm etext) disclaims all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including
- legal fees, and [2] YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE OR
- UNDER STRICT LIABILITY, OR FOR BREACH OF WARRANTY OR CONTRACT,
- INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE
- OR INCIDENTAL DAMAGES, EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE
- POSSIBILITY OF SUCH DAMAGES.
-
- If you discover a Defect in this etext within 90 days of
- receiving it, you can receive a refund of the money (if any)
- you paid for it by sending an explanatory note within that
- time to the person you received it from. If you received it
- on a physical medium, you must return it with your note, and
- such person may choose to alternatively give you a replacement
- copy. If you received it electronically, such person may
- choose to alternatively give you a second opportunity to
- receive it electronically.
-
- THIS ETEXT IS OTHERWISE PROVIDED TO YOU "AS-IS". NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, ARE MADE TO YOU AS
- TO THE ETEXT OR ANY MEDIUM IT MAY BE ON, INCLUDING BUT NOT
- LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR A
- PARTICULAR PURPOSE.
-
- Some states do not allow disclaimers of implied warranties or
- the exclusion or limitation of consequential damages, so the
- above disclaimers and exclusions may not apply to you, and you
- may have other legal rights.
-
- INDEMNITY
- You will indemnify and hold the Project, its directors,
- officers, members and agents harmless from all liability, cost
- and expense, including legal fees, that arise directly or
- indirectly from any of the following that you do or cause:
- [1] distribution of this etext, [2] alteration, modification,
- or addition to the etext, or [3] any Defect.
-
- DISTRIBUTION UNDER "PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm"
- You may distribute copies of this etext electronically, or by
- disk, book or any other medium if you either delete this
- "Small Print!" and all other references to Project Gutenberg,
- or:
-
- [1] Only give exact copies of it. Among other things, this
- requires that you do not remove, alter or modify the
- etext or this "small print!" statement. You may however,
- if you wish, distribute this etext in machine readable
- binary, compressed, mark-up, or proprietary form,
- including any form resulting from conversion by word pro-
- cessing or hypertext software, but only so long as
- *EITHER*:
-
- [*] The etext, when displayed, is clearly readable, and
- does *not* contain characters other than those
- intended by the author of the work, although tilde
- (~), asterisk (*) and underline (_) characters may
- be used to convey punctuation intended by the
- author, and additional characters may be used to
- indicate hypertext links; OR
-
- [*] The etext may be readily converted by the reader at
- no expense into plain ASCII, EBCDIC or equivalent
- form by the program that displays the etext (as is
- the case, for instance, with most word processors);
- OR
-
- [*] You provide, or agree to also provide on request at
- no additional cost, fee or expense, a copy of the
- etext in its original plain ASCII form (or in EBCDIC
- or other equivalent proprietary form).
-
- [2] Honor the etext refund and replacement provisions of this
- "Small Print!" statement.
-
- [3] Pay a trademark license fee to the Project of 20% of the
- net profits you derive calculated using the method you
- already use to calculate your applicable taxes. If you
- don't derive profits, no royalty is due. Royalties are
- payable to "Project Gutenberg Association / Illinois
- Benedictine College" within the 60 days following each
- date you prepare (or were legally required to prepare)
- your annual (or equivalent periodic) tax return.
-
- WHAT IF YOU *WANT* TO SEND MONEY EVEN IF YOU DON'T HAVE TO?
- The Project gratefully accepts contributions in money, time,
- scanning machines, OCR software, public domain etexts, royalty
- free copyright licenses, and every other sort of contribution
- you can think of. Money should be paid to "Project Gutenberg
- Association / Illinois Benedictine College".
-
- This "Small Print!" by Charles B. Kramer, Attorney
- Internet (72600.2026@compuserve.com); TEL: (212-254-5093)
- *END*THE SMALL PRINT! FOR PUBLIC DOMAIN ETEXTS*Ver.04.29.93*END*
-
-
- The INTERNET WIRETAP First Electronic Edition of
-
- A CONNECTICUT YANKEE IN KING ARTHUR'S COURT
-
- by
-
- MARK TWAIN
- (Samuel L. Clemens)
-
- This text is in the PUBLIC DOMAIN.
-
- Electronic Edition by <dell@wiretap.spies.com>
- Released to the public June 1993
-
-
-
- A CONNECTICUT YANKEE IN KING ARTHUR'S COURT
-
- by
-
- MARK TWAIN
- (Samuel L. Clemens)
-
- PREFACE
-
- THE ungentle laws and customs touched upon in
- this tale are historical, and the episodes which are
- used to illustrate them are also historical. It is
- not pretended that these laws and customs existed in
- England in the sixth century; no, it is only pretended
- that inasmuch as they existed in the English and other
- civilizations of far later times, it is safe to consider that
- it is no libel upon the sixth century to suppose them to
- have been in practice in that day also. One is quite
- justified in inferring that whatever one of these laws or
- customs was lacking in that remote time, its place was
- competently filled by a worse one.
-
- The question as to whether there is such a thing as
- divine right of kings is not settled in this book. It
- was found too difficult. That the executive head of a
- nation should be a person of lofty character and
- extraordinary ability, was manifest and indisputable;
- that none but the Deity could select that head unerr-
- ingly, was also manifest and indisputable; that the
- Deity ought to make that selection, then, was likewise
- manifest and indisputable; consequently, that He does
- make it, as claimed, was an unavoidable deduction. I
- mean, until the author of this book encountered the
- Pompadour, and Lady Castlemaine, and some other
- executive heads of that kind; these were found so
- difficult to work into the scheme, that it was judged
- better to take the other tack in this book (which must
- be issued this fall), and then go into training and
- settle the question in another book. It is, of course,
- a thing which ought to be settled, and I am not going
- to have anything particular to do next winter anyway.
-
- MARK TWAIN.
-
-
- A CONNECTICUT YANKEE IN KING
- ARTHUR'S COURT
-
-
- A WORD OF EXPLANATION
-
- IT was in Warwick Castle that I came across the
- curious stranger whom I am going to talk about.
- He attracted me by three things: his candid simplicity,
- his marvelous familiarity with ancient armor, and the
- restfulness of his company -- for he did all the talking.
- We fell together, as modest people will, in the tail of
- the herd that was being shown through, and he at once
- began to say things which interested me. As he
- talked along, softly, pleasantly, flowingly, he seemed
- to drift away imperceptibly out of this world and time,
- and into some remote era and old forgotten country;
- and so he gradually wove such a spell about me that I
- seemed to move among the specters and shadows and
- dust and mold of a gray antiquity, holding speech with
- a relic of it! Exactly as I would speak of my nearest
- personal friends or enemies, or my most familiar
- neighbors, he spoke of Sir Bedivere, Sir Bors de
- Ganis, Sir Launcelot of the Lake, Sir Galahad, and all
- the other great names of the Table Round -- and how
- old, old, unspeakably old and faded and dry and
- musty and ancient he came to look as he went on!
- Presently he turned to me and said, just as one might
- speak of the weather, or any other common matter --
-
- "You know about transmigration of souls; do you
- know about transposition of epochs -- and bodies?"
-
- I said I had not heard of it. He was so little inter-
- ested -- just as when people speak of the weather --
- that he did not notice whether I made him any answer
- or not. There was half a moment of silence, imme-
- diately interrupted by the droning voice of the salaried
- cicerone:
-
- "Ancient hauberk, date of the sixth century, time
- of King Arthur and the Round Table; said to have
- belonged to the knight Sir Sagramor le Desirous; ob-
- serve the round hole through the chain-mail in the left
- breast; can't be accounted for; supposed to have been
- done with a bullet since invention of firearms -- per-
- haps maliciously by Cromwell's soldiers."
-
- My acquaintance smiled -- not a modern smile, but
- one that must have gone out of general use many, many
- centuries ago -- and muttered apparently to himself:
-
- "Wit ye well, I SAW IT DONE." Then, after a pause,
- added: "I did it myself."
-
- By the time I had recovered from the electric sur-
- prise of this remark, he was gone.
-
- All that evening I sat by my fire at the Warwick
- Arms, steeped in a dream of the olden time, while the
- rain beat upon the windows, and the wind roared about
- the eaves and corners. From time to time I dipped
- into old Sir Thomas Malory's enchanting book, and
- fed at its rich feast of prodigies and adventures,
- breathed in the fragrance of its obsolete names, and
- dreamed again. Midnight being come at length, I read
- another tale, for a nightcap -- this which here follows,
- to wit:
-
- HOW SIR LAUNCELOT SLEW TWO GIANTS, AND MADE A
- CASTLE FREE
-
- Anon withal came there upon him two great giants,
- well armed, all save the heads, with two horrible
- clubs in their hands. Sir Launcelot put his shield
- afore him, and put the stroke away of the one
- giant, and with his sword he clave his head asunder.
- When his fellow saw that, he ran away as he were
- wood [* demented], for fear of the horrible strokes,
- and Sir Launcelot after him with all his might,
- and smote him on the shoulder, and clave him to
- the middle. Then Sir Launcelot went into the hall,
- and there came afore him three score ladies and
- damsels, and all kneeled unto him, and thanked
- God and him of their deliverance. For, sir, said
- they, the most part of us have been here this
- seven year their prisoners, and we have worked all
- manner of silk works for our meat, and we are all
- great gentle-women born, and blessed be the time,
- knight, that ever thou wert born;for thou hast
- done the most worship that ever did knight in the
- world, that will we bear record, and we all pray
- you to tell us your name, that we may tell our
- friends who delivered us out of prison. Fair
- damsels, he said, my name is Sir Launcelot du
- Lake. And so he departed from them and betaught
- them unto God. And then he mounted upon his
- horse, and rode into many strange and wild
- countries, and through many waters and valleys,
- and evil was he lodged. And at the last by
- fortune him happened against a night to come to
- a fair courtilage, and therein he found an old
- gentle-woman that lodged him with a good-will,
- and there he had good cheer for him and his horse.
- And when time was, his host brought him into a
- fair garret over the gate to his bed. There
- Sir Launcelot unarmed him, and set his harness
- by him, and went to bed, and anon he fell on
- sleep. So, soon after there came one on
- horseback, and knocked at the gate in great
- haste. And when Sir Launcelot heard this he rose
- up, and looked out at the window, and saw by the
- moonlight three knights come riding after that
- one man, and all three lashed on him at once
- with swords, and that one knight turned on them
- knightly again and defended him. Truly, said
- Sir Launcelot, yonder one knight shall I help,
- for it were shame for me to see three knights
- on one, and if he be slain I am partner of his
- death. And therewith he took his harness and
- went out at a window by a sheet down to the four
- knights, and then Sir Launcelot said on high,
- Turn you knights unto me, and leave your
- fighting with that knight. And then they all
- three left Sir Kay, and turned unto Sir Launcelot,
- and there began great battle, for they alight
- all three, and strake many strokes at Sir
- Launcelot, and assailed him on every side. Then
- Sir Kay dressed him for to have holpen Sir
- Launcelot. Nay, sir, said he, I will none of
- your help, therefore as ye will have my help
- let me alone with them. Sir Kay for the pleasure
- of the knight suffered him for to do his will,
- and so stood aside. And then anon within six
- strokes Sir Launcelot had stricken them to the
- earth.
-
- And then they all three cried, Sir Knight, we
- yield us unto you as man of might matchless. As
- to that, said Sir Launcelot, I will not take
- your yielding unto me, but so that ye yield
- you unto Sir Kay the seneschal, on that covenant
- I will save your lives and else not. Fair knight,
- said they, that were we loath to do; for as for
- Sir Kay we chased him hither, and had overcome
- him had ye not been; therefore, to yield us unto
- him it were no reason. Well, as to that, said
- Sir Launcelot, advise you well, for ye may
- choose whether ye will die or live, for an ye be
- yielden, it shall be unto Sir Kay. Fair knight,
- then they said, in saving our lives we will do
- as thou commandest us. Then shall ye, said Sir
- Launcelot, on Whitsunday next coming go unto the
- court of King Arthur, and there shall ye yield
- you unto Queen Guenever, and put you all three
- in her grace and mercy, and say that Sir Kay
- sent you thither to be her prisoners. On the morn
- Sir Launcelot arose early, and left Sir Kay
- sleeping; and Sir Launcelot took Sir Kay's armor
- and his shield and armed him, and so he went to
- the stable and took his horse, and took his leave
- of his host, and so he departed. Then soon after
- arose Sir Kay and missed Sir Launcelot; and
- then he espied that he had his armor and his
- horse. Now by my faith I know well that he will
- grieve some of the court of King Arthur; for on
- him knights will be bold, and deem that it is I,
- and that will beguile them; and because of his
- armor and shield I am sure I shall ride in peace.
- And then soon after departed Sir Kay, and
- thanked his host.
-
- As I laid the book down there was a knock at the
- door, and my stranger came in. I gave him a pipe
- and a chair, and made him welcome. I also comforted
- him with a hot Scotch whisky; gave him another one;
- then still another -- hoping always for his story. After
- a fourth persuader, he drifted into it himself, in a quite
- simple and natural way:
-
-
- THE STRANGER'S HISTORY
-
- I am an American. I was born and reared in Hart-
- ford, in the State of Connecticut -- anyway, just over
- the river, in the country. So I am a Yankee of the
- Yankees -- and practical; yes, and nearly barren of
- sentiment, I suppose -- or poetry, in other words. My
- father was a blacksmith, my uncle was a horse doctor,
- and I was both, along at first. Then I went over to
- the great arms factory and learned my real trade;
- learned all there was to it; learned to make every-
- thing: guns, revolvers, cannon, boilers, engines, all
- sorts of labor-saving machinery. Why, I could make
- anything a body wanted -- anything in the world, it
- didn't make any difference what; and if there wasn't
- any quick new-fangled way to make a thing, I could
- invent one -- and do it as easy as rolling off a log. I
- became head superintendent; had a couple of thou-
- sand men under me.
-
- Well, a man like that is a man that is full of fight --
- that goes without saying. With a couple of thousand
- rough men under one, one has plenty of that sort of
- amusement. I had, anyway. At last I met my match,
- and I got my dose. It was during a misunderstanding
- conducted with crowbars with a fellow we used to call
- Hercules. He laid me out with a crusher alongside
- the head that made everything crack, and seemed to
- spring every joint in my skull and made it overlap its
- neighbor. Then the world went out in darkness, and
- I didn't feel anything more, and didn't know anything
- at all -- at least for a while.
-
- When I came to again, I was sitting under an oak
- tree, on the grass, with a whole beautiful and broad
- country landscape all to myself -- nearly. Not en-
- tirely; for there was a fellow on a horse, looking down
- at me -- a fellow fresh out of a picture-book. He was
- in old-time iron armor from head to heel, with a
- helmet on his head the shape of a nail-keg with slits
- in it; and he had a shield, and a sword, and a pro-
- digious spear; and his horse had armor on, too, and a
- steel horn projecting from his forehead, and gorgeous
- red and green silk trappings that hung down all around
- him like a bedquilt, nearly to the ground.
-
- "Fair sir, will ye just?" said this fellow.
-
- "Will I which?"
-
- "Will ye try a passage of arms for land or lady or
- for --"
-
- "What are you giving me?" I said. "Get along
- back to your circus, or I'll report you."
-
- Now what does this man do but fall back a couple
- of hundred yards and then come rushing at me as hard
- as he could tear, with his nail-keg bent down nearly to
- his horse's neck and his long spear pointed straight
- ahead. I saw he meant business, so I was up the tree
- when he arrived.
-
- He allowed that I was his property, the captive of
- his spear. There was argument on his side -- and the
- bulk of the advantage -- so I judged it best to humor
- him. We fixed up an agreement whereby I was to go
- with him and he was not to hurt me. I came down,
- and we started away, I walking by the side of his
- horse. We marched comfortably along, through glades
- and over brooks which I could not remember to have
- seen before -- which puzzled me and made me wonder
- -- and yet we did not come to any circus or sign of
- a circus. So I gave up the idea of a circus, and con-
- cluded he was from an asylum. But we never came to
- an asylum -- so I was up a stump, as you may say. I
- asked him how far we were from Hartford. He said
- he had never heard of the place; which I took to be a
- lie, but allowed it to go at that. At the end of an
- hour we saw a far-away town sleeping in a valley by a
- winding river; and beyond it on a hill, a vast gray
- fortress, with towers and turrets, the first I had ever
- seen out of a picture.
-
- "Bridgeport?" said I, pointing.
-
- "Camelot," said he.
-
- My stranger had been showing signs of sleepiness.
- He caught himself nodding, now, and smiled one of
- those pathetic, obsolete smiles of his, and said:
-
- "I find I can't go on; but come with me, I've got
- it all written out, and you can read it if you like."
-
- In his chamber, he said: "First, I kept a journal;
- then by and by, after years, I took the journal and
- turned it into a book. How long ago that was!"
-
- He handed me his manuscript, and pointed out the
- place where I should begin:
-
- "Begin here -- I've already told you what goes be-
- fore." He was steeped in drowsiness by this time.
- As I went out at his door I heard him murmur sleep-
- ily: "Give you good den, fair sir."
-
- I sat down by my fire and examined my treasure.
- The first part of it -- the great bulk of it -- was parch-
- ment, and yellow with age. I scanned a leaf particu-
- larly and saw that it was a palimpsest. Under the old
- dim writing of the Yankee historian appeared traces of
- a penmanship which was older and dimmer still --
- Latin words and sentences: fragments from old monk-
- ish legends, evidently. I turned to the place indicated
- by my stranger and began to read -- as follows:
-
-
-
- THE TALE OF THE LOST LAND.
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
- CAMELOT
-
- "CAMELOT -- Camelot," said I to myself. "I
- don't seem to remember hearing of it before.
- Name of the asylum, likely."
-
- It was a soft, reposeful summer landscape, as lovely
- as a dream, and as lonesome as Sunday. The air was
- full of the smell of flowers, and the buzzing of insects,
- and the twittering of birds, and there were no people,
- no wagons, there was no stir of life, nothing going on.
- The road was mainly a winding path with hoof-prints
- in it, and now and then a faint trace of wheels on
- either side in the grass -- wheels that apparently had a
- tire as broad as one's hand.
-
- Presently a fair slip of a girl, about ten years old,
- with a cataract of golden hair streaming down over her
- shoulders, came along. Around her head she wore a
- hoop of flame-red poppies. It was as sweet an outfit
- as ever I saw, what there was of it. She walked indo-
- lently along, with a mind at rest, its peace reflected in
- her innocent face. The circus man paid no attention
- to her; didn't even seem to see her. And she -- she
- was no more startled at his fantastic make-up than if
- she was used to his like every day of her life. She
- was going by as indifferently as she might have gone
- by a couple of cows; but when she happened to notice
- me, THEN there was a change! Up went her hands,
- and she was turned to stone; her mouth dropped
- open, her eyes stared wide and timorously, she was
- the picture of astonished curiosity touched with fear.
- And there she stood gazing, in a sort of stupefied
- fascination, till we turned a corner of the wood and
- were lost to her view. That she should be startled at
- me instead of at the other man, was too many for me;
- I couldn't make head or tail of it . And that she
- should seem to consider me a spectacle, and totally
- overlook her own merits in that respect, was another
- puzzling thing, and a display of magnanimity, too,
- that was surprising in one so young. There was food
- for thought here. I moved along as one in a dream.
-
- As we approached the town, signs of life began to
- appear. At intervals we passed a wretched cabin, with
- a thatched roof, and about it small fields and garden
- patches in an indifferent state of cultivation. There
- were people, too; brawny men, with long, coarse, un-
- combed hair that hung down over their faces and made
- them look like animals. They and the women, as a
- rule, wore a coarse tow-linen robe that came well below
- the knee, and a rude sort of sandal, and many wore
- an iron collar. The small boys and girls were always
- naked; but nobody seemed to know it. All of these
- people stared at me, talked about me, ran into the huts
- and fetched out their families to gape at me; but no-
- body ever noticed that other fellow, except to make
- him humble salutation and get no response for their
- pains.
-
- In the town were some substantial windowless houses
- of stone scattered among a wilderness of thatched
- cabins; the streets were mere crooked alleys, and un-
- paved; troops of dogs and nude children played in the
- sun and made life and noise; hogs roamed and rooted
- contentedly about, and one of them lay in a reeking
- wallow in the middle of the main thoroughfare and
- suckled her family. Presently there was a distant blare
- of military music; it came nearer, still nearer, and
- soon a noble cavalcade wound into view, glorious with
- plumed helmets and flashing mail and flaunting banners
- and rich doublets and horse-cloths and gilded spear-
- heads; and through the muck and swine, and naked
- brats, and joyous dogs, and shabby huts, it took its
- gallant way, and in its wake we followed. Followed
- through one winding alley and then another, -- and
- climbing, always climbing -- till at last we gained the
- breezy height where the huge castle stood. There was
- an exchange of bugle blasts; then a parley from the
- walls, where men-at-arms, in hauberk and morion,
- marched back and forth with halberd at shoulder
- under flapping banners with the rude figure of a dragon
- displayed upon them; and then the great gates were
- flung open, the drawbridge was lowered, and the head
- of the cavalcade swept forward under the frowning
- arches; and we, following, soon found ourselves in a
- great paved court, with towers and turrets stretching
- up into the blue air on all the four sides; and all about
- us.the dismount was going on, and much greeting and
- ceremony, and running to and fro, and a gay display
- of moving and intermingling colors, and an altogether
- pleasant stir and noise and confusion.
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
- KING ARTHUR'S COURT
-
- THE moment I got a chance I slipped aside privately
- and touched an ancient common looking man on
- the shoulder and said, in an insinuating, confidential
- way:
-
- "Friend, do me a kindness. Do you belong to the
- asylum, or are you just on a visit or something
- like that?"
-
- He looked me over stupidly, and said:
-
- "Marry, fair sir, me seemeth --"
-
- "That will do," I said; "I reckon you are a
- patient."
-
- I moved away, cogitating, and at the same time
- keeping an eye out for any chance passenger in his
- right mind that might come along and give me some
- light. I judged I had found one, presently; so I
- drew him aside and said in his ear:
-
- "If I could see the head keeper a minute -- only
- just a minute --"
-
- "Prithee do not let me."
-
- "Let you WHAT?"
-
- "HINDER me, then, if the word please thee better.
- Then he went on to say he was an under-cook and
- could not stop to gossip, though he would like it
- another time; for it would comfort his very liver to
- know where I got my clothes. As he started away he
- pointed and said yonder was one who was idle enough
- for my purpose, and was seeking me besides, no
- doubt. This was an airy slim boy in shrimp-colored
- tights that made him look like a forked carrot, the
- rest of his gear was blue silk and dainty laces and
- ruffles; and he had long yellow curls, and wore a
- plumed pink satin cap tilted complacently over his
- ear. By his look, he was good-natured; by his gait,
- he was satisfied with himself. He was pretty enough
- to frame. He arrived, looked me over with a smiling
- and impudent curiosity; said he had come for me, and
- informed me that he was a page.
-
- "Go 'long," I said; "you ain't more than a para-
- graph."
-
- It was pretty severe, but I was nettled. However,
- it never phazed him; he didn't appear to know he was
- hurt. He began to talk and laugh, in happy, thought-
- less, boyish fashion, as we walked along, and made
- himself old friends with me at once; asked me all sorts
- of questions about myself and about my clothes, but
- never waited for an answer -- always chattered straight
- ahead, as if he didn't know he had asked a question
- and wasn't expecting any reply, until at last he hap-
- pened to mention that he was born in the beginning of
- the year 513.
-
- It made the cold chills creep over me! I stopped
- and said, a little faintly:
-
- "Maybe I didn't hear you just right. Say it again
- -- and say it slow. What year was it?"
-
- "513."
-
- "513! You don't look it! Come, my boy, I am
- a stranger and friendless; be honest and honorable
- with me. Are you in your right mind?"
-
- He said he was.
-
- "Are these other people in their right minds?"
-
- He said they were.
-
- "And this isn't an asylum? I mean, it isn't a place
- where they cure crazy people?"
-
- He said it wasn't.
-
- "Well, then," I said, "either I am a lunatic, or
- something just as awful has happened. Now tell me,
- honest and true, where am I?"
-
- "IN KING ARTHUR'S COURT."
-
- I waited a minute, to let that idea shudder its way
- home, and then said:
-
- "And according to your notions, what year is it now?"
-
- "528 -- nineteenth of June."
-
- I felt a mournful sinking at the heart, and muttered:
- "I shall never see my friends again -- never, never
- again. They will not be born for more than thirteen
- hundred years yet."
-
- I seemed to believe the boy, I didn't know why.
- SOMETHING in me seemed to believe him -- my con-
- sciousness, as you may say; but my reason didn't.
- My reason straightway began to clamor; that was
- natural. I didn't know how to go about satisfying it,
- because I knew that the testimony of men wouldn't
- serve -- my reason would say they were lunatics, and
- throw out their evidence. But all of a sudden I stum-
- bled on the very thing, just by luck. I knew that the
- only total eclipse of the sun in the first half of the
- sixth century occurred on the 21st of June, A. D. 528,
- O.S., and began at 3 minutes after 12 noon. I also
- knew that no total eclipse of the sun was due in what
- to ME was the present year -- i.e., 1879. So, if I
- could keep my anxiety and curiosity from eating the
- heart out of me for forty-eight hours, I should then
- find out for certain whether this boy was telling me the
- truth or not.
-
- Wherefore, being a practical Connecticut man, I now
- shoved this whole problem clear out of my mind till its
- appointed day and hour should come, in order that I
- might turn all my attention to the circumstances of the
- present moment, and be alert and ready to make the
- most out of them that could be made. One thing at a
- time, is my motto -- and just play that thing for all it
- is worth, even if it's only two pair and a jack. I made
- up my mind to two things: if it was still the nineteenth
- century and I was among lunatics and couldn't get
- away, I would presently boss that asylum or know the
- reason why; and if, on the other hand, it was really
- the sixth century, all right, I didn't want any softer
- thing: I would boss the whole country inside of three
- months; for I judged I would have the start of the
- best-educated man in the kingdom by a matter of
- thirteen hundred years and upward. I'm not a man
- to waste time after my mind's made up and there's
- work on hand; so I said to the page:
-
- "Now, Clarence, my boy -- if that might happen to
- be your name -- I'll get you to post me up a little if
- you don't mind. What is the name of that apparition
- that brought me here?"
-
- "My master and thine? That is the good knight
- and great lord Sir Kay the Seneschal, foster brother to
- our liege the king."
-
- "Very good; go on, tell me everything."
-
- He made a long story of it; but the part that had
- immediate interest for me was this: He said I was Sir
- Kay's prisoner, and that in the due course of custom
- I would be flung into a dungeon and left there on scant
- commons until my friends ransomed me -- unless I
- chanced to rot, first. I saw that the last chance had
- the best show, but I didn't waste any bother about
- that; time was too precious. The page said, further,
- that dinner was about ended in the great hall by this
- time, and that as soon as the sociability and the heavy
- drinking should begin, Sir Kay would have me in and
- exhibit me before King Arthur and his illustrious
- knights seated at the Table Round, and would brag
- about his exploit in capturing me, and would probably
- exaggerate the facts a little, but it wouldn't be good
- form for me to correct him, and not over safe, either;
- and when I was done being exhibited, then ho for the
- dungeon; but he, Clarence, would find a way to come
- and see me every now and then, and cheer me up, and
- help me get word to my friends.
-
- Get word to my friends! I thanked him; I couldn't
- do less; and about this time a lackey came to say I
- was wanted; so Clarence led me in and took me off to
- one side and sat down by me.
-
- Well, it was a curious kind of spectacle, and interest-
- ing. It was an immense place, and rather naked --
- yes, and full of loud contrasts. It was very, very
- lofty; so lofty that the banners depending from the
- arched beams and girders away up there floated in a
- sort of twilight; there was a stone-railed gallery at
- each end, high up, with musicians in the one, and
- women, clothed in stunning colors, in the other. The
- floor was of big stone flags laid in black and white
- squares, rather battered by age and use, and needing
- repair. As to ornament, there wasn't any, strictly
- speaking; though on the walls hung some huge tapes-
- tries which were probably taxed as works of art;
- battle-pieces, they were, with horses shaped like those
- which children cut out of paper or create in ginger-
- bread; with men on them in scale armor whose scales
- are represented by round holes -- so that the man's
- coat looks as if it had been done with a biscuit-punch.
- There was a fireplace big enough to camp in; and its
- projecting sides and hood, of carved and pillared
- stonework, had the look of a cathedral door. Along
- the walls stood men-at-arms, in breastplate and morion,
- with halberds for their only weapon -- rigid as statues;
- and that is what they looked like.
-
- In the middle of this groined and vaulted public
- square was an oaken table which they called the Table
- Round. It was as large as a circus ring; and around
- it sat a great company of men dressed in such various
- and splendid colors that it hurt one's eyes to look at
- them. They wore their plumed hats, right along, ex-
- cept that whenever one addressed himself directly to
- the king, he lifted his hat a trifle just as he was begin-
- ning his remark.
-
- Mainly they were drinking -- from entire ox horns;
- but a few were still munching bread or gnawing beef
- bones. There was about an average of two dogs to
- one man; and these sat in expectant attitudes till a
- spent bone was flung to them, and then they went for
- it by brigades and divisions, with a rush, and there
- ensued a fight which filled the prospect with a tumultu-
- ous chaos of plunging heads and bodies and flashing
- tails, and the storm of howlings and barkings deafened
- all speech for the time; but that was no matter, for
- the dog-fight was always a bigger interest anyway; the
- men rose, sometimes, to observe it the better and bet
- on it, and the ladies and the musicians stretched them-
- selves out over their balusters with the same object;
- and all broke into delighted ejaculations from time to
- time. In the end, the winning dog stretched himself
- out comfortably with his bone between his paws, and
- proceeded to growl over it, and gnaw it, and grease
- the floor with it, just as fifty others were already doing;
- and the rest of the court resumed their previous indus-
- tries and entertainments.
-
- As a rule, the speech and behavior of these people
- were gracious and courtly; and I noticed that they
- were good and serious listeners when anybody was tell-
- ing anything -- I mean in a dog-fightless interval. And
- plainly, too, they were a childlike and innocent lot;
- telling lies of the stateliest pattern with a most gentle
- and winning naivety, and ready and willing to listen to
- anybody else's lie, and believe it, too. It was hard to
- associate them with anything cruel or dreadful; and
- yet they dealt in tales of blood and suffering with a
- guileless relish that made me almost forget to shudder.
-
- I was not the only prisoner present. There were
- twenty or more. Poor devils, many of them were
- maimed, hacked, carved, in a frightful way; and their
- hair, their faces, their clothing, were caked with black
- and stiffened drenchings of blood. They were suffer-
- ing sharp physical pain, of course; and weariness, and
- hunger and thirst, no doubt; and at least none had
- given them the comfort of a wash, or even the poor
- charity of a lotion for their wounds; yet you never
- heard them utter a moan or a groan, or saw them show
- any sign of restlessness, or any disposition to com-
- plain. The thought was forced upon me: "The ras-
- cals -- THEY have served other people so in their day;
- it being their own turn, now, they were not expecting
- any better treatment than this; so their philosophical
- bearing is not an outcome of mental training, intellec-
- tual fortitude, reasoning; it is mere animal training;
- they are white Indians."
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
- KNIGHTS OF THE TABLE ROUND
-
- MAINLY the Round Table talk was monologues --
- narrative accounts of the adventures in which
- these prisoners were captured and their friends and
- backers killed and stripped of their steeds and armor.
- As a general thing -- as far as I could make out --
- these murderous adventures were not forays undertaken
- to avenge injuries, nor to settle old disputes or sudden
- fallings out; no, as a rule they were simply duels be-
- tween strangers -- duels between people who had never
- even been introduced to each other, and between
- whom existed no cause of offense whatever. Many a
- time I had seen a couple of boys, strangers, meet by
- chance, and say simultaneously, "I can lick you," and
- go at it on the spot; but I had always imagined until
- now that that sort of thing belonged to children only,
- and was a sign and mark of childhood; but here were
- these big boobies sticking to it and taking pride in it
- clear up into full age and beyond. Yet there was some-
- thing very engaging about these great simple-hearted
- creatures, something attractive and lovable. There did
- not seem to be brains enough in the entire nursery, so
- to speak, to bait a fish-hook with; but you didn't seem
- to mind that, after a little, because you soon saw that
- brains were not needed in a society like that, and in-
- deed would have marred it, hindered it, spoiled its sym-
- metry -- perhaps rendered its existence impossible.
-
- There was a fine manliness observable in almost every
- face; and in some a certain loftiness and sweetness that
- rebuked your belittling criticisms and stilled them. A
- most noble benignity and purity reposed in the counte-
- nance of him they called Sir Galahad, and likewise in the
- king's also; and there was majesty and greatness in
- the giant frame and high bearing of Sir Launcelot of
- the Lake.
-
- There was presently an incident which centered the
- general interest upon this Sir Launcelot. At a sign
- from a sort of master of ceremonies, six or eight of the
- prisoners rose and came forward in a body and knelt
- on the floor and lifted up their hands toward the ladies'
- gallery and begged the grace of a word with the queen.
- The most conspicuously situated lady in that massed
- flower-bed of feminine show and finery inclined her
- head by way of assent, and then the spokesman of the
- prisoners delivered himself and his fellows into her
- hands for free pardon, ransom, captivity, or death, as
- she in her good pleasure might elect; and this, as he
- said, he was doing by command of Sir Kay the Senes-
- chal, whose prisoners they were, he having vanquished
- them by his single might and prowess in sturdy conflict
- in the field.
-
- Surprise and astonishment flashed from face to face
- all over the house; the queen's gratified smile faded
- out at the name of Sir Kay, and she looked disap-
- pointed; and the page whispered in my ear with an
- accent and manner expressive of extravagant derision --
-
- "Sir KAY, forsooth! Oh, call me pet names, dear-
- est, call me a marine! In twice a thousand years shall
- the unholy invention of man labor at odds to beget the
- fellow to this majestic lie!"
-
- Every eye was fastened with severe inquiry upon Sir
- Kay. But he was equal to the occasion. He got up
- and played his hand like a major -- and took every
- trick. He said he would state the case exactly accord-
- ing to the facts; he would tell the simple straightfor-
- ward tale, without comment of his own; "and then,"
- said he, "if ye find glory and honor due, ye will give
- it unto him who is the mightiest man of his hands that
- ever bare shield or strake with sword in the ranks of
- Christian battle -- even him that sitteth there!" and he
- pointed to Sir Launcelot. Ah, he fetched them; it
- was a rattling good stroke. Then he went on and told
- how Sir Launcelot, seeking adventures, some brief time
- gone by, killed seven giants at one sweep of his sword,
- and set a hundred and forty-two captive maidens free;
- and then went further, still seeking adventures, and
- found him (Sir Kay) fighting a desperate fight against
- nine foreign knights, and straightway took the battle
- solely into his own hands, and conquered the nine; and
- that night Sir Launcelot rose quietly, and dressed him
- in Sir Kay's armor and took Sir Kay's horse and gat
- him away into distant lands, and vanquished sixteen
- knights in one pitched battle and thirty-four in another;
- and all these and the former nine he made to swear
- that about Whitsuntide they would ride to Arthur's
- court and yield them to Queen Guenever's hands as
- captives of Sir Kay the Seneschal, spoil of his knightly
- prowess; and now here were these half dozen, and the
- rest would be along as soon as they might be healed of
- their desperate wounds.
-
- Well, it was touching to see the queen blush and
- smile, and look embarrassed and happy, and fling fur-
- tive glances at Sir Launcelot that would have got him
- shot in Arkansas, to a dead certainty.
-
- Everybody praised the valor and magnanimity of Sir
- Launcelot; and as for me, I was perfectly amazed,
- that one man, all by himself, should have been able to
- beat down and capture such battalions of practiced
- fighters. I said as much to Clarence; but this mock-
- ing featherhead only said:
-
- "An Sir Kay had had time to get another skin of
- sour wine into him, ye had seen the accompt doubled."
-
- I looked at the boy in sorrow; and as I looked I saw
- the cloud of a deep despondency settle upon his counte-
- nance. I followed the direction of his eye, and saw that
- a very old and white-bearded man, clothed in a flowing
- black gown, had risen and was standing at the table
- upon unsteady legs, and feebly swaying his ancient
- head and surveying the company with his watery and
- wandering eye. The same suffering look that was in
- the page's face was observable in all the faces around
- -- the look of dumb creatures who know that they must
- endure and make no moan.
-
- "Marry, we shall have it a again," sighed the boy;
- "that same old weary tale that he hath told a
- thousand times in the same words, and that he WILL tell
- till he dieth, every time he hath gotten his barrel full
- and feeleth his exaggeration-mill a-working. Would
- God I had died or I saw this day!"
-
- "Who is it?"
-
- "Merlin, the mighty liar and magician, perdition
- singe him for the weariness he worketh with his one
- tale! But that men fear him for that he hath the
- storms and the lightnings and all the devils that be in
- hell at his beck and call, they would have dug his en-
- trails out these many years ago to get at that tale and
- squelch it. He telleth it always in the third person,
- making believe he is too modest to glorify himself --
- maledictions light upon him, misfortune be his dole!
- Good friend, prithee call me for evensong."
-
- The boy nestled himself upon my shoulder and pre-
- tended to go to sleep. The old man began his tale;
- and presently the lad was asleep in reality; so also were
- the dogs, and the court, the lackeys, and the files of
- men-at-arms. The droning voice droned on; a soft
- snoring arose on all sides and supported it like a deep
- and subdued accompaniment of wind instruments.
- Some heads were bowed upon folded arms, some lay
- back with open mouths that issued unconscious music;
- the flies buzzed and bit, unmolested, the rats swarmed
- softly out from a hundred holes, and pattered about,
- and made themselves at home everywhere; and one of
- them sat up like a squirrel on the king's head and held
- a bit of cheese in its hands and nibbled it, and dribbled
- the crumbs in the king's face with naive and impudent
- irreverence. It was a tranquil scene, and restful to the
- weary eye and the jaded spirit.
-
- This was the old man's tale. He said:
-
- "Right so the king and Merlin departed, and went
- until an hermit that was a good man and a great leech.
- So the hermit searched all his wounds and gave him
- good salves; so the king was there three days, and then
- were his wounds well amended that he might ride and
- go, and so departed. And as they rode, Arthur said,
- I have no sword. No force *, said Merlin, hereby is a
- [* Footnote from M.T.: No matter.]
- sword that shall be yours and I may. So they rode till
- they came to a lake, the which was a fair water and
- broad, and in the midst of the lake Arthur was ware of
- an arm clothed in white samite, that held a fair sword
- in that hand. Lo, said Merlin, yonder is that sword
- that I spake of. With that they saw a damsel going
- upon the lake. What damsel is that? said Arthur.
- That is the Lady of the lake, said Merlin; and within
- that lake is a rock, and therein is as fair a place as any
- on earth, and richly beseen, and this damsel will come
- to you anon, and then speak ye fair to her that she will
- give you that sword. Anon withal came the damsel
- unto Arthur and saluted him, and he her again.
- Damsel, said Arthur, what sword is that, that yonder
- the arm holdeth above the water? I would it were
- mine, for I have no sword. Sir Arthur King, said the
- damsel, that sword is mine, and if ye will give me a gift
- when I ask it you, ye shall have it. By my faith, said
- Arthur, I will give you what gift ye will ask. Well,
- said the damsel, go ye into yonder barge and row your-
- self to the sword, and take it and the scabbard with
- you, and I will ask my gift when I see my time. So
- Sir Arthur and Merlin alight, and tied their horses to
- two trees, and so they went into the ship, and when
- they came to the sword that the hand held, Sir Arthur
- took it up by the handles, and took it with him. And
- the arm and the hand went under the water; and so
- they came unto the land and rode forth. And then Sir
- Arthur saw a rich pavilion. What signifieth yonder
- pavilion? It is the knight's pavilion, said Merlin,
- that ye fought with last, Sir Pellinore, but he is
- out, he is not there; he hath ado with a knight of
- yours, that hight Egglame, and they have fought
- together, but at the last Egglame fled, and else he had
- been dead, and he hath chased him even to Carlion,
- and we shall meet with him anon in the highway. That
- is well said, said Arthur, now have I a sword, now will
- I wage battle with him, and be avenged on him. Sir,
- ye shall not so, said Merlin, for the knight is weary of
- fighting and chasing, so that ye shall have no worship
- to have ado with him; also, he will not lightly be
- matched of one knight living; and therefore it is my
- counsel, let him pass, for he shall do you good service
- in short time, and his sons, after his days. Also ye
- shall see that day in short space ye shall be right glad
- to give him your sister to wed. When I see him, I will
- do as ye advise me, said Arthur. Then Sir Arthur
- looked on the sword, and liked it passing well.
- Whether liketh you better, said Merlin, the sword or
- the scabbard? Me liketh better the sword, said Arthur.
- Ye are more unwise, said Merlin, for the scabbard is
- worth ten of the sword, for while ye have the scabbard
- upon you ye shall never lose no blood, be ye never so
- sore wounded; therefore, keep well the scabbard always
- with you. So they rode into Carlion, and by the way
- they met with Sir Pellinore; but Merlin had done such
- a craft that Pellinore saw not Arthur, and he passed by
- without any words. I marvel, said Arthur, that the
- knight would not speak. Sir, said Merlin, he saw you
- not; for and he had seen you ye had not lightly de-
- parted. So they came unto Carlion, whereof his
- knights were passing glad. And when they heard of
- his adventures they marveled that he would jeopard his
- person so alone. But all men of worship said it was
- merry to be under such a chieftain that would put his
- person in adventure as other poor knights did."
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
- SIR DINADAN THE HUMORIST
-
- IT seemed to me that this quaint lie was most simply
- and beautifully told; but then I had heard it only
- once, and that makes a difference; it was pleasant to
- the others when it was fresh, no doubt.
-
- Sir Dinadan the Humorist was the first to awake, and
- he soon roused the rest with a practical joke of a suffi-
- ciently poor quality. He tied some metal mugs to a
- dog's tail and turned him loose, and he tore around and
- around the place in a frenzy of fright, with all the other
- dogs bellowing after him and battering and crashing
- against everything that came in their way and making
- altogether a chaos of confusion and a most deafening
- din and turmoil; at which every man and woman of the
- multitude laughed till the tears flowed, and some fell
- out of their chairs and wallowed on the floor in ecstasy.
- It was just like so many children. Sir Dinadan was so
- proud of his exploit that he could not keep from telling
- over and over again, to weariness, how the immortal
- idea happened to occur to him; and as is the way with
- humorists of his breed, he was still laughing at it after
- everybody else had got through. He was so set up
- that he concluded to make a speech -- of course a
- humorous speech. I think I never heard so many old
- played-out jokes strung together in my life. He was
- worse than the minstrels, worse than the clown in the
- circus. It seemed peculiarly sad to sit here, thirteen
- hundred years before I was born, and listen again to
- poor, flat, worm-eaten jokes that had given me the dry
- gripes when I was a boy thirteen hundred years after-
- wards. It about convinced me that there isn't any such
- thing as a new joke possible. Everybody laughed at
- these antiquities -- but then they always do; I had
- noticed that, centuries later. However, of course the
- scoffer didn't laugh -- I mean the boy. No, he scoffed;
- there wasn't anything he wouldn't scoff at. He said
- the most of Sir Dinadan's jokes were rotten and the rest
- were petrified. I said "petrified" was good; as I be-
- lieved, myself, that the only right way to classify the
- majestic ages of some of those jokes was by geologic
- periods. But that neat idea hit the boy in a blank
- place, for geology hadn't been invented yet. However,
- I made a note of the remark, and calculated to educate
- the commonwealth up to it if I pulled through. It is
- no use to throw a good thing away merely because the
- market isn't ripe yet.
-
- Now Sir Kay arose and began to fire up on his his-
- tory-mill with me for fuel. It was time for me to feel
- serious, and I did. Sir Kay told how he had en-
- countered me in a far land of barbarians, who all wore
- the same ridiculous garb that I did -- a garb that was a
- work of enchantment, and intended to make the wearer
- secure from hurt by human hands. However he had
- nullified the force of the enchantment by prayer, and
- had killed my thirteen knights in a three hours' battle,
- and taken me prisoner, sparing my life in order that so
- strange a curiosity as I was might be exhibited to the
- wonder and admiration of the king and the court. He
- spoke of me all the time, in the blandest way, as "this
- prodigious giant," and "this horrible sky-towering
- monster," and "this tusked and taloned man-devour-
- ing ogre", and everybody took in all this bosh in the
- naivest way, and never smiled or seemed to notice that
- there was any discrepancy between these watered statis-
- tics and me. He said that in trying to escape from him
- I sprang into the top of a tree two hundred cubits high
- at a single bound, but he dislodged me with a stone the
- size of a cow, which "all-to brast" the most of my
- bones, and then swore me to appear at Arthur's court
- for sentence. He ended by condemning me to die at
- noon on the 21st; and was so little concerned about it
- that he stopped to yawn before he named the date.
-
- I was in a dismal state by this time; indeed, I was
- hardly enough in my right mind to keep the run of a
- dispute that sprung up as to how I had better be killed,
- the possibility of the killing being doubted by some,
- because of the enchantment in my clothes. And yet it
- was nothing but an ordinary suit of fifteen-dollar slop-
- shops. Still, I was sane enough to notice this detail,
- to wit: many of the terms used in the most matter-of-
- fact way by this great assemblage of the first ladies and
- gentlemen in the land would have made a Comanche
- blush. Indelicacy is too mild a term to convey the
- idea. However, I had read "Tom Jones," and "Rod-
- erick Random," and other books of that kind, and
- knew that the highest and first ladies and gentlemen in
- England had remained little or no cleaner in their talk,
- and in the morals and conduct which such talk implies,
- clear up to a hundred years ago; in fact clear into our
- own nineteenth century -- in which century, broadly
- speaking, the earliest samples of the real lady and real
- gentleman discoverable in English history -- or in
- European history, for that matter -- may be said to
- have made their appearance. Suppose Sir Walter, in-
- stead of putting the conversations into the mouths of
- his characters, had allowed the characters to speak for
- themselves? We should have had talk from Rebecca
- and Ivanhoe and the soft lady Rowena which would
- embarrass a tramp in our day. However, to the uncon-
- sciously indelicate all things are delicate. King Ar-
- thur's people were not aware that they were indecent
- and I had presence of mind enough not to mention it.
-
- They were so troubled about my enchanted clothes
- that they were mightily relieved, at last, when old
- Merlin swept the difficulty away for them with a com-
- mon-sense hint. He asked them why they were so dull
- -- why didn't it occur to them to strip me. In half a
- minute I was as naked as a pair of tongs! And dear,
- dear, to think of it: I was the only embarrassed person
- there. Everybody discussed me; and did it as uncon-
- cernedly as if I had been a cabbage. Queen Guenever
- was as naively interested as the rest, and said she had
- never seen anybody with legs just like mine before. It
- was the only compliment I got -- if it was a compliment.
-
- Finally I was carried off in one direction, and my
- perilous clothes in another. I was shoved into a dark
- and narrow cell in a dungeon, with some scant remnants
- for dinner, some moldy straw for a bed, and no end
- of rats for company.
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
- AN INSPIRATION
-
- I WAS so tired that even my fears were not able to
- keep me awake long.
-
- When I next came to myself, I seemed to have been
- asleep a very long time. My first thought was, "Well,
- what an astonishing dream I've had! I reckon I've
- waked only just in time to keep from being hanged or
- drowned or burned or something.... I'll nap
- again till the whistle blows, and then I'll go down to
- the arms factory and have it out with Hercules."
-
- But just then I heard the harsh music of rusty chains
- and bolts, a light flashed in my eyes, and that butterfly,
- Clarence, stood before me! I gasped with surprise;
- my breath almost got away from me.
-
- "What!" I said, "you here yet? Go along with
- the rest of the dream! scatter!"
-
- But he only laughed, in his light-hearted way, and
- fell to making fun of my sorry plight.
-
- "All right," I said resignedly, "let the dream go
- on; I'm in no hurry."
-
- "Prithee what dream?"
-
- "What dream? Why, the dream that I am in
- Arthur's court -- a person who never existed; and that
- I am talking to you, who are nothing but a work of the
- imagination."
-
- "Oh, la, indeed! and is it a dream that you're to be
- burned to-morrow? Ho-ho -- answer me that!"
-
- The shock that went through me was distressing. I
- now began to reason that my situation was in the last
- degree serious, dream or no dream; for I knew by past
- experience of the lifelike intensity of dreams, that to
- be burned to death, even in a dream, would be very far
- from being a jest, and was a thing to be avoided, by
- any means, fair or foul, that I could contrive. So I
- said beseechingly:
-
- "Ah, Clarence, good boy, only friend I've got, --
- for you ARE my friend, aren't you? -- don't fail me; help
- me to devise some way of escaping from this place!"
-
- "Now do but hear thyself! Escape? Why, man,
- the corridors are in guard and keep of men-at-arms."
-
- "No doubt, no doubt. But how many, Clarence?
- Not many, I hope?"
-
- "Full a score. One may not hope to escape."
- After a pause -- hesitatingly: "and there be other rea-
- sons -- and weightier."
-
- "Other ones? What are they?"
-
- "Well, they say -- oh, but I daren't, indeed
- daren't!"
-
- "Why, poor lad, what is the matter? Why do you
- blench? Why do you tremble so?"
-
- "Oh, in sooth, there is need! I do want to tell you,
- but --"
-
- "Come, come, be brave, be a man -- speak out,
- there's a good lad!"
-
- He hesitated, pulled one way by desire, the other
- way by fear; then he stole to the door and peeped out,
- listening; and finally crept close to me and put his
- mouth to my ear and told me his fearful news in a
- whisper, and with all the cowering apprehension of one
- who was venturing upon awful ground and speaking of
- things whose very mention might be freighted with
- death.
-
- "Merlin, in his malice, has woven a spell about this
- dungeon, and there bides not the man in these king-
- doms that would be desperate enough to essay to cross
- its lines with you! Now God pity me, I have told it!
- Ah, be kind to me, be merciful to a poor boy who
- means thee well; for an thou betray me I am lost!"
-
- I laughed the only really refreshing laugh I had had
- for some time; and shouted:
-
- "Merlin has wrought a spell! MERLIN, forsooth!
- That cheap old humbug, that maundering old ass?
- Bosh, pure bosh, the silliest bosh in the world! Why,
- it does seem to me that of all the childish, idiotic,
- chuckle-headed, chicken-livered superstitions that
- ev -- oh, damn Merlin!"
-
- But Clarence had slumped to his knees before I had
- half finished, and he was like to go out of his mind
- with fright.
-
- "Oh, beware! These are awful words! Any
- moment these walls may crumble upon us if you say
- such things. Oh call them back before it is too late!"
-
- Now this strange exhibition gave me a good idea and
- set me to thinking. If everybody about here was so
- honestly and sincerely afraid of Merlin's pretended
- magic as Clarence was, certainly a superior man like
- me ought to be shrewd enough to contrive some way
- to take advantage of such a state of things. I went
- on thinking, and worked out a plan. Then I said:
-
- "Get up. Pull yourself together; look me in the
- eye. Do you know why I laughed?"
-
- "No -- but for our blessed Lady's sake, do it no
- more."
-
- "Well, I'll tell you why I laughed. Because I'm a
- magician myself."
-
- "Thou!" The boy recoiled a step, and caught his
- breath, for the thing hit him rather sudden; but the
- aspect which he took on was very, very respectful. I
- took quick note of that; it indicated that a humbug
- didn't need to have a reputation in this asylum; people
- stood ready to take him at his word, without that. I
- resumed.
-
- "I've know Merlin seven hundred years, and he --"
-
- "Seven hun --"
-
- "Don't interrupt me. He has died and come alive
- again thirteen times, and traveled under a new name
- every time: Smith, Jones, Robinson, Jackson, Peters,
- Haskins, Merlin -- a new alias every time he turns up.
- I knew him in Egypt three hundred years ago; I knew
- him in India five hundred years ago -- he is always
- blethering around in my way, everywhere I go; he
- makes me tired. He don't amount to shucks, as a
- magician; knows some of the old common tricks,
- but has never got beyond the rudiments, and never
- will. He is well enough for the provinces-- one-night
- stands and that sort of thing, you know -- but dear me,
- HE oughtn't to set up for an expert -- anyway not
- where there's a real artist. Now look here, Clarence,
- I am going to stand your friend, right along, and in re-
- turn you must be mine. I want you to do me a favor.
- I want you to get word to the king that I am a magician
- myself -- and the Supreme Grand High-yu-Muck-
- amuck and head of the tribe, at that; and I want him
- to be made to understand that I am just quietly arrang-
- ing a little calamity here that will make the fur fly in these
- realms if Sir Kay's project is carried out and any harm
- comes to me. Will you get that to the king for me?"
-
- The poor boy was in such a state that he could
- hardly answer me. It was pitiful to see a creature so
- terrified, so unnerved, so demoralized. But he prom-
- ised everything; and on my side he made me promise
- over and over again that I would remain his friend, and
- never turn against him or cast any enchantments upon
- him. Then he worked his way out, staying himself
- with his hand along the wall, like a sick person.
-
- Presently this thought occurred to me: how heed-
- less I have been! When the boy gets calm, he will
- wonder why a great magician like me should have
- begged a boy like him to help me get out of this place;
- he will put this and that together, and will see that I
- am a humbug.
-
- I worried over that heedless blunder for an hour,
- and called myself a great many hard names, meantime.
- But finally it occurred to me all of a sudden that these
- animals didn't reason; that THEY never put this and
- that together; that all their talk showed that they
- didn't know a discrepancy when they saw it. I was at
- rest, then.
-
- But as soon as one is at rest, in this world, off he goes
- on something else to worry about. It occurred to me
- that I had made another blunder: I had sent the boy
- off to alarm his betters with a threat -- I intending to
- invent a calamity at my leisure; now the people who are
- the readiest and eagerest and willingest to swallow
- miracles are the very ones who are hungriest to see you
- perform them; suppose I should be called on for a
- sample? Suppose I should be asked to name my
- calamity? Yes, I had made a blunder; I ought to
- have invented my calamity first. "What shall I do?
- what can I say, to gain a little time?" I was in trouble
- again; in the deepest kind of trouble:...
- "There's a footstep! -- they're coming. If I had only
- just a moment to think.... Good, I've got it.
- I'm all right."
-
- You see, it was the eclipse. It came into my mind
- in the nick of time, how Columbus, or Cortez, or one
- of those people, played an eclipse as a saving trump
- once, on some savages, and I saw my chance. I could
- play it myself, now, and it wouldn't be any plagiarism,
- either, because I should get it in nearly a thousand
- years ahead of those parties.
-
- Clarence came in, subdued, distressed, and said:
-
- "I hasted the message to our liege the king, and
- straightway he had me to his presence. He was
- frighted even to the marrow, and was minded to give
- order for your instant enlargement, and that you be
- clothed in fine raiment and lodged as befitted one so
- great; but then came Merlin and spoiled all; for he
- persuaded the king that you are mad, and know not
- whereof you speak; and said your threat is but foolish-
- ness and idle vaporing. They disputed long, but in the
- end, Merlin, scoffing, said, 'Wherefore hath he not
- NAMED his brave calamity? Verily it is because he can-
- not.' This thrust did in a most sudden sort close the
- king's mouth, and he could offer naught to turn the
- argument; and so, reluctant, and full loth to do you
- the discourtesy, he yet prayeth you to consider his per-
- plexed case, as noting how the matter stands, and name
- the calamity -- if so be you have determined the nature
- of it and the time of its coming. Oh, prithee delay
- not; to delay at such a time were to double and treble
- the perils that already compass thee about. Oh, be
- thou wise -- name the calamity!"
-
- I allowed silence to accumulate while I got my im-
- pressiveness together, and then said:
-
- "How long have I been shut up in this hole?"
-
- "Ye were shut up when yesterday was well spent
- It is 9 of the morning now."
-
- "No! Then I have slept well, sure enough. Nine
- in the morning now! And yet it is the very complex-
- ion of midnight, to a shade. This is the 20th, then?"
-
- "The 20th -- yes."
-
- "And I am to be burned alive to-morrow." The
- boy shuddered.
-
- "At what hour?"
-
- "At high noon."
-
- "Now then, I will tell you what to say." I paused,
- and stood over that cowering lad a whole minute in
- awful silence; then, in a voice deep, measured,
- charged with doom, I began, and rose by dramatically
- graded stages to my colossal climax, which I delivered
- in as sublime and noble a way as ever I did such a
- thing in my life: "Go back and tell the king that at
- that hour I will smother the whole world in the dead
- blackness of midnight; I will blot out the sun, and he
- shall never shine again; the fruits of the earth shall
- rot for lack of light and warmth, and the peoples of the
- earth shall famish and die, to the last man!"
-
- I had to carry the boy out myself, he sunk into such
- a collapse. I handed him over to the soldiers, and
- went back.
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
- THE ECLIPSE
-
- IN the stillness and the darkness, realization soon
- began to supplement knowledge. The mere knowl-
- edge of a fact is pale; but when you come to REALIZE
- your fact, it takes on color. It is all the difference be-
- tween hearing of a man being stabbed to the heart, and
- seeing it done. In the stillness and the darkness, the
- knowledge that I was in deadly danger took to itself
- deeper and deeper meaning all the time; a something
- which was realization crept inch by inch through my
- veins and turned me cold.
-
- But it is a blessed provision of nature that at times
- like these, as soon as a man's mercury has got down to
- a certain point there comes a revulsion, and he rallies.
- Hope springs up, and cheerfulness along with it, and
- then he is in good shape to do something for himself,
- if anything can be done. When my rally came, it
- came with a bound. I said to myself that my eclipse
- would be sure to save me, and make me the greatest
- man in the kingdom besides; and straightway my
- mercury went up to the top of the tube, and my solici-
- tudes all vanished. I was as happy a man as there
- was in the world. I was even impatient for to-
- morrow to come, I so wanted to gather in that great
- triumph and be the center of all the nation's wonder
- and reverence. Besides, in a business way it would be
- the making of me; I knew that.
-
- Meantime there was one thing which had got pushed
- into the background of my mind. That was the half-
- conviction that when the nature of my proposed
- calamity should be reported to those superstitious
- people, it would have such an effect that they would
- want to compromise. So, by and by when I heard
- footsteps coming, that thought was recalled to me, and
- I said to myself, "As sure as anything, it's the com-
- promise. Well, if it is good, all right, I will accept;
- but if it isn't, I mean to stand my ground and play my
- hand for all it is worth."
-
- The door opened, and some men-at-arms appeared.
- The leader said:
-
- "The stake is ready. Come!"
-
- The stake! The strength went out of me, and I
- almost fell down. It is hard to get one's breath at
- such a time, such lumps come into one's throat, and
- such gaspings; but as soon as I could speak, I said:
-
- "But this is a mistake -- the execution is to-
- morrow."
-
- "Order changed; been set forward a day. Haste
- thee!"
-
- I was lost. There was no help for me. I was
- dazed, stupefied; I had no command over myself, I
- only wandered purposely about, like one out of his
- mind; so the soldiers took hold of me, and pulled me
- along with them, out of the cell and along the maze of
- underground corridors, and finally into the fierce glare
- of daylight and the upper world. As we stepped into
- the vast enclosed court of the castle I got a shock;
- for the first thing I saw was the stake, standing in the
- center, and near it the piled fagots and a monk. On
- all four sides of the court the seated multitudes rose
- rank above rank, forming sloping terraces that were
- rich with color. The king and the queen sat in their
- thrones, the most conspicuous figures there, of course.
-
- To note all this, occupied but a second. The next
- second Clarence had slipped from some place of con-
- cealment and was pouring news into my ear, his eyes
- beaming with triumph and gladness. He said:
-
- "'Tis through ME the change was wrought! And
- main hard have I worked to do it, too. But when I
- revealed to them the calamity in store, and saw how
- mighty was the terror it did engender, then saw I also
- that this was the time to strike! Wherefore I diligently
- pretended, unto this and that and the other one, that
- your power against the sun could not reach its full
- until the morrow; and so if any would save the sun
- and the world, you must be slain to-day, while your
- enchantments are but in the weaving and lack potency.
- Odsbodikins, it was but a dull lie, a most indifferent
- invention, but you should have seen them seize it and
- swallow it, in the frenzy of their fright, as it were sal-
- vation sent from heaven; and all the while was I
- laughing in my sleeve the one moment, to see them so
- cheaply deceived, and glorifying God the next, that
- He was content to let the meanest of His creatures be
- His instrument to the saving of thy life. Ah how
- happy has the matter sped! You will not need to do
- the sun a REAL hurt -- ah, forget not that, on your soul
- forget it not! Only make a little darkness -- only the
- littlest little darkness, mind, and cease with that. It
- will be sufficient. They will see that I spoke falsely, --
- being ignorant, as they will fancy -- and with the fall-
- ing of the first shadow of that darkness you shall see
- them go mad with fear; and they will set you free and
- make you great! Go to thy triumph, now! But re-
- member -- ah, good friend, I implore thee remember
- my supplication, and do the blessed sun no hurt. For
- MY sake, thy true friend."
-
- I choked out some words through my grief and
- misery; as much as to say I would spare the sun; for
- which the lad's eyes paid me back with such deep and
- loving gratitude that I had not the heart to tell him his
- good-hearted foolishness had ruined me and sent me
- to my death.
-
- As the soldiers assisted me across the court the still-
- ness was so profound that if I had been blindfold I
- should have supposed I was in a solitude instead of
- walled in by four thousand people. There was not a
- movement perceptible in those masses of humanity;
- they were as rigid as stone images, and as pale; and
- dread sat upon every countenance. This hush con-
- tinued while I was being chained to the stake; it still
- continued while the fagots were carefully and tediously
- piled about my ankles, my knees, my thighs, my body.
- Then there was a pause, and a deeper hush, if possible,
- and a man knelt down at my feet with a blazing torch;
- the multitude strained forward, gazing, and parting
- slightly from their seats without knowing it; the monk
- raised his hands above my head, and his eyes toward
- the blue sky, and began some words in Latin; in this
- attitude he droned on and on, a little while, and then
- stopped. I waited two or three moments; then looked
- up; he was standing there petrified. With a common
- impulse the multitude rose slowly up and stared into
- the sky. I followed their eyes, as sure as guns, there
- was my eclipse beginning! The life went boiling
- through my veins; I was a new man! The rim of
- black spread slowly into the sun's disk, my heart beat
- higher and higher, and still the assemblage and the
- priest stared into the sky, motionless. I knew that
- this gaze would be turned upon me, next. When it
- was, l was ready. I was in one of the most grand
- attitudes I ever struck, with my arm stretched up
- pointing to the sun. It was a noble effect. You
- could SEE the shudder sweep the mass like a wave.
- Two shouts rang out, one close upon the heels of the
- other:
-
- "Apply the torch!"
-
- "I forbid it!"
-
- The one was from Merlin, the other from the king.
- Merlin started from his place -- to apply the torch
- himself, I judged. I said:
-
- "Stay where you are. If any man moves -- even
- the king -- before I give him leave, I will blast him
- with thunder, I will consume him with lightnings!"
-
- The multitude sank meekly into their seats, and I was
- just expecting they would. Merlin hesitated a moment
- or two, and I was on pins and needles during that little
- while. Then he sat down, and I took a good breath;
- for I knew I was master of the situation now. The
- king said:
-
- "Be merciful, fair sir, and essay no further in this
- perilous matter, lest disaster follow. It was reported
- to us that your powers could not attain unto their full
- strength until the morrow; but --"
-
- "Your Majesty thinks the report may have been a
- lie? It WAS a lie."
-
- That made an immense effect; up went appealing
- hands everywhere, and the king was assailed with a
- storm of supplications that I might be bought off at
- any price, and the calamity stayed. The king was
- eager to comply. He said:
-
- "Name any terms, reverend sir, even to the halving
- of my kingdom; but banish this calamity, spare the
- sun!"
-
- My fortune was made. I would have taken him up
- in a minute, but I couldn't stop an eclipse; the thing
- was out of the question. So I asked time to consider.
- The king said:
-
- "How long -- ah, how long, good sir? Be merci-
- ful; look, it groweth darker, moment by moment.
- Prithee how long?"
-
- "Not long. Half an hour -- maybe an hour."
-
- There were a thousand pathetic protests, but I
- couldn't shorten up any, for I couldn't remember
- how long a total eclipse lasts. I was in a puzzled con-
- dition, anyway, and wanted to think. Something was
- wrong about that eclipse, and the fact was very un-
- settling. If this wasn't the one I was after, how was
- I to tell whether this was the sixth century, or nothing
- but a dream? Dear me, if I could only prove it was
- the latter! Here was a glad new hope. If the boy
- was right about the date, and this was surely the 20th,
- it WASN'T the sixth century. I reached for the monk's
- sleeve, in considerable excitement, and asked him what
- day of the month it was.
-
- Hang him, he said it was the TWENTY-FIRST! It made
- me turn cold to hear him. I begged him not to make
- any mistake about it; but he was sure; he knew it
- was the 21st. So, that feather-headed boy had botched
- things again! The time of the day was right for the
- eclipse; I had seen that for myself, in the beginning,
- by the dial that was near by. Yes, I was in King
- Arthur's court, and I might as well make the most out
- of it I could.
-
- The darkness was steadily growing, the people be-
- coming more and more distressed. I now said:
-
- "I have reflected, Sir King. For a lesson, I will
- let this darkness proceed, and spread night in the
- world; but whether I blot out the sun for good, or
- restore it, shall rest with you. These are the terms, to
- wit: You shall remain king over all your dominions,
- and receive all the glories and honors that belong to
- the kingship; but you shall appoint me your perpetual
- minister and executive, and give me for my services
- one per cent. of such actual increase of revenue over
- and above its present amount as I may succeed in
- creating for the state. If I can't live on that, I sha'n't
- ask anybody to give me a lift. Is it satisfactory?"
-
- There was a prodigious roar of applause, and out of
- the midst of it the king's voice rose, saying:
-
- "Away with his bonds, and set him free! and do
- him homage, high and low, rich and poor, for he is
- become the king's right hand, is clothed with power
- and authority, and his seat is upon the highest step of
- the throne! Now sweep away this creeping night, and
- bring the light and cheer again, that all the world may
- bless thee."
-
- But I said:
-
- "That a common man should be shamed before
- the world, is nothing; but it were dishonor to the KING
- if any that saw his minister naked should not also see
- him delivered from his shame. If I might ask that my
- clothes be brought again --"
-
- "They are not meet," the king broke in. "Fetch
- raiment of another sort; clothe him like a prince!"
-
- My idea worked. I wanted to keep things as they
- were till the eclipse was total, otherwise they would be
- trying again to get me to dismiss the darkness, and of
- course I couldn't do it. Sending for the clothes
- gained some delay, but not enough. So I had to
- make another excuse. I said it would be but natural
- if the king should change his mind and repent to some
- extent of what he had done under excitement; there-
- fore I would let the darkness grow a while, and if at
- the end of a reasonable time the king had kept his
- mind the same, the darkness should be dismissed.
- Neither the king nor anybody else was satisfied with
- that arrangement, but I had to stick to my point.
-
- It grew darker and darker and blacker and blacker,
- while I struggled with those awkward sixth-century
- clothes. It got to be pitch dark, at last, and the
- multitude groaned with horror to feel the cold uncanny
- night breezes fan through the place and see the stars
- come out and twinkle in the sky. At last the eclipse
- was total, and I was very glad of it, but everybody
- else was in misery; which was quite natural. I said:
-
- "The king, by his silence, still stands to the terms."
- Then I lifted up my hands -- stood just so a moment --
- then I said, with the most awful solemnity: "Let the
- enchantment dissolve and pass harmless away!"
-
- There was no response, for a moment, in that deep
- darkness and that graveyard hush. But when the
- silver rim of the sun pushed itself out, a moment or
- two later, the assemblage broke loose with a vast shout
- and came pouring down like a deluge to smother me
- with blessings and gratitude; and Clarence was not the
- last of the wash, to be sure.
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
- MERLIN'S TOWER
-
- INASMUCH as I was now the second personage in
- the Kingdom, as far as political power and author-
- ty were concerned, much was made of me. My
- raiment was of silks and velvets and cloth of gold,
- and by consequence was very showy, also uncomfort-
- able. But habit would soon reconcile me to my clothes;
- I was aware of that. I was given the choicest suite of
- apartments in the castle, after the king's. They were
- aglow with loud-colored silken hangings, but the stone
- floors had nothing but rushes on them for a carpet,
- and they were misfit rushes at that, being not all of
- one breed. As for conveniences, properly speaking,
- there weren't any. I mean LITTLE conveniences; it is
- the little conveniences that make the real comfort of
- life. The big oaken chairs, graced with rude carvings,
- were well enough, but that was the stopping place.
- There was no soap, no matches, no looking-glass -- ex-
- cept a metal one, about as powerful as a pail of water.
- And not a chromo. I had been used to chromos for
- years, and I saw now that without my suspecting it a
- passion for art had got worked into the fabric of my
- being, and was become a part of me. It made me
- homesick to look around over this proud and gaudy
- but heartless barrenness and remember that in our house
- in East Hartford, all unpretending as it was, you couldn't
- go into a room but you would find an insurance-chromo,
- or at least a three-color God-Bless-Our-Home over the
- door; and in the parlor we had nine. But here, even
- in my grand room of state, there wasn't anything in
- the nature of a picture except a thing the size of a
- bedquilt, which was either woven or knitted (it had
- darned places in it), and nothing in it was the right
- color or the right shape; and as for proportions, even
- Raphael himself couldn't have botched them more
- formidably, after all his practice on those nightmares
- they call his "celebrated Hampton Court cartoons."
- Raphael was a bird. We had several of his chromos;
- one was his "Miraculous Draught of Fishes," where
- he puts in a miracle of his own -- puts three men into
- a canoe which wouldn't have held a dog without up-
- setting. I always admired to study R.'s art, it was so
- fresh and unconventional.
-
- There wasn't even a bell or a speaking-tube in the
- castle. I had a great many servants, and those that
- were on duty lolled in the anteroom; and when I
- wanted one of them I had to go and call for him.
- There was no gas, there were no candles; a bronze
- dish half full of boarding-house butter with a blazing
- rag floating in it was the thing that produced what was
- regarded as light. A lot of these hung along the walls
- and modified the dark, just toned it down enough to
- make it dismal. If you went out at night, your ser-
- vants carried torches. There were no books, pens,
- paper or ink, and no glass in the openings they be-
- lieved to be windows. It is a little thing -- glass is --
- until it is absent, then it becomes a big thing. But
- perhaps the worst of all was, that there wasn't any
- sugar, coffee, tea, or tobacco. I saw that I was just
- another Robinson Crusoe cast away on an uninhabited
- island, with no society but some more or less tame
- animals, and if I wanted to make life bearable I must
- do as he did -- invent, contrive, create, reorganize
- things; set brain and hand to work, and keep them
- busy. Well, that was in my line.
-
- One thing troubled me along at first -- the immense
- interest which people took in me. Apparently the
- whole nation wanted a look at me. It soon transpired
- that the eclipse had scared the British world almost to
- death; that while it lasted the whole country, from one
- end to the other, was in a pitiable state of panic, and
- the churches, hermitages, and monkeries overflowed
- with praying and weeping poor creatures who thought
- the end of the world was come. Then had followed
- the news that the producer of this awful event was a
- stranger, a mighty magician at Arthur's court; that he
- could have blown out the sun like a candle, and was
- just going to do it when his mercy was purchased, and
- he then dissolved his enchantments, and was now
- recognized and honored as the man who had by his
- unaided might saved the globe from destruction and
- its peoples from extinction. Now if you consider that
- everybody believed that, and not only believed it, but
- never even dreamed of doubting it, you will easily
- understand that there was not a person in all Britain
- that would not have walked fifty miles to get a sight of
- me. Of course I was all the talk -- all other subjects
- were dropped; even the king became suddenly a per-
- son of minor interest and notoriety. Within twenty-
- four hours the delegations began to arrive, and from
- that time onward for a fortnight they kept coming.
- The village was crowded, and all the countryside. I
- had to go out a dozen times a day and show myself to
- these reverent and awe-stricken multitudes. It came
- to be a great burden, as to time and trouble, but of
- course it was at the same time compensatingly agree-
- able to be so celebrated and such a center of homage.
- It turned Brer Merlin green with envy and spite, which
- was a great satisfaction to me. But there was one
- thing I couldn't understand -- nobody had asked for
- an autograph. I spoke to Clarence about it. By
- George! I had to explain to him what it was. Then
- he said nobody in the country could read or write but
- a few dozen priests. Land! think of that.
-
- There was another thing that troubled me a little.
- Those multitudes presently began to agitate for another
- miracle. That was natural. To be able to carry back
- to their far homes the boast that they had seen the
- man who could command the sun, riding in the
- heavens, and be obeyed, would make them great in
- the eyes of their neighbors, and envied by them all;
- but to be able to also say they had seen him work a
- miracle themselves -- why, people would come a dis-
- tance to see THEM. The pressure got to be pretty
- strong. There was going to be an eclipse of the
- moon, and I knew the date and hour, but it was too
- far away. Two years. I would have given a good
- deal for license to hurry it up and use it now when
- there was a big market for it. It seemed a great pity
- to have it wasted so, and come lagging along at a time
- when a body wouldn't have any use for it, as like as
- not. If it had been booked for only a month away, I
- could have sold it short; but, as matters stood, I
- couldn't seem to cipher out any way to make it do me
- any good, so I gave up trying. Next, Clarence found
- that old Merlin was making himself busy on the sly
- among those people. He was spreading a report that
- I was a humbug, and that the reason I didn't accom-
- modate the people with a miracle was because I
- couldn't. I saw that I must do something. I pres-
- ently thought out a plan.
-
- By my authority as executive I threw Merlin into
- prison -- the same cell I had occupied myself. Then
- I gave public notice by herald and trumpet that I
- should be busy with affairs of state for a fortnight, but
- about the end of that time I would take a moment's
- leisure and blow up Merlin's stone tower by fires from
- heaven; in the meantime, whoso listened to evil re-
- ports about me, let him beware. Furthermore, I
- would perform but this one miracle at this time, and
- no more; if it failed to satisfy and any murmured, I
- would turn the murmurers into horses, and make them
- useful. Quiet ensued.
-
- I took Clarence into my confidence, to a certain
- degree, and we went to work privately. I told him
- that this was a sort of miracle that required a trifle of
- preparation, and that it would be sudden death to ever
- talk about these preparations to anybody. That made
- his mouth safe enough. Clandestinely we made a few
- bushels of first-rate blasting powder, and I superin-
- tended my armorers while they constructed a lightning-
- rod and some wires. This old stone tower was very
- massive -- and rather ruinous, too, for it was Roman,
- and four hundred years old. Yes, and handsome,
- after a rude fashion, and clothed with ivy from base to
- summit, as with a shirt of scale mail. It stood on a
- lonely eminence, in good view from the castle, and
- about half a mile away.
-
- Working by night, we stowed the powder in the
- tower -- dug stones out, on the inside, and buried the
- powder in the walls themselves, which were fifteen feet
- thick at the base. We put in a peck at a time, in a
- dozen places. We could have blown up the Tower of
- London with these charges. When the thirteenth night
- was come we put up our lightning-rod, bedded it in
- one of the batches of powder, and ran wires from it to
- the other batches. Everybody had shunned that
- locality from the day of my proclamation, but on the
- morning of the fourteenth I thought best to warn the
- people, through the heralds, to keep clear away -- a
- quarter of a mile away. Then added, by command,
- that at some time during the twenty-four hours I
- would consummate the miracle, but would first give a
- brief notice; by flags on the castle towers if in the
- daytime, by torch-baskets in the same places if at
- night.
-
- Thunder-showers had been tolerably frequent of late,
- and I was not much afraid of a failure; still, I shouldn't
- have cared for a delay of a day or two; I should have
- explained that I was busy with affairs of state yet, and
- the people must wait.
-
- Of course, we had a blazing sunny day -- almost the
- first one without a cloud for three weeks; things always
- happen so. I kept secluded, and watched the weather.
- Clarence dropped in from time to time and said the
- public excitement was growing and growing all the
- time, and the whole country filling up with human
- masses as far as one could see from the battlements.
- At last the wind sprang up and a cloud appeared -- in
- the right quarter, too, and just at nightfall. For a
- little while I watched that distant cloud spread and
- blacken, then I judged it was time for me to appear.
- I ordered the torch-baskets to be lit, and Merlin liber-
- ated and sent to me. A quarter of an hour later I
- ascended the parapet and there found the king and the
- court assembled and gazing off in the darkness toward
- Merlin's Tower. Already the darkness was so heavy
- that one could not see far; these people and the old
- turrets, being partly in deep shadow and partly in the
- red glow from the great torch-baskets overhead, made
- a good deal of a picture.
-
- Merlin arrived in a gloomy mood. I said:
-
- "You wanted to burn me alive when I had not done
- you any harm, and latterly you have been trying to
- injure my professional reputation. Therefore I am
- going to call down fire and blow up your tower, but
- it is only fair to give you a chance; now if you think
- you can break my enchantments and ward off the fires,
- step to the bat, it's your innings."
-
- "I can, fair sir, and I will. Doubt it not."
-
- He drew an imaginary circle on the stones of the
- roof, and burnt a pinch of powder in it, which sent up
- a small cloud of aromatic smoke, whereat everybody
- fell back and began to cross themselves and get un-
- comfortable. Then he began to mutter and make
- passes in the air with his hands. He worked himself
- up slowly and gradually into a sort of frenzy, and got
- to thrashing around with his arms like the sails of a
- windmill. By this time the storm had about reached
- us; the gusts of wind were flaring the torches and
- making the shadows swash about, the first heavy drops
- of rain were falling, the world abroad was black as
- pitch, the lightning began to wink fitfully. Of course,
- my rod would be loading itself now. In fact, things
- were imminent. So I said:
-
- "You have had time enough. I have given you
- every advantage, and not interfered. It is plain your
- magic is weak. It is only fair that I begin now."
-
- I made about three passes in the air, and then there
- was an awful crash and that old tower leaped into the
- sky in chunks, along with a vast volcanic fountain of
- fire that turned night to noonday, and showed a thou-
- sand acres of human beings groveling on the ground in
- a general collapse of consternation. Well, it rained
- mortar and masonry the rest of the week. This was
- the report; but probably the facts would have modi-
- fied it.
-
- It was an effective miracle. The great bothersome
- temporary population vanished. There were a good
- many thousand tracks in the mud the next morning,
- but they were all outward bound. If I had advertised
- another miracle I couldn't have raised an audience
- with a sheriff.
-
- Merlin's stock was flat. The king wanted to stop
- his wages; he even wanted to banish him, but I inter-
- fered. I said he would be useful to work the weather,
- and attend to small matters like that, and I would give
- him a lift now and then when his poor little parlor-
- magic soured on him. There wasn't a rag of his tower
- left, but I had the government rebuild it for him, and
- advised him to take boarders; but he was too high-
- toned for that. And as for being grateful, he never
- even said thank you. He was a rather hard lot, take
- him how you might; but then you couldn't fairly ex-
- pect a man to be sweet that had been set back so.
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
- THE BOSS
-
- TO be vested with enormous authority is a fine
- thing; but to have the on-looking world consent
- to it is a finer. The tower episode solidified my
- power, and made it impregnable. If any were per-
- chance disposed to be jealous and critical before that,
- they experienced a change of heart, now. There was
- not any one in the kingdom who would have considered
- it good judgment to meddle with my matters.
-
- I was fast getting adjusted to my situation and cir-
- cumstances. For a time, I used to wake up, mornings,
- and smile at my "dream," and listen for the Colt's
- factory whistle; but that sort of thing played itself
- out, gradually, and at last I was fully able to realize
- that I was actually living in the sixth century, and in
- Arthur's court, not a lunatic asylum. After that, I
- was just as much at home in that century as I could
- have been in any other; and as for preference, I
- wouldn't have traded it for the twentieth. Look at
- the opportunities here for a man of knowledge, brains,
- pluck, and enterprise to sail in and grow up with the
- country. The grandest field that ever was; and all my
- own; not a competitor; not a man who wasn't a baby
- to me in acquirements and capacities; whereas, what
- would I amount to in the twentieth century? I should
- be foreman of a factory, that is about all; and could
- drag a seine down street any day and catch a hundred
- better men than myself.
-
- What a jump I had made! I couldn't keep from
- thinking about it, and contemplating it, just as one
- does who has struck oil. There was nothing back of
- me that could approach it, unless it might be Joseph's
- case; and Joseph's only approached it, it didn't equal
- it, quite. For it stands to reason that as Joseph's
- splendid financial ingenuities advantaged nobody but
- the king, the general public must have regarded him
- with a good deal of disfavor, whereas I had done my
- entire public a kindness in sparing the sun, and was
- popular by reason of it.
-
- I was no shadow of a king; I was the substance;
- the king himself was the shadow. My power was
- colossal; and it was not a mere name, as such things
- have generally been, it was the genuine article. I
- stood here, at the very spring and source of the second
- great period of the world's history; and could see the
- trickling stream of that history gather and deepen and
- broaden, and roll its mighty tides down the far
- centuries; and I could note the upspringing of adven-
- turers like myself in the shelter of its long array of
- thrones: De Montforts, Gavestons, Mortimers, Villier-
- ses; the war-making, campaign-directing wantons of
- France, and Charles the Second's scepter-wielding
- drabs; but nowhere in the procession was my full-
- sized fellow visible. I was a Unique; and glad to
- know that that fact could not be dislodged or chal-
- lenged for thirteen centuries and a half, for sure.
- Yes, in power I was equal to the king. At the same
- time there was another power that was a trifle stronger
- than both of us put together. That was the Church.
- I do not wish to disguise that fact. I couldn't, if I
- wanted to. But never mind about that, now; it will
- show up, in its proper place, later on. It didn't cause
- me any trouble in the beginning -- at least any of
- consequence.
-
- Well, it was a curious country, and full of interest.
- And the people! They were the quaintest and sim-
- plest and trustingest race; why, they were nothing but
- rabbits. It was pitiful for a person born in a whole-
- some free atmosphere to listen to their humble and
- hearty outpourings of loyalty toward their king and
- Church and nobility; as if they had any more occasion
- to love and honor king and Church and noble than a
- slave has to love and honor the lash, or a dog has to
- love and honor the stranger that kicks him! Why,
- dear me,ANY kind of royalty, howsoever modified,
- ANY kind of aristocracy, howsoever pruned, is rightly
- an insult; but if you are born and brought up under
- that sort of arrangement you probably never find it
- out for yourself, and don't believe it when somebody
- else tells you. It is enough to make a body ashamed
- of his race to think of the sort of froth that has
- always occupied its thrones without shadow of right
- or reason, and the seventh-rate people that have always
- figured as its aristocracies -- a company of monarchs
- and nobles who, as a rule, would have achieved only
- poverty and obscurity if left, like their betters, to their
- own exertions.
-
- The most of King Arthur's British nation were
- slaves, pure and simple, and bore that name, and wore
- the iron collar on their necks; and the rest were slaves
- in fact, but without the name; they imagined them-
- selves men and freemen, and called themselves so.
- The truth was, the nation as a body was in the world
- for one object, and one only: to grovel before king
- and Church and noble; to slave for them, sweat blood
- for them, starve that they might be fed, work that they
- might play, drink misery to the dregs that they might
- be happy, go naked that they might wear silks and
- jewels, pay taxes that they might be spared from pay-
- ing them, be familiar all their lives with the degrading
- language and postures of adulation that they might
- walk in pride and think themselves the gods of this
- world. And for all this, the thanks they got were
- cuffs and contempt; and so poor-spirited were they
- that they took even this sort of attention as an honor.
-
- Inherited ideas are a curious thing, and interesting
- to observe and examine. I had mine, the king and his
- people had theirs. In both cases they flowed in ruts
- worn deep by time and habit, and the man who should
- have proposed to divert them by reason and argument
- would have had a long contract on his hands. For
- instance, those people had inherited the idea that all
- men without title and a long pedigree, whether they
- had great natural gifts and acquirements or hadn't,
- were creatures of no more consideration than so many
- animals, bugs, insects; whereas I had inherited the
- idea that human daws who can consent to masquerade
- in the peacock-shams of inherited dignities and un-
- earned titles, are of no good but to be laughed at.
- The way I was looked upon was odd, but it was
- natural. You know how the keeper and the public
- regard the elephant in the menagerie: well, that is the
- idea. They are full of admiration of his vast bulk and
- his prodigious strength; they speak with pride of the
- fact that he can do a hundred marvels which are far
- and away beyond their own powers; and they speak
- with the same pride of the fact that in his wrath he is
- able to drive a thousand men before him. But does
- that make him one of THEM? No; the raggedest
- tramp in the pit would smile at the idea. He couldn't
- comprehend it; couldn't take it in; couldn't in any
- remote way conceive of it. Well, to the king, the
- nobles, and all the nation, down to the very slaves
- and tramps, I was just that kind of an elephant, and
- nothing more. I was admired, also feared; but it
- was as an animal is admired and feared. The animal
- is not reverenced, neither was I; I was not even re-
- spected. I had no pedigree, no inherited title; so
- in the king's and nobles' eyes I was mere dirt; the
- people regarded me with wonder and awe, but there
- was no reverence mixed with it; through the force of
- inherited ideas they were not able to conceive of any-
- thing being entitled to that except pedigree and lord-
- ship. There you see the hand of that awful power,
- the Roman Catholic Church. In two or three little
- centuries it had converted a nation of men to a nation
- of worms. Before the day of the Church's supremacy
- in the world, men were men, and held their heads up,
- and had a man's pride and spirit and independence;
- and what of greatness and position a person got, he
- got mainly by achievement, not by birth. But then
- the Church came to the front, with an axe to grind;
- and she was wise, subtle, and knew more than one
- way to skin a cat -- or a nation; she invented "divine
- right of kings," and propped it all around, brick by
- brick, with the Beatitudes -- wrenching them from
- their good purpose to make them fortify an evil one;
- she preached (to the commoner) humility, obedience
- to superiors, the beauty of self-sacrifice; she preached
- (to the commoner) meekness under insult; preached
- (still to the commoner, always to the commoner) pa-
- tience, meanness of spirit, non-resistance under op-
- pression; and she introduced heritable ranks and
- aristocracies, and taught all the Christian populations
- of the earth to bow down to them and worship them.
- Even down to my birth-century that poison was still in
- the blood of Christendom, and the best of English com-
- moners was still content to see his inferiors impudently
- continuing to hold a number of positions, such as lord-
- ships and the throne, to which the grotesque laws of
- his country did not allow him to aspire; in fact, he
- was not merely contented with this strange condition
- of things, he was even able to persuade himself that
- he was proud of it. It seems to show that there isn't
- anything you can't stand, if you are only born and
- bred to it. Of course that taint, that reverence for
- rank and title, had been in our American blood, too --
- I know that; but when I left America it had disap-
- peared -- at least to all intents and purposes. The
- remnant of it was restricted to the dudes and dudesses.
- When a disease has worked its way down to that level,
- it may fairly be said to be out of the system.
-
- But to return to my anomalous position in King
- Arthur's kingdom. Here I was, a giant among pig-
- mies, a man among children, a master intelligence
- among intellectual moles: by all rational measurement
- the one and only actually great man in that whole
- British world; and yet there and then, just as in the
- remote England of my birth-time, the sheep-witted
- earl who could claim long descent from a king's leman,
- acquired at second-hand from the slums of London,
- was a better man than I was. Such a personage was
- fawned upon in Arthur's realm and reverently looked
- up to by everybody, even though his dispositions were
- as mean as his intelligence, and his morals as base as
- his lineage. There were times when HE could sit down
- in the king's presence, but I couldn't. I could have
- got a title easily enough, and that would have raised
- me a large step in everybody's eyes; even in the
- king's, the giver of it. But I didn't ask for it; and I
- declined it when it was offered. I couldn't have enjoyed
- such a thing with my notions; and it wouldn't have
- been fair, anyway, because as far back as I could go,
- our tribe had always been short of the bar sinister. I
- couldn't have felt really and satisfactorily fine and
- proud and set-up over any title except one that should
- come from the nation itself, the only legitimate source;
- and such an one I hoped to win; and in the course of
- years of honest and honorable endeavor, I did win it
- and did wear it with a high and clean pride. This
- title fell casually from the lips of a blacksmith, one
- day, in a village, was caught up as a happy thought
- and tossed from mouth to mouth with a laugh and an
- affirmative vote; in ten days it had swept the kingdom,
- and was become as familiar as the king's name. I
- was never known by any other designation afterward,
- whether in the nation's talk or in grave debate upon
- matters of state at the council-board of the sovereign.
- This title, translated into modern speech, would be
- THE BOSS. Elected by the nation. That suited me.
- And it was a pretty high title. There were very few
- THE'S, and I was one of them. If you spoke of the
- duke, or the earl, or the bishop, how could anybody
- tell which one you meant? But if you spoke of The
- King or The Queen or The Boss, it was different.
-
- Well, I liked the king, and as king I respected him
- -- respected the office; at least respected it as much as
- I was capable of respecting any unearned supremacy;
- but as MEN I looked down upon him and his nobles --
- privately. And he and they liked me, and respected
- my office; but as an animal, without birth or sham
- title, they looked down upon me -- and were not par-
- ticularly private about it, either. I didn't charge for
- my opinion about them, and they didn't charge for
- their opinion about me: the account was square, the
- books balanced, everybody was satisfied.
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
- THE TOURNAMENT
-
- THEY were always having grand tournaments there
- at Camelot; and very stirring and picturesque
- and ridiculous human bull-fights they were, too, but
- just a little wearisome to the practical mind. How-
- ever, I was generally on hand -- for two reasons: a
- man must not hold himself aloof from the things which
- his friends and his community have at heart if he
- would be liked -- especially as a statesman; and both
- as business man and statesman I wanted to study the
- tournament and see if I couldn't invent an improve-
- ment on it. That reminds me to remark, in passing,
- that the very first official thing I did, in my adminis-
- tration -- and it was on the very first day of it, too --
- was to start a patent office; for I knew that a country
- without a patent office and good patent laws was just
- a crab, and couldn't travel any way but sideways or
- backways.
-
- Things ran along, a tournament nearly every week;
- and now and then the boys used to want me to take a
- hand -- I mean Sir Launcelot and the rest -- but I
- said I would by and by; no hurry yet, and too much
- government machinery to oil up and set to rights and
- start a-going.
-
- We had one tournament which was continued from
- day to day during more than a week, and as many as
- five hundred knights took part in it, from first to last.
- They were weeks gathering. They came on horseback
- from everywhere; from the very ends of the country,
- and even from beyond the sea; and many brought
- ladies, and all brought squires and troops of servants.
- It was a most gaudy and gorgeous crowd, as to cos-
- tumery, and very characteristic of the country and the
- time, in the way of high animal spirits, innocent inde-
- cencies of language, and happy-hearted indifference to
- morals. It was fight or look on, all day and every
- day; and sing, gamble, dance, carouse half the night
- every night. They had a most noble good time. You
- never saw such people. Those banks of beautiful
- ladies, shining in their barbaric splendors, would see
- a knight sprawl from his horse in the lists with a lance-
- shaft the thickness of your ankle clean through him
- and the blood spouting, and instead of fainting they
- would clap their hands and crowd each other for a
- better view; only sometimes one would dive into her
- handkerchief, and look ostentatiously broken-hearted,
- and then you could lay two to one that there was a
- scandal there somewhere and she was afraid the public
- hadn't found it out.
-
- The noise at night would have been annoying to me
- ordinarily, but I didn't mind it in the present circum-
- stances, because it kept me from hearing the quacks
- detaching legs and arms from the day's cripples.
- They ruined an uncommon good old cross-cut saw for
- me, and broke the saw-buck, too, but I let it pass.
- And as for my axe -- well, I made up my mind that
- the next time I lent an axe to a surgeon I would pick
- my century.
-
- I not only watched this tournament from day to day,
- but detailed an intelligent priest from my Department
- of Public Morals and Agriculture, and ordered him to
- report it; for it was my purpose by and by, when I
- should have gotten the people along far enough, to
- start a newspaper. The first thing you want in a new
- country, is a patent office; then work up your school
- system; and after that, out with your paper. A
- newspaper has its faults, and plenty of them, but no
- matter, it's hark from the tomb for a dead nation, and
- don't you forget it. You can't resurrect a dead nation
- without it; there isn't any way. So I wanted to
- sample things, and be finding out what sort of reporter-
- material I might be able to rake together out of the
- sixth century when I should come to need it.
-
- Well, the priest did very well, considering. He got
- in all the details, and that is a good thing in a local
- item: you see, he had kept books for the undertaker-
- department of his church when he was younger,
- and there, you know, the money's in the details; the
- more details, the more swag: bearers, mutes, candles,
- prayers -- everything counts; and if the bereaved don't
- buy prayers enough you mark up your candles with a
- forked pencil, and your bill shows up all right. And
- he had a good knack at getting in the complimentary
- thing here and there about a knight that was likely to
- advertise -- no, I mean a knight that had influence;
- and he also had a neat gift of exaggeration, for in his
- time he had kept door for a pious hermit who lived in
- a sty and worked miracles.
-
- Of course this novice's report lacked whoop and
- crash and lurid description, and therefore wanted the
- true ring; but its antique wording was quaint and
- sweet and simple, and full of the fragrances and flavors
- of the time, and these little merits made up in a meas-
- ure for its more important lacks. Here is an extract
- from it:
-
- Then Sir Brian de les Isles and Grummore Grummorsum,
- knights of the castle, encountered with Sir Aglovale and
- Sir Tor, and Sir Tor smote down Sir Grummore Grummorsum
- to the earth. Then came Sir Carados of the dolorous
- tower, and Sir Turquine, knights of the castle, and
- there encountered with them Sir Percivale de Galis
- and Sir Lamorak de Galis, that were two brethren, and
- there encountered Sir Percivale with Sir Carados, and
- either brake their spears unto their hands, and then
- Sir Turquine with Sir Lamorak, and either of them smote
- down other, horse and all, to the earth, and either
- parties rescued other and horsed them again. And Sir
- Arnold, and Sir Gauter, knights of the castle,
- encountered with Sir Brandiles and Sir Kay, and these
- four knights encountered mightily, and brake their
- spears to their hands. Then came Sir Pertolope from
- the castle, and there encountered with him Sir Lionel,
- and there Sir Pertolope the green knight smote down Sir
- Lionel, brother to Sir Launcelot. All this was marked
- by noble heralds, who bare him best, and their names.
- Then Sir Bleobaris brake his spear upon Sir Gareth,
- but of that stroke Sir Bleobaris fell to the earth.
- When Sir Galihodin saw that, he bad Sir Gareth keep him,
- and Sir Gareth smote him to the earth. Then Sir Galihud
- gat a spear to avenge his brother, and in the same wise
- Sir Gareth served him, and Sir Dinadan and his brother
- La Cote Male Taile, and Sir Sagramore le Disirous, and
- Sir Dodinas le Savage; all these he bare down with one
- spear. When King Aswisance of Ireland saw Sir Gareth
- fare so he marvelled what he might be, that one time
- seemed green, and another time, at his again coming,
- he seemed blue. And thus at every course that he rode
- to and fro he changed his color, so that there might
- neither king nor knight have ready cognizance of him.
- Then Sir Agwisance the King of Ireland encountered
- with Sir Gareth, and there Sir Gareth smote him from
- his horse, saddle and all. And then came King Carados
- of Scotland, and Sir Gareth smote him down horse and
- man. And in the same wise he served King Uriens of the
- land of Gore. And then there came in Six Bagdemagus,
- and Sir Gareth smote him down horse and man to the
- earth. And Bagdemagus's son Meliganus brake a spear
- upon Sir Gareth mightily and knightly. And then Sir
- Galahault the noble prince cried on high, Knight with
- the many colors, well hast thou justed; now make thee
- ready that I may just with thee. Sir Gareth heard him,
- and he gat a great spear, and so they encountered
- together, and there the prince brake his spear; but Sir
- Gareth smote him upon the left side of the helm, that
- he reeled here and there, and he had fallen down had not
- his men recovered him. Truly, said King Arthur, that
- knight with the many colors is a good knight. Wherefore
- the king called unto him Sir Launcelot, and prayed him
- to encounter with that knight. Sir, said Launcelot, I
- may as well find in my heart for to forbear him at
- this time, for he hath had travail enough this day, and
- when a good knight doth so well upon some day, it is
- no good knight's part to let him of his worship, and,
- namely, when he seeth a knight hath done so great
- labour; for peradventure, said Sir Launcelot, his
- quarrel is here this day, and peradventure he is best
- beloved with this lady of all that be here, for I see
- well he paineth himself and enforceth him to do great
- deeds, and therefore, said Sir Launcelot, as for me,
- this day he shall have the honour; though it lay in my
- power to put him from it, I would not.
-
- There was an unpleasant little episode that day,
- which for reasons of state I struck out of my priest's
- report. You will have noticed that Garry was doing
- some great fighting in the engagement. When I say
- Garry I mean Sir Gareth. Garry was my private pet
- name for him; it suggests that I had a deep affection
- for him, and that was the case. But it was a private
- pet name only, and never spoken aloud to any one,
- much less to him; being a noble, he would not have
- endured a familiarity like that from me. Well, to pro-
- ceed: I sat in the private box set apart for me as the
- king's minister. While Sir Dinadan was waiting for
- his turn to enter the lists, he came in there and sat
- down and began to talk; for he was always making up
- to me, because I was a stranger and he liked to have a
- fresh market for his jokes, the most of them having
- reached that stage of wear where the teller has to do
- the laughing himself while the other person looks sick.
- I had always responded to his efforts as well as I
- could, and felt a very deep and real kindness for him,
- too, for the reason that if by malice of fate he knew
- the one particular anecdote which I had heard oftenest
- and had most hated and most loathed all my life, he
- had at least spared it me. It was one which I had
- heard attributed to every humorous person who had
- ever stood on American soil, from Columbus down to
- Artemus Ward. It was about a humorous lecturer
- who flooded an ignorant audience with the killingest
- jokes for an hour and never got a laugh; and then
- when he was leaving, some gray simpletons wrung him
- gratefully by the hand and said it had been the funniest
- thing they had ever heard, and "it was all they could
- do to keep from laughin' right out in meetin'." That
- anecdote never saw the day that it was worth the telling;
- and yet I had sat under the telling of it hundreds and
- thousands and millions and billions of times, and cried
- and cursed all the way through. Then who can hope
- to know what my feelings were, to hear this armor-
- plated ass start in on it again, in the murky twilight of
- tradition, before the dawn of history, while even
- Lactantius might be referred to as "the late Lactan-
- tius," and the Crusades wouldn't be born for five
- hundred years yet? Just as he finished, the call-boy
- came; so, haw-hawing like a demon, he went rattling
- and clanking out like a crate of loose castings, and I
- knew nothing more. It was some minutes before I
- came to, and then I opened my eyes just in time to
- see Sir Gareth fetch him an awful welt, and I uncon-
- sciously out with the prayer, "I hope to gracious he's
- killed!" But by ill-luck, before I had got half through
- with the words, Sir Gareth crashed into Sir Sagramor
- le Desirous and sent him thundering over his horse's
- crupper, and Sir Sagramor caught my remark and
- thought I meant it for HIM.
-
- Well, whenever one of those people got a thing into
- his head, there was no getting it out again. I knew
- that, so I saved my breath, and offered no explana-
- tions. As soon as Sir Sagramor got well, he notified
- me that there was a little account to settle between us,
- and he named a day three or four years in the future;
- place of settlement, the lists where the offense had
- been given. I said I would be ready when he got
- back. You see, he was going for the Holy Grail.
- The boys all took a flier at the Holy Grail now and
- then. It was a several years' cruise. They always
- put in the long absence snooping around, in the most
- conscientious way, though none of them had any idea
- where the Holy Grail really was, and I don't think any
- of them actually expected to find it, or would have
- known what to do with it if he HAD run across it.
- You see, it was just the Northwest Passage of that
- day, as you may say; that was all. Every year expe-
- ditions went out holy grailing, and next year relief
- expeditions went out to hunt for THEM. There was
- worlds of reputation in it, but no money. Why, they
- actually wanted ME to put in! Well, I should smile.
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
- BEGINNINGS OF CIVILIZATION
-
- THE Round Table soon heard of the challenge, and
- of course it was a good deal discussed, for such
- things interested the boys. The king thought I ought
- now to set forth in quest of adventures, so that I
- might gain renown and be the more worthy to meet
- Sir Sagramor when the several years should have rolled
- away. I excused myself for the present; I said it
- would take me three or four years yet to get things
- well fixed up and going smoothly; then I should be
- ready; all the chances were that at the end of that
- time Sir Sagramor would still be out grailing, so no
- valuable time would be lost by the postponement; I
- should then have been in office six or seven years,
- and I believed my system and machinery would be so
- well developed that I could take a holiday without its
- working any harm.
-
- I was pretty well satisfied with what I had already
- accomplished. In various quiet nooks and corners I
- had the beginnings of all sorts of industries under way
- -- nuclei of future vast factories, the iron and steel
- missionaries of my future civilization. In these were
- gathered together the brightest young minds I could
- find, and I kept agents out raking the country for
- more, all the time. I was training a crowd of ignorant
- folk into experts -- experts in every sort of handiwork
- and scientific calling. These nurseries of mine went
- smoothly and privately along undisturbed in their ob-
- scure country retreats, for nobody was allowed to
- come into their precincts without a special permit --
- for I was afraid of the Church.
-
- I had started a teacher-factory and a lot of Sunday-
- schools the first thing; as a result, I now had an ad-
- mirable system of graded schools in full blast in those
- places, and also a complete variety of Protestant con-
- gregations all in a prosperous and growing condition.
- Everybody could be any kind of a Christian he wanted
- to; there was perfect freedom in that matter. But I
- confined public religious teaching to the churches and
- the Sunday-schools, permitting nothing of it in my
- other educational buildings. I could have given my
- own sect the preference and made everybody a Presby-
- terian without any trouble, but that would have been
- to affront a law of human nature: spiritual wants and
- instincts are as various in the human family as are
- physical appetites, complexions, and features, and a
- man is only at his best, morally, when he is equipped
- with the religious garment whose color and shape and
- size most nicely accommodate themselves to the spirit-
- ual complexion, angularities, and stature of the indi-
- vidual who wears it; and, besides, I was afraid of a
- united Church; it makes a mighty power, the mightiest
- conceivable, and then when it by and by gets into
- selfish hands, as it is always bound to do, it means
- death to human liberty and paralysis to human
- thought.
-
- All mines were royal property, and there were a
- good many of them. They had formerly been worked
- as savages always work mines -- holes grubbed in the
- earth and the mineral brought up in sacks of hide by
- hand, at the rate of a ton a day; but I had begun to
- put the mining on a scientific basis as early as I could.
-
- Yes, I had made pretty handsome progress when Sir
- Sagramor's challenge struck me.
-
- Four years rolled by -- and then! Well, you would
- never imagine it in the world. Unlimited power is the
- ideal thing when it is in safe hands. The despotism of
- heaven is the one absolutely perfect government. An
- earthly despotism would be the absolutely perfect earthly
- government, if the conditions were the same, namely,
- the despot the perfectest individual of the human race,
- and his lease of life perpetual. But as a perishable
- perfect man must die, and leave his despotism in the
- hands of an imperfect successor, an earthly despotism
- is not merely a bad form of government, it is the worst
- form that is possible.
-
- My works showed what a despot could do with the
- resources of a kingdom at his command. Unsuspected
- by this dark land, I had the civilization of the nine-
- teenth century booming under its very nose! It was
- fenced away from the public view, but there it was, a
- gigantic and unassailable fact -- and to be heard from,
- yet, if I lived and had luck. There it was, as sure a
- fact and as substantial a fact as any serene volcano,
- standing innocent with its smokeless summit in the
- blue sky and giving no sign of the rising hell in its
- bowels. My schools and churches were children four
- years before; they were grown-up now; my shops of
- that day were vast factories now; where I had a dozen
- trained men then, I had a thousand now; where I had
- one brilliant expert then, I had fifty now. I stood
- with my hand on the cock, so to speak, ready to turn
- it on and flood the midnight world with light at any
- moment. But I was not going to do the thing in that
- sudden way. It was not my policy. The people
- could not have stood it; and, moreover, I should have
- had the Established Roman Catholic Church on my
- back in a minute.
-
- No, I had been going cautiously all the while. I
- had had confidential agents trickling through the
- country some time, whose office was to undermine
- knighthood by imperceptible degrees, and to gnaw a
- little at this and that and the other superstition, and so
- prepare the way gradually for a better order of things.
- I was turning on my light one-candle-power at a time,
- and meant to continue to do so.
-
- I had scattered some branch schools secretly about
- the kingdom, and they were doing very well. I meant
- to work this racket more and more, as time wore on, if
- nothing occurred to frighten me. One of my deepest
- secrets was my West Point -- my military academy. I
- kept that most jealously out of sight; and I did the
- same with my naval academy which I had established
- at a remote seaport. Both were prospering to my
- satisfaction.
-
- Clarence was twenty-two now, and was my head
- executive, my right hand. He was a darling; he was
- equal to anything; there wasn't anything he couldn't
- turn his hand to. Of late I had been training him for
- journalism, for the time seemed about right for a start
- in the newspaper line; nothing big, but just a small
- weekly for experimental circulation in my civilization-
- nurseries. He took to it like a duck; there was an
- editor concealed in him, sure. Already he had doubled
- himself in one way; he talked sixth century and wrote
- nineteenth. His journalistic style was climbing, stead-
- ily; it was already up to the back settlement Alabama
- mark, and couldn't be told from the editorial output of
- that region either by matter or flavor.
-
- We had another large departure on hand, too. This
- was a telegraph and a telephone; our first venture in
- this line. These wires were for private service only,
- as yet, and must be kept private until a riper day
- should come. We had a gang of men on the road,
- working mainly by night. They were stringing ground
- wires; we were afraid to put up poles, for they would
- attract too much inquiry. Ground wires were good
- enough, in both instances, for my wires were protected
- by an insulation of my own invention which was per-
- fect. My men had orders to strike across country,
- avoiding roads, and establishing connection with any
- considerable towns whose lights betrayed their pres-
- ence, and leaving experts in charge. Nobody could
- tell you how to find any place in the kingdom, for
- nobody ever went intentionally to any place, but only
- struck it by accident in his wanderings, and then gener-
- ally left it without thinking to inquire what its name
- was. At one time and another we had sent out topo-
- graphical expeditions to survey and map the kingdom,
- but the priests had always interfered and raised trouble.
- So we had given the thing up, for the present; it
- would be poor wisdom to antagonize the Church.
-
- As for the general condition of the country, it was
- as it had been when I arrived in it, to all intents and
- purposes. I had made changes, but they were neces-
- sarily slight, and they were not noticeable. Thus far,
- I had not even meddled with taxation, outside of the
- taxes which provided the royal revenues. I had
- systematized those, and put the service on an effective
- and righteous basis. As a result, these revenues were
- already quadrupled, and yet the burden was so much
- more equably distributed than before, that all the king-
- dom felt a sense of relief, and the praises of my ad-
- ministration were hearty and general.
-
- Personally, I struck an interruption, now, but I did
- not mind it, it could not have happened at a better
- time. Earlier it could have annoyed me, but now
- everything was in good hands and swimming right
- along. The king had reminded me several times, of
- late, that the postponement I had asked for, four years
- before, had about run out now. It was a hint that I
- ought to be starting out to seek adventures and get up
- a reputation of a size to make me worthy of the honor
- of breaking a lance with Sir Sagramor, who was still
- out grailing, but was being hunted for by various relief
- expeditions, and might be found any year, now. So
- you see I was expecting this interruption; it did not
- take me by surprise.
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
- THE YANKEE IN SEARCH OF ADVENTURES.
-
- THERE never was such a country for wandering
- liars; and they were of both sexes. Hardly a
- month went by without one of these tramps arriving;
- and generally loaded with a tale about some princess
- or other wanting help to get her out of some far-away
- castle where she was held in captivity by a lawless
- scoundrel, usually a giant. Now you would think that
- the first thing the king would do after listening to such
- a novelette from an entire stranger, would be to ask
- for credentials -- yes, and a pointer or two as to
- locality of castle, best route to it, and so on. But
- nobody ever thought of so simple and common-sense
- a thing at that. No, everybody swallowed these peo-
- ple's lies whole, and never asked a question of any
- sort or about anything. Well, one day when I was
- not around, one of these people came along -- it was a
- she one, this time -- and told a tale of the usual pat-
- tern. Her mistress was a captive in a vast and gloomy
- castle, along with forty-four other young and beautiful
- girls, pretty much all of them princesses; they had
- been languishing in that cruel captivity for twenty-six
- years; the masters of the castle were three stupendous
- brothers, each with four arms and one eye -- the eye in
- the center of the forehead, and as big as a fruit. Sort of
- fruit not mentioned; their usual slovenliness in statistics.
-
- Would you believe it? The king and the whole
- Round Table were in raptures over this preposterous
- opportunity for adventure. Every knight of the Table
- jumped for the chance, and begged for it; but to their
- vexation and chagrin the king conferred it upon me,
- who had not asked for it at all.
-
- By an effort, I contained my joy when Clarence
- brought me the news. But he -- he could not contain
- his. His mouth gushed delight and gratitude in a
- steady discharge -- delight in my good fortune, grati-
- tude to the king for this splendid mark of his favor for
- me. He could keep neither his legs nor his body still,
- but pirouetted about the place in an airy ecstasy of
- happiness.
-
- On my side, I could have cursed the kindness that
- conferred upon me this benefaction, but I kept my
- vexation under the surface for policy's sake, and did
- what I could to let on to be glad. Indeed, I SAID I
- was glad. And in a way it was true; I was as glad as
- a person is when he is scalped.
-
- Well, one must make the best of things, and not
- waste time with useless fretting, but get down to busi-
- ness and see what can be done. In all lies there is
- wheat among the chaff; I must get at the wheat in this
- case: so I sent for the girl and she came. She was a
- comely enough creature, and soft and modest, but, if
- signs went for anything, she didn't know as much as a
- lady's watch. I said:
-
- "My dear, have you been questioned as to particu-
- lars?"
-
- She said she hadn't.
-
- "Well, I didn't expect you had, but I thought I
- would ask, to make sure; it's the way I've been raised.
- Now you mustn't take it unkindly if I remind you that
- as we don't know you, we must go a little slow. You
- may be all right, of course, and we'll hope that you
- are; but to take it for granted isn't business. YOU
- understand that. I'm obliged to ask you a few ques-
- tions; just answer up fair and square, and don't be
- afraid. Where do you live, when you are at home?"
-
- "In the land of Moder, fair sir."
-
- "Land of Moder. I don't remember hearing of it
- before. Parents living?"
-
- "As to that, I know not if they be yet on live, sith
- it is many years that I have lain shut up in the castle."
-
- "Your name, please?"
-
- "I hight the Demoiselle Alisande la Carteloise, an it
- please you."
-
- "Do you know anybody here who can identify you?"
-
- "That were not likely, fair lord, I being come hither
- now for the first time."
-
- "Have you brought any letters -- any documents --
- any proofs that you are trustworthy and truthful?"
-
- "Of a surety, no; and wherefore should I? Have
- I not a tongue, and cannot I say all that myself?"
-
- "But YOUR saying it, you know, and somebody
- else's saying it, is different."
-
- "Different? How might that be? I fear me I do
- not understand."
-
- "Don't UNDERSTAND? Land of -- why, you see --
- you see -- why, great Scott, can't you understand a
- little thing like that? Can't you understand the
- difference between your -- WHY do you look so inno-
- cent and idiotic!"
-
- "I? In truth I know not, but an it were the will of
- God."
-
- "Yes, yes, I reckon that's about the size of it.
- Don't mind my seeming excited; I'm not. Let us
- change the subject. Now as to this castle, with forty-
- five princesses in it, and three ogres at the head of it,
- tell me -- where is this harem?"
-
- "Harem?"
-
- "The CASTLE, you understand; where is the castle?"
-
- "Oh, as to that, it is great, and strong, and well beseen,
- and lieth in a far country. Yes, it is many leagues."
-
- "HOW many?"
-
- "Ah, fair sir, it were woundily hard to tell, they
- are so many, and do so lap the one upon the other,
- and being made all in the same image and tincted with
- the same color, one may not know the one league from
- its fellow, nor how to count them except they be taken
- apart, and ye wit well it were God's work to do that,
- being not within man's capacity; for ye will note --"
-
- "Hold on, hold on, never mind about the distance;
- WHEREABOUTS does the castle lie? What's the direction
- from here?"
-
- "Ah, please you sir, it hath no direction from
- here; by reason that the road lieth not straight, but
- turneth evermore; wherefore the direction of its place
- abideth not, but is some time under the one sky and
- anon under another, whereso if ye be minded that it is
- in the east, and wend thitherward, ye shall observe that
- the way of the road doth yet again turn upon itself by
- the space of half a circle, and this marvel happing
- again and yet again and still again, it will grieve you
- that you had thought by vanities of the mind to thwart
- and bring to naught the will of Him that giveth not a
- castle a direction from a place except it pleaseth Him,
- and if it please Him not, will the rather that even all
- castles and all directions thereunto vanish out of the
- earth, leaving the places wherein they tarried desolate
- and vacant, so warning His creatures that where He
- will He will, and where He will not He --"
-
- "Oh, that's all right, that's all right, give us a rest;
- never mind about the direction, HANG the direction -- I
- beg pardon, I beg a thousand pardons, I am not well
- to-day; pay no attention when I soliloquize, it is an
- old habit, an old, bad habit, and hard to get rid of
- when one's digestion is all disordered with eating food
- that was raised forever and ever before he was born;
- good land! a man can't keep his functions regular on
- spring chickens thirteen hundred years old. But come
- -- never mind about that; let's -- have you got such
- a thing as a map of that region about you? Now a
- good map --"
-
- "Is it peradventure that manner of thing which of
- late the unbelievers have brought from over the great
- seas, which, being boiled in oil, and an onion and salt
- added thereto, doth --"
-
- "What, a map? What are you talking about?
- Don't you know what a map is? There, there, never
- mind, don't explain, I hate explanations; they fog a
- thing up so that you can't tell anything about it. Run
- along, dear; good-day; show her the way, Clarence."
-
- Oh, well, it was reasonably plain, now, why these
- donkeys didn't prospect these liars for details. It
- may be that this girl had a fact in her somewhere, but
- I don't believe you could have sluiced it out with a
- hydraulic; nor got it with the earlier forms of blasting,
- even; it was a case for dynamite. Why, she was a
- perfect ass; and yet the king and his knights had
- listened to her as if she had been a leaf out of the
- gospel. It kind of sizes up the whole party. And
- think of the simple ways of this court: this wandering
- wench hadn't any more trouble to get access to the
- king in his palace than she would have had to get into
- the poorhouse in my day and country. In fact, he
- was glad to see her, glad to hear her tale; with that
- adventure of hers to offer, she was as welcome as a
- corpse is to a coroner.
-
- Just as I was ending-up these reflections, Clarence
- came back. I remarked upon the barren result of my
- efforts with the girl; hadn't got hold of a single point
- that could help me to find the castle. The youth
- looked a little surprised, or puzzled, or something, and
- intimated that he had been wondering to himself what
- I had wanted to ask the girl all those questions for.
-
- "Why, great guns," I said, "don't I want to find
- the castle? And how else would I go about it?"
-
- "La, sweet your worship, one may lightly answer
- that, I ween. She will go with thee. They always
- do. She will ride with thee."
-
- "Ride with me? Nonsense!"
-
- "But of a truth she will. She will ride with thee.
- Thou shalt see."
-
- "What? She browse around the hills and scour the
- woods with me -- alone -- and I as good as engaged to
- be married? Why, it's scandalous. Think how it
- would look."
-
- My, the dear face that rose before me! The boy
- was eager to know all about this tender matter. I
- swore him to secresy and then whispered her name --
- "Puss Flanagan." He looked disappointed, and said
- he didn't remember the countess. How natural it was
- for the little courtier to give her a rank. He asked me
- where she lived.
-
- "In East Har--" I came to myself and stopped,
- a little confused; then I said, "Never mind, now; I'll
- tell you some time."
-
- And might he see her? Would I let him see her
- some day?
-
- It was but a little thing to promise -- thirteen hun-
- dred years or so -- and he so eager; so I said Yes.
- But I sighed; I couldn't help it. And yet there was
- no sense in sighing, for she wasn't born yet. But that
- is the way we are made: we don't reason, where we
- feel; we just feel.
-
- My expedition was all the talk that day and that
- night, and the boys were very good to me, and made
- much of me, and seemed to have forgotten their vexa-
- tion and disappointment, and come to be as anxious
- for me to hive those ogres and set those ripe old vir-
- gins loose as if it were themselves that had the con-
- tract. Well, they WERE good children -- but just chil-
- dren, that is all. And they gave me no end of points
- about how to scout for giants, and how to scoop them
- in; and they told me all sorts of charms against en-
- chantments, and gave me salves and other rubbish to
- put on my wounds. But it never occurred to one of
- them to reflect that if I was such a wonderful necro-
- mancer as I was pretending to be, I ought not to need
- salves or instructions, or charms against enchantments,
- and, least of all, arms and armor, on a foray of any
- kind -- even against fire-spouting dragons, and devils
- hot from perdition, let alone such poor adversaries as
- these I was after, these commonplace ogres of the
- back settlements.
-
- I was to have an early breakfast, and start at dawn,
- for that was the usual way; but I had the demon's
- own time with my armor, and this delayed me a little.
- It is troublesome to get into, and there is so much
- detail. First you wrap a layer or two of blanket around
- your body, for a sort of cushion and to keep off the
- cold iron; then you put on your sleeves and shirt of
- chain mail -- these are made of small steel links woven
- together, and they form a fabric so flexible that if you
- toss your shirt onto the floor, it slumps into a pile like
- a peck of wet fish-net; it is very heavy and is nearly
- the uncomfortablest material in the world for a night
- shirt, yet plenty used it for that -- tax collectors, and
- reformers, and one-horse kings with a defective title,
- and those sorts of people; then you put on your shoes
- -- flat-boats roofed over with interleaving bands of
- steel -- and screw your clumsy spurs into the heels.
- Next you buckle your greaves on your legs, and your
- cuisses on your thighs; then come your backplate and
- your breastplate, and you begin to feel crowded; then
- you hitch onto the breastplate the half-petticoat of
- broad overlapping bands of steel which hangs down in
- front but is scolloped out behind so you can sit down,
- and isn't any real improvement on an inverted coal
- scuttle, either for looks or for wear, or to wipe your
- hands on; next you belt on your sword; then you
- put your stove-pipe joints onto your arms, your iron
- gauntlets onto your hands, your iron rat-trap onto
- your head, with a rag of steel web hitched onto it to
- hang over the back of your neck -- and there you are,
- snug as a candle in a candle-mould. This is no time
- to dance. Well, a man that is packed away like that
- is a nut that isn't worth the cracking, there is so little
- of the meat, when you get down to it, by comparison
- with the shell.
-
- The boys helped me, or I never could have got in.
- Just as we finished, Sir Bedivere happened in, and I
- saw that as like as not I hadn't chosen the most con-
- venient outfit for a long trip. How stately he looked;
- and tall and broad and grand. He had on his head a
- conical steel casque that only came down to his ears,
- and for visor had only a narrow steel bar that extended
- down to his upper lip and protected his nose; and all
- the rest of him, from neck to heel, was flexible chain
- mail, trousers and all. But pretty much all of him was
- hidden under his outside garment, which of course was
- of chain mail, as I said, and hung straight from his
- shoulders to his ankles; and from his middle to the
- bottom, both before and behind, was divided, so that
- he could ride and let the skirts hang down on each
- side. He was going grailing, and it was just the outfit
- for it, too. I would have given a good deal for that
- ulster, but it was too late now to be fooling around.
- The sun was just up, the king and the court were all
- on hand to see me off and wish me luck; so it wouldn't
- be etiquette for me to tarry. You don't get on your
- horse yourself; no, if you tried it you would get dis-
- appointed. They carry you out, just as they carry a
- sun-struck man to the drug store, and put you on, and
- help get you to rights, and fix your feet in the stirrups;
- and all the while you do feel so strange and stuffy and
- like somebody else -- like somebody that has been mar-
- ried on a sudden, or struck by lightning, or something
- like that, and hasn't quite fetched around yet, and is sort
- of numb, and can't just get his bearings. Then they
- stood up the mast they called a spear, in its socket by
- my left foot, and I gripped it with my hand; lastly
- they hung my shield around my neck, and I was all
- complete and ready to up anchor and get to sea.
- Everybody was as good to me as they could be, and
- a maid of honor gave me the stirrup-cup her own self.
- There was nothing more to do now, but for that
- damsel to get up behind me on a pillion, which she
- did, and put an arm or so around me to hold on.
-
- And so we started, and everybody gave us a good-
- bye and waved their handkerchiefs or helmets. And
- everybody we met, going down the hill and through
- the village was respectful to us, except some shabby
- little boys on the outskirts. They said:
-
- "Oh, what a guy!" And hove clods at us.
-
- In my experience boys are the same in all ages.
- They don't respect anything, they don't care for any-
- thing or anybody. They say "Go up, baldhead" to
- the prophet going his unoffending way in the gray of
- antiquity; they sass me in the holy gloom of the
- Middle Ages; and I had seen them act the same way
- in Buchanan's administration; I remember, because I
- was there and helped. The prophet had his bears and
- settled with his boys; and I wanted to get down and
- settle with mine, but it wouldn't answer, because I
- couldn't have got up again. I hate a country without
- a derrick.
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
- SLOW TORTURE
-
- STRAIGHT off, we were in the country. It was
- most lovely and pleasant in those sylvan solitudes
- in the early cool morning in the first freshness of
- autumn. From hilltops we saw fair green valleys lying
- spread out below, with streams winding through them,
- and island groves of trees here and there, and huge
- lonely oaks scattered about and casting black blots of
- shade; and beyond the valleys we saw the ranges of
- hills, blue with haze, stretching away in billowy per-
- spective to the horizon, with at wide intervals a dim
- fleck of white or gray on a wave-summit, which we
- knew was a castle. We crossed broad natural lawns
- sparkling with dew, and we moved like spirits, the
- cushioned turf giving out no sound of footfall; we
- dreamed along through glades in a mist of green light
- that got its tint from the sun-drenched roof of leaves
- overhead, and by our feet the clearest and coldest of
- runlets went frisking and gossiping over its reefs and
- making a sort of whispering music, comfortable to hear;
- and at times we left the world behind and entered into
- the solemn great deeps and rich gloom of the forest,
- where furtive wild things whisked and scurried by and
- were gone before you could even get your eye on the
- place where the noise was; and where only the earliest
- birds were turning out and getting to business with a
- song here and a quarrel yonder and a mysterious far-
- off hammering and drumming for worms on a tree trunk
- away somewhere in the impenetrable remotenesses of
- the woods. And by and by out we would swing again
- into the glare.
-
- About the third or fourth or fifth time that we swung
- out into the glare -- it was along there somewhere, a
- couple of hours or so after sun-up -- it wasn't as pleas-
- ant as it had been. It was beginning to get hot. This
- was quite noticeable. We had a very long pull, after
- that, without any shade. Now it is curious how
- progressively little frets grow and multiply after they
- once get a start. Things which I didn't mind at all,
- at first, I began to mind now -- and more and more,
- too, all the time. The first ten or fifteen times I wanted
- my handkerchief I didn't seem to care; I got along,
- and said never mind, it isn't any matter, and dropped
- it out of my mind. But now it was different; I wanted
- it all the time; it was nag, nag, nag, right along, and
- no rest; I couldn't get it out of my mind; and so at
- last I lost my temper and said hang a man that would
- make a suit of armor without any pockets in it. You
- see I had my handkerchief in my helmet; and some
- other things; but it was that kind of a helmet that you
- can't take off by yourself. That hadn't occurred to
- me when I put it there; and in fact I didn't know it.
- I supposed it would be particularly convenient there.
- And so now, the thought of its being there, so handy
- and close by, and yet not get-at-able, made it all the
- worse and the harder to bear. Yes, the thing that you
- can't get is the thing that you want, mainly; every one
- has noticed that. Well, it took my mind off from every-
- thing else; took it clear off, and centered it in my
- helmet; and mile after mile, there it stayed, imagining
- the handkerchief, picturing the handkerchief; and it
- was bitter and aggravating to have the salt sweat keep
- trickling down into my eyes, and I couldn't get at it.
- It seems like a little thing, on paper, but it was not a
- little thing at all; it was the most real kind of misery.
- I would not say it if it was not so. I made up my
- mind that I would carry along a reticule next time, let
- it look how it might, and people say what they would.
- Of course these iron dudes of the Round Table would
- think it was scandalous, and maybe raise Sheol about
- it, but as for me, give me comfort first, and style after-
- wards. So we jogged along, and now and then we
- struck a stretch of dust, and it would tumble up in
- clouds and get into my nose and make me sneeze
- and cry; and of course I said things I oughtn't to
- have said, I don't deny that. I am not better than
- others.
-
- We couldn't seem to meet anybody in this lone-
- some Britain, not even an ogre; and, in the mood I
- was in then, it was well for the ogre; that is, an
- ogre with a handkerchief. Most knights would have
- thought of nothing but getting his armor; but so I
- got his bandanna, he could keep his hardware, for all
- of me.
-
- Meantime, it was getting hotter and hotter in there.
- You see, the sun was beating down and warming up the
- iron more and more all the time. Well, when you are
- hot, that way, every little thing irritates you. When I
- trotted, I rattled like a crate of dishes, and that annoyed
- me; and moreover I couldn't seem to stand that
- shield slatting and banging, now about my breast, now
- around my back; and if I dropped into a walk my
- joints creaked and screeched in that wearisome way that
- a wheelbarrow does, and as we didn't create any breeze
- at that gait, I was like to get fried in that stove; and
- besides, the quieter you went the heavier the iron set-
- tled down on you and the more and more tons you
- seemed to weigh every minute. And you had to be
- always changing hands, and passing your spear over to
- the other foot, it got so irksome for one hand to hold
- it long at a time.
-
- Well, you know, when you perspire that way, in
- rivers, there comes a time when you -- when you --
- well, when you itch. You are inside, your hands are
- outside; so there you are; nothing but iron between.
- It is not a light thing, let it sound as it may. First
- it is one place; then another; then some more; and
- it goes on spreading and spreading, and at last the ter-
- ritory is all occupied, and nobody can imagine what
- you feel like, nor how unpleasant it is. And when it
- had got to the worst, and it seemed to me that I could
- not stand anything more, a fly got in through the bars
- and settled on my nose, and the bars were stuck and
- wouldn't work, and I couldn't get the visor up; and I
- could only shake my head, which was baking hot by
- this time, and the fly -- well, you know how a fly acts
- when he has got a certainty -- he only minded the
- shaking enough to change from nose to lip, and lip to
- ear, and buzz and buzz all around in there, and keep
- on lighting and biting, in a way that a person, already
- so distressed as I was, simply could not stand. So I
- gave in, and got Alisande to unship the helmet and
- relieve me of it. Then she emptied the conveniences
- out of it and fetched it full of water, and I drank and
- then stood up, and she poured the rest down inside the
- armor. One cannot think how refreshing it was. She
- continued to fetch and pour until I was well soaked
- and thoroughly comfortable.
-
- It was good to have a rest -- and peace. But nothing
- is quite perfect in this life, at any time. I had made a
- pipe a while back, and also some pretty fair tobacco;
- not the real thing, but what some of the Indians use:
- the inside bark of the willow, dried. These comforts
- had been in the helmet, and now I had them again, but
- no matches.
-
- Gradually, as the time wore along, one annoying fact
- was borne in upon my understanding -- that we were
- weather-bound. An armed novice cannot mount his
- horse without help and plenty of it. Sandy was not
- enough; not enough for me, anyway. We had to wait
- until somebody should come along. Waiting, in
- silence, would have been agreeable enough, for I was
- full of matter for reflection, and wanted to give it a
- chance to work. I wanted to try and think out how it
- was that rational or even half-rational men could ever
- have learned to wear armor, considering its incon-
- veniences; and how they had managed to keep up such
- a fashion for generations when it was plain that what I
- had suffered to-day they had had to suffer all the days
- of their lives. I wanted to think that out; and more-
- over I wanted to think out some way to reform this
- evil and persuade the people to let the foolish fashion
- die out; but thinking was out of the question in the
- circumstances. You couldn't think, where Sandy
- was.
-
- She was a quite biddable creature and good-hearted,
- but she had a flow of talk that was as steady as a mill,
- and made your head sore like the drays and wagons in
- a city. If she had had a cork she would have been a
- comfort. But you can't cork that kind; they would
- die. Her clack was going all day, and you would think
- something would surely happen to her works, by and
- by; but no, they never got out of order; and she
- never had to slack up for words. She could grind,
- and pump, and churn, and buzz by the week, and never
- stop to oil up or blow out. And yet the result was
- just nothing but wind. She never had any ideas, any
- more than a fog has. She was a perfect blatherskite;
- I mean for jaw, jaw, jaw, talk, talk, talk, jabber, jabber,
- jabber; but just as good as she could be. I hadn't
- minded her mill that morning, on account of having
- that hornets' nest of other troubles; but more than
- once in the afternoon I had to say:
-
- "Take a rest, child; the way you are using up all
- the domestic air, the kingdom will have to go to im-
- porting it by to-morrow, and it's a low enough treasury
- without that."
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
- FREEMEN
-
- YES, it is strange how little a while at a time a per-
- son can be contented. Only a little while back,
- when I was riding and suffering, what a heaven this
- peace, this rest, this sweet serenity in this secluded
- shady nook by this purling stream would have seemed,
- where I could keep perfectly comfortable all the time
- by pouring a dipper of water into my armor now and
- then; yet already I was getting dissatisfied; partly be-
- cause I could not light my pipe -- for, although I had
- long ago started a match factory, I had forgotten to
- bring matches with me -- and partly because we had
- nothing to eat. Here was another illustration of the
- childlike improvidence of this age and people. A man
- in armor always trusted to chance for his food on a
- journey, and would have been scandalized at the idea
- of hanging a basket of sandwiches on his spear. There
- was probably not a knight of all the Round Table com-
- bination who would not rather have died than been
- caught carrying such a thing as that on his flagstaff.
- And yet there could not be anything more sensible.
- It had been my intention to smuggle a couple of sand-
- wiches into my helmet, but I was interrupted in the act,
- and had to make an excuse and lay them aside, and a
- dog got them.
-
- Night approached, and with it a storm. The dark-
- ness came on fast. We must camp, of course. I
- found a good shelter for the demoiselle under a rock,
- and went off and found another for myself. But I was
- obliged to remain in my armor, because I could not get
- it off by myself and yet could not allow Alisande to
- help, because it would have seemed so like undressing
- before folk. It would not have amounted to that in
- reality, because I had clothes on underneath; but the
- prejudices of one's breeding are not gotten rid of just
- at a jump, and I knew that when it came to stripping
- off that bob-tailed iron petticoat I should be embarrassed.
-
- With the storm came a change of weather; and the
- stronger the wind blew, and the wilder the rain lashed
- around, the colder and colder it got. Pretty soon,
- various kinds of bugs and ants and worms and things
- began to flock in out of the wet and crawl down in-
- side my armor to get warm; and while some of them
- behaved well enough, and snuggled up amongst my
- clothes and got quiet, the majority were of a restless,
- uncomfortable sort, and never stayed still, but went
- on prowling and hunting for they did not know what;
- especially the ants, which went tickling along in
- wearisome procession from one end of me to the other
- by the hour, and are a kind of creatures which I
- never wish to sleep with again. It would be my advice
- to persons situated in this way, to not roll or thrash
- around, because this excites the interest of all the
- different sorts of animals and makes every last one of
- them want to turn out and see what is going on, and
- this makes things worse than they were before, and of
- course makes you objurgate harder, too, if you can.
- Still, if one did not roll and thrash around he would
- die; so perhaps it is as well to do one way as the other;
- there is no real choice. Even after I was frozen solid
- I could still distinguish that tickling, just as a corpse
- does when he is taking electric treatment. I said I
- would never wear armor after this trip.
-
- All those trying hours whilst I was frozen and yet
- was in a living fire, as you may say, on account of that
- swarm of crawlers, that same unanswerable question
- kept circling and circling through my tired head: How
- do people stand this miserable armor? How have they
- managed to stand it all these generations? How can
- they sleep at night for dreading the tortures of next
- day?
-
- When the morning came at last, I was in a bad
- enough plight: seedy, drowsy, fagged, from want of
- sleep; weary from thrashing around, famished from
- long fasting; pining for a bath, and to get rid of the
- animals; and crippled with rheumatism. And how
- had it fared with the nobly born, the titled aristocrat,
- the Demoiselle Alisande la Carteloise? Why, she was
- as fresh as a squirrel; she had slept like the dead; and
- as for a bath, probably neither she nor any other noble
- in the land had ever had one, and so she was not
- missing it. Measured by modern standards, they were
- merely modified savages, those people. This noble
- lady showed no impatience to get to breakfast -- and
- that smacks of the savage, too. On their journeys
- those Britons were used to long fasts, and knew how to
- bear them; and also how to freight up against probable
- fasts before starting, after the style of the Indian and
- the anaconda. As like as not, Sandy was loaded for a
- three-day stretch.
-
- We were off before sunrise, Sandy riding and I limp-
- ing along behind. In half an hour we came upon a
- group of ragged poor creatures who had assembled to
- mend the thing which was regarded as a road. They
- were as humble as animals to me; and when I pro-
- posed to breakfast with them, they were so flattered, so
- overwhelmed by this extraordinary condescension of
- mine that at first they were not able to believe that I
- was in earnest. My lady put up her scornful lip and
- withdrew to one side; she said in their hearing that she
- would as soon think of eating with the other cattle -- a
- remark which embarrassed these poor devils merely be-
- cause it referred to them, and not because it insulted or
- offended them, for it didn't. And yet they were not
- slaves, not chattels. By a sarcasm of law and phrase
- they were freemen. Seven-tenths of the free popula-
- tion of the country were of just their class and degree:
- small "independent" farmers, artisans, etc.; which
- is to say, they were the nation, the actual Nation;
- they were about all of it that was useful, or worth sav-
- ing, or really respect-worthy, and to subtract them would
- have been to subtract the Nation and leave behind some
- dregs, some refuse, in the shape of a king, nobility
- and gentry, idle, unproductive, acquainted mainly with
- the arts of wasting and destroying, and of no sort of
- use or value in any rationally constructed world. And
- yet, by ingenious contrivance, this gilded minority, in-
- stead of being in the tail of the procession where it be-
- longed, was marching head up and banners flying, at the
- other end of it; had elected itself to be the Nation,
- and these innumerable clams had permitted it so long
- that they had come at last to accept it as a truth; and
- not only that, but to believe it right and as it should
- be. The priests had told their fathers and themselves
- that this ironical state of things was ordained of God;
- and so, not reflecting upon how unlike God it would
- be to amuse himself with sarcasms, and especially such
- poor transparent ones as this, they had dropped the
- matter there and become respectfully quiet.
-
- The talk of these meek people had a strange enough
- sound in a formerly American ear. They were free-
- men, but they could not leave the estates of their lord
- or their bishop without his permission; they could not
- prepare their own bread, but must have their corn
- ground and their bread baked at his mill and his
- bakery, and pay roundly for the same; they could not
- sell a piece of their own property without paying him a
- handsome percentage of the proceeds, nor buy a piece
- of somebody else's without remembering him in cash
- for the privilege; they had to harvest his grain for him
- gratis, and be ready to come at a moment's notice,
- leaving their own crop to destruction by the threatened
- storm; they had to let him plant fruit trees in their
- fields, and then keep their indignation to themselves
- when his heedless fruit-gatherers trampled the grain
- around the trees; they had to smother their anger when
- his hunting parties galloped through their fields laying
- waste the result of their patient toil; they were not
- allowed to keep doves themselves, and when the swarms
- from my lord's dovecote settled on their crops they
- must not lose their temper and kill a bird, for awful
- would the penalty be; when the harvest was at last
- gathered, then came the procession of robbers to levy
- their blackmail upon it: first the Church carted off its
- fat tenth, then the king's commissioner took his twen-
- tieth, then my lord's people made a mighty inroad
- upon the remainder; after which, the skinned freeman
- had liberty to bestow the remnant in his barn, in case
- it was worth the trouble; there were taxes, and taxes,
- and taxes, and more taxes, and taxes again, and yet
- other taxes -- upon this free and independent pauper,
- but none upon his lord the baron or the bishop, none
- upon the wasteful nobility or the all-devouring Church;
- if the baron would sleep unvexed, the freeman must sit
- up all night after his day's work and whip the ponds to
- keep the frogs quiet; if the freeman's daughter -- but
- no, that last infamy of monarchical government is un-
- printable; and finally, if the freeman, grown desperate
- with his tortures, found his life unendurable under such
- conditions, and sacrificed it and fled to death for mercy
- and refuge, the gentle Church condemned him to
- eternal fire, the gentle law buried him at midnight at the
- cross-roads with a stake through his back, and his master
- the baron or the bishop confiscated all his property and
- turned his widow and his orphans out of doors.
-
- And here were these freemen assembled in the early
- morning to work on their lord the bishop's road three
- days each -- gratis; every head of a family, and every
- son of a family, three days each, gratis, and a day or
- so added for their servants. Why, it was like reading
- about France and the French, before the ever memor-
- able and blessed Revolution, which swept a thousand
- years of such villany away in one swift tidal-wave of
- blood -- one: a settlement of that hoary debt in the
- proportion of half a drop of blood for each hogshead
- of it that had been pressed by slow tortures out of that
- people in the weary stretch of ten centuries of wrong
- and shame and misery the like of which was not to be
- mated but in hell. There were two "Reigns of
- Terror," if we would but remember it and consider it;
- the one wrought murder in hot passion, the other in
- heartless cold blood; the one lasted mere months, the
- other had lasted a thousand years; the one inflicted
- death upon ten thousand persons, the other upon a
- hundred millions; but our shudders are all for the
- "horrors" of the minor Terror, the momentary Ter-
- ror, so to speak; whereas, what is the horror of swift
- death by the axe, compared with lifelong death from
- hunger, cold, insult, cruelty, and heart-break? What is
- swift death by lightning compared with death by slow
- fire at the stake? A city cemetery could contain the
- coffins filled by that brief Terror which we have all been
- so diligently taught to shiver at and mourn over; but
- all France could hardly contain the coffins filled by that
- older and real Terror -- that unspeakably bitter and
- awful Terror which none of us has been taught to see
- in its vastness or pity as it deserves.
-
- These poor ostensible freemen who were sharing
- their breakfast and their talk with me, were as full of
- humble reverence for their king and Church and nobility
- as their worst enemy could desire. There was some-
- thing pitifully ludicrous about it. I asked them if they
- supposed a nation of people ever existed, who, with a
- free vote in every man's hand, would elect that a single
- family and its descendants should reign over it forever,
- whether gifted or boobies, to the exclusion of all other
- families -- including the voter's; and would also elect
- that a certain hundred families should be raised to dizzy
- summits of rank, and clothed on with offensive trans-
- missible glories and privileges to the exclusion of the
- rest of the nation's families -- INCLUDING HIS OWN.
-
- They all looked unhit, and said they didn't know;
- that they had never thought about it before, and it
- hadn't ever occurred to them that a nation could be so
- situated that every man COULD have a say in the govern-
- ment. I said I had seen one -- and that it would last
- until it had an Established Church. Again they were
- all unhit -- at first. But presently one man looked up
- and asked me to state that proposition again; and state
- it slowly, so it could soak into his understanding. I
- did it; and after a little he had the idea, and he
- brought his fist down and said HE didn't believe a
- nation where every man had a vote would voluntarily
- get down in the mud and dirt in any such way; and
- that to steal from a nation its will and preference must
- be a crime and the first of all crimes. I said to myself:
-
- "This one's a man. If I were backed by enough of
- his sort, I would make a strike for the welfare of this
- country, and try to prove myself its loyalest citizen
- by making a wholesome change in its system of
- government."
-
- You see my kind of loyalty was loyalty to one's
- country, not to its institutions or its office-holders.
- The country is the real thing, the substantial thing, the
- eternal thing; it is the thing to watch over, and care
- for, and be loyal to; institutions are extraneous, they
- are its mere clothing, and clothing can wear out, be-
- come ragged, cease to be comfortable, cease to protect
- the body from winter, disease, and death. To be
- loyal to rags, to shout for rags, to worship rags, to die
- for rags -- that is a loyalty of unreason, it is pure
- animal; it belongs to monarchy, was invented by
- monarchy; let monarchy keep it. I was from Con-
- necticut, whose Constitution declares "that all political
- power is inherent in the people, and all free govern-
- ments are founded on their authority and instituted for
- their benefit; and that they have AT ALL TIMES an undeni-
- able and indefeasible right to ALTER THEIR FORM OF GOVERN-
- MENT in such a manner as they may think expedient."
-
- Under that gospel, the citizen who thinks he sees
- that the commonwealth's political clothes are worn out,
- and yet holds his peace and does not agitate for a new
- suit, is disloyal; he is a traitor. That he may be the
- only one who thinks he sees this decay, does not ex-
- cuse him; it is his duty to agitate anyway, and it is the
- duty of the others to vote him down if they do not see
- the matter as he does.
-
- And now here I was, in a country where a right to
- say how the country should be governed was restricted
- to six persons in each thousand of its population.
- For the nine hundred and ninety-four to express dis-
- satisfaction with the regnant system and propose to
- change it, would have made the whole six shudder as
- one man, it would have been so disloyal, so dishonor-
- able, such putrid black treason. So to speak, I was
- become a stockholder in a corporation where nine hun-
- dred and ninety-four of the members furnished all the
- money and did all the work, and the other six elected
- themselves a permanent board of direction and took all
- the dividends. It seemed to me that what the nine
- hundred and ninety-four dupes needed was a new deal.
- The thing that would have best suited the circus side
- of my nature would have been to resign the Boss-ship
- and get up an insurrection and turn it into a revolution;
- but I knew that the Jack Cade or the Wat Tyler who
- tries such a thing without first educating his materials
- up to revolution grade is almost absolutely certain to
- get left. I had never been accustomed to getting left,
- even if I do say it myself. Wherefore, the "deal"
- which had been for some time working into shape
- in my mind was of a quite different pattern from the
- Cade-Tyler sort.
-
- So I did not talk blood and insurrection to that man
- there who sat munching black bread with that abused
- and mistaught herd of human sheep, but took him
- aside and talked matter of another sort to him. After
- I had finished, I got him to lend me a little ink from
- his veins; and with this and a sliver I wrote on a piece
- of bark --
-
- Put him in the Man-factory --
-
- and gave it to him, and said:
-
- "Take it to the palace at Camelot and give it into
- the hands of Amyas le Poulet, whom I call Clarence,
- and he will understand."
-
- "He is a priest, then," said the man, and some of
- the enthusiasm went out of his face.
-
- "How -- a priest? Didn't I tell you that no chattel
- of the Church, no bond-slave of pope or bishop can
- enter my Man-Factory? Didn't I tell you that YOU
- couldn't enter unless your religion, whatever it might
- be, was your own free property?"
-
- "Marry, it is so, and for that I was glad; wherefore
- it liked me not, and bred in me a cold doubt, to hear
- of this priest being there."
-
- "But he isn't a priest, I tell you."
-
- The man looked far from satisfied. He said:
-
- "He is not a priest, and yet can read?"
-
- "He is not a priest and yet can read -- yes, and
- write, too, for that matter. I taught him myself."
- The man's face cleared. "And it is the first thing
- that you yourself will be taught in that Factory --"
-
- "I? I would give blood out of my heart to know
- that art. Why, I will be your slave, your --"
-
- "No you won't, you won't be anybody's slave.
- Take your family and go along. Your lord the bishop
- will confiscate your small property, but no matter.
- Clarence will fix you all right."
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
- "DEFEND THEE, LORD"
-
- I PAID three pennies for my breakfast, and a most
- extravagant price it was, too, seeing that one could
- have breakfasted a dozen persons for that money; but
- I was feeling good by this time, and I had always been
- a kind of spendthrift anyway; and then these people
- had wanted to give me the food for nothing, scant as
- their provision was, and so it was a grateful pleasure to
- emphasize my appreciation and sincere thankfulness
- with a good big financial lift where the money would
- do so much more good than it would in my helmet,
- where, these pennies being made of iron and not stinted
- in weight, my half-dollar's worth was a good deal of a
- burden to me. I spent money rather too freely in
- those days, it is true; but one reason for it was that I
- hadn't got the proportions of things entirely adjusted,
- even yet, after so long a sojourn in Britain -- hadn't
- got along to where I was able to absolutely realize that
- a penny in Arthur's land and a couple of dollars in
- Connecticut were about one and the same thing: just
- twins, as you may say, in purchasing power. If my
- start from Camelot could have been delayed a very few
- days I could have paid these people in beautiful new
- coins from our own mint, and that would have pleased
- me; and them, too, not less. I had adopted the
- American values exclusively. In a week or two now,
- cents, nickels, dimes, quarters, and half-dollars, and
- also a trifle of gold, would be trickling in thin but
- steady streams all through the commercial veins of the
- kingdom, and I looked to see this new blood freshen up
- its life.
-
- The farmers were bound to throw in something, to
- sort of offset my liberality, whether I would or no; so
- I let them give me a flint and steel; and as soon as
- they had comfortably bestowed Sandy and me on our
- horse, I lit my pipe. When the first blast of smoke
- shot out through the bars of my helmet, all those
- people broke for the woods, and Sandy went over
- backwards and struck the ground with a dull thud.
- They thought I was one of those fire-belching dragons
- they had heard so much about from knights and other
- professional liars. I had infinite trouble to persuade
- those people to venture back within explaining distance.
- Then I told them that this was only a bit of enchant-
- ment which would work harm to none but my enemies.
- And I promised, with my hand on my heart, that if all
- who felt no enmity toward me would come forward and
- pass before me they should see that only those who re-
- mained behind would be struck dead. The procession
- moved with a good deal of promptness. There were no
- casualties to report, for nobody had curiosity enough
- to remain behind to see what would happen.
-
- I lost some time, now, for these big children, their
- fears gone, became so ravished with wonder over my
- awe-compelling fireworks that I had to stay there and
- smoke a couple of pipes out before they would let me
- go. Still the delay was not wholly unproductive, for
- it took all that time to get Sandy thoroughly wonted to
- the new thing, she being so close to it, you know. It
- plugged up her conversation mill, too, for a consider-
- able while, and that was a gain. But above all other
- benefits accruing, I had learned something. I was
- ready for any giant or any ogre that might come along,
- now.
-
- We tarried with a holy hermit, that night, and my
- opportunity came about the middle of the next after-
- noon. We were crossing a vast meadow by way of
- short-cut, and I was musing absently, hearing nothing,
- seeing nothing, when Sandy suddenly interrupted a re-
- mark which she had begun that morning, with the cry:
-
- "Defend thee, lord! -- peril of life is toward!"
-
- And she slipped down from the horse and ran a little
- way and stood. I looked up and saw, far off in the
- shade of a tree, half a dozen armed knights and their
- squires; and straightway there was bustle among them
- and tightening of saddle-girths for the mount. My
- pipe was ready and would have been lit, if I had not
- been lost in thinking about how to banish oppression
- from this land and restore to all its people their stolen
- rights and manhood without disobliging anybody. I lit
- up at once, and by the time I had got a good head of
- reserved steam on, here they came. All together, too;
- none of those chivalrous magnanimities which one
- reads so much about -- one courtly rascal at a time, and
- the rest standing by to see fair play. No, they came
- in a body, they came with a whirr and a rush, they
- came like a volley from a battery; came with heads low
- down, plumes streaming out behind, lances advanced at
- a level. It was a handsome sight, a beautiful sight --
- for a man up a tree. I laid my lance in rest and waited,
- with my heart beating, till the iron wave was just ready
- to break over me, then spouted a column of white
- smoke through the bars of my helmet. You should
- have seen the wave go to pieces and scatter! This was
- a finer sight than the other one.
-
- But these people stopped, two or three hundred
- yards away, and this troubled me. My satisfaction
- collapsed, and fear came; I judged I was a lost man.
- But Sandy was radiant; and was going to be eloquent --
- but I stopped her, and told her my magic had mis-
- carried, somehow or other, and she must mount, with
- all despatch, and we must ride for life. No, she
- wouldn't. She said that my enchantment had disabled
- those knights; they were not riding on, because they
- couldn't; wait, they would drop out of their saddles
- presently, and we would get their horses and harness.
- I could not deceive such trusting simplicity, so I said
- it was a mistake; that when my fireworks killed at all,
- they killed instantly; no, the men would not die, there
- was something wrong about my apparatus, I couldn't
- tell what; but we must hurry and get away, for those
- people would attack us again, in a minute. Sandy
- laughed, and said:
-
- "Lack-a-day, sir, they be not of that breed! Sir
- Launcelot will give battle to dragons, and will abide by
- them, and will assail them again, and yet again, and
- still again, until he do conquer and destroy them; and
- so likewise will Sir Pellinore and Sir Aglovale and Sir
- Carados, and mayhap others, but there be none else
- that will venture it, let the idle say what the idle will.
- And, la, as to yonder base rufflers, think ye they have
- not their fill, but yet desire more?"
-
- "Well, then, what are they waiting for? Why
- don't they leave? Nobody's hindering. Good land,
- I'm willing to let bygones be bygones, I'm sure."
-
- "Leave, is it? Oh, give thyself easement as to that.
- They dream not of it, no, not they. They wait to
- yield them."
-
- "Come -- really, is that 'sooth' -- as you people
- say? If they want to, why don't they?"
-
- "It would like them much; but an ye wot how
- dragons are esteemed, ye would not hold them blam-
- able. They fear to come."
-
- "Well, then, suppose I go to them instead, and --"
-
- "Ah, wit ye well they would not abide your coming.
- I will go."
-
- And she did. She was a handy person to have
- along on a raid. I would have considered this a doubt-
- ful errand, myself. I presently saw the knights riding
- away, and Sandy coming back. That was a relief. I
- judged she had somehow failed to get the first innings
- -- I mean in the conversation; otherwise the interview
- wouldn't have been so short. But it turned out that
- she had managed the business well; in fact, admirably.
- She said that when she told those people I was The
- Boss, it hit them where they lived: "smote them sore
- with fear and dread" was her word; and then they
- were ready to put up with anything she might require.
- So she swore them to appear at Arthur's court within
- two days and yield them, with horse and harness, and
- be my knights henceforth, and subject to my command.
- How much better she managed that thing than I should
- have done it myself! She was a daisy.
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
- SANDY'S TALE
-
- AND so I'm proprietor of some knights," said I,
- as we rode off. "Who would ever have sup-
- posed that I should live to list up assets of that sort.
- I shan't know what to do with them; unless I raffle
- them off. How many of them are there, Sandy?"
-
- "Seven, please you, sir, and their squires."
-
- "It is a good haul. Who are they? Where do they
- hang out?"
-
- "Where do they hang out?"
-
- "Yes, where do they live?"
-
- "Ah, I understood thee not. That will I tell
- eftsoons." Then she said musingly, and softly, turn-
- ing the words daintily over her tongue: "Hang they
- out -- hang they out -- where hang -- where do they
- hang out; eh, right so; where do they hang out. Of
- a truth the phrase hath a fair and winsome grace, and
- is prettily worded withal. I will repeat it anon and
- anon in mine idlesse, whereby I may peradventure
- learn it. Where do they hang out. Even so! already
- it falleth trippingly from my tongue, and forasmuch
- as --"
-
- "Don't forget the cowboys, Sandy."
-
- "Cowboys?"
-
- "Yes; the knights, you know: You were going to
- tell me about them. A while back, you remember.
- Figuratively speaking, game's called."
-
- "Game --"
-
- "Yes, yes, yes! Go to the bat. I mean, get to
- work on your statistics, and don't burn so much
- kindling getting your fire started. Tell me about the
- knights."
-
- "I will well, and lightly will begin. So they two
- departed and rode into a great forest. And --"
-
- "Great Scott!"
-
- You see, I recognized my mistake at once. I had
- set her works a-going; it was my own fault; she would
- be thirty days getting down to those facts. And she
- generally began without a preface and finished without
- a result. If you interrupted her she would either go
- right along without noticing, or answer with a couple of
- words, and go back and say the sentence over again.
- So, interruptions only did harm; and yet I had to in-
- terrupt, and interrupt pretty frequently, too, in order
- to save my life; a person would die if he let her mo-
- notony drip on him right along all day.
-
- "Great Scott! " I said in my distress. She went
- right back and began over again:
-
- "So they two departed and rode into a great forest.
- And --"
-
- "WHICH two?"
-
- "Sir Gawaine and Sir Uwaine. And so they came
- to an abbey of monks, and there were well lodged. So
- on the morn they heard their masses in the abbey, and
- so they rode forth till they came to a great forest; then
- was Sir Gawaine ware in a valley by a turret, of
- twelve fair damsels, and two knights armed on great
- horses, and the damsels went to and fro by a tree.
- And then was Sir Gawaine ware how there hung a
- white shield on that tree, and ever as the damsels came
- by it they spit upon it, and some threw mire upon the
- shield --"
-
- "Now, if I hadn't seen the like myself in this country,
- Sandy, I wouldn't believe it. But I've seen it, and I
- can just see those creatures now, parading before that
- shield and acting like that. The women here do cer-
- tainly act like all possessed. Yes, and I mean your
- best, too, society's very choicest brands. The hum-
- blest hello-girl along ten thousand miles of wire could
- teach gentleness, patience, modesty, manners, to the
- highest duchess in Arthur's land."
-
- "Hello-girl?"
-
- "Yes, but don't you ask me to explain; it's a new
- kind of a girl; they don't have them here; one often
- speaks sharply to them when they are not the least in
- fault, and he can't get over feeling sorry for it and
- ashamed of himself in thirteen hundred years, it's such
- shabby mean conduct and so unprovoked; the fact is,
- no gentleman ever does it -- though I -- well, I myself,
- if I've got to confess --"
-
- "Peradventure she --"
-
- "Never mind her; never mind her; I tell you I
- couldn't ever explain her so you would understand."
-
- "Even so be it, sith ye are so minded. Then Sir
- Gawaine and Sir Uwaine went and saluted them, and
- asked them why they did that despite to the shield.
- Sirs, said the damsels, we shall tell you. There is a
- knight in this country that owneth this white shield, and
- he is a passing good man of his hands, but he hateth
- all ladies and gentlewomen, and therefore we do all this
- despite to the shield. I will say you, said Sir Gawaine,
- it beseemeth evil a good knight to despise all ladies and
- gentlewomen, and peradventure though he hate you he
- hath some cause, and peradventure he loveth in some
- other places ladies and gentlewomen, and to be loved
- again, and he such a man of prowess as ye speak of --"
-
- "Man of prowess -- yes, that is the man to please
- them, Sandy. Man of brains -- that is a thing they
- never think of. Tom Sayers -- John Heenan -- John
- L. Sullivan -- pity but you could be here. You
- would have your legs under the Round Table and a
- 'Sir' in front of your names within the twenty-four
- hours; and you could bring about a new distribution
- of the married princesses and duchesses of the Court in
- another twenty-four. The fact is, it is just a sort of
- polished-up court of Comanches, and there isn't a
- squaw in it who doesn't stand ready at the dropping of
- a hat to desert to the buck with the biggest string of
- scalps at his belt."
-
- "-- and he be such a man of prowess as ye speak of,
- said Sir Gawaine. Now, what is his name? Sir, said
- they, his name is Marhaus the king's son of Ireland."
-
- "Son of the king of Ireland, you mean; the other
- form doesn't mean anything. And look out and hold
- on tight, now, we must jump this gully....
- There, we are all right now. This horse belongs in the
- circus; he is born before his time."
-
- "I know him well, said Sir Uwaine, he is a passing
- good knight as any is on live."
-
- "ON LIVE. If you've got a fault in the world,
- Sandy, it is that you are a shade too archaic. But it
- isn't any matter."
-
- "-- for I saw him once proved at a justs where many
- knights were gathered, and that time there might no
- man withstand him. Ah, said Sir Gawaine, damsels,
- methinketh ye are to blame, for it is to suppose he that
- hung that shield there will not be long therefrom, and
- then may those knights match him on horseback, and
- that is more your worship than thus; for I will abide
- no longer to see a knight's shield dishonored. And
- therewith Sir Uwaine and Sir Gawaine departed a little
- from them, and then were they ware where Sir Marhaus
- came riding on a great horse straight toward them.
- And when the twelve damsels saw Sir Marhaus they
- fled into the turret as they were wild, so that some of
- them fell by the way. Then the one of the knights of
- the tower dressed his shield, and said on high, Sir Mar-
- haus defend thee. And so they ran together that the
- knight brake his spear on Marhaus, and Sir Marhaus
- smote him so hard that he brake his neck and the
- horse's back --"
-
- "Well, that is just the trouble about this state of
- things, it ruins so many horses."
-
- "That saw the other knight of the turret, and
- dressed him toward Marhaus, and they went so eagerly
- together, that the knight of the turret was soon smitten
- down, horse and man, stark dead --"
-
- "ANOTHER horse gone; I tell you it is a custom that
- ought to be broken up. I don't see how people with
- any feeling can applaud and support it."
-
- ....
-
- "So these two knights came together with great
- random --"
-
- I saw that I had been asleep and missed a chapter,
- but I didn't say anything. I judged that the Irish
- knight was in trouble with the visitors by this time, and
- this turned out to be the case.
-
- "-- that Sir Uwaine smote Sir Marhaus that his
- spear brast in pieces on the shield, and Sir Marhaus
- smote him so sore that horse and man he bare to the
- earth, and hurt Sir Uwaine on the left side --
-
- "The truth is, Alisande, these archaics are a little
- TOO simple; the vocabulary is too limited, and so, by
- consequence, descriptions suffer in the matter of
- variety; they run too much to level Saharas of fact,
- and not enough to picturesque detail; this throws about
- them a certain air of the monotonous; in fact the fights
- are all alike: a couple of people come together with
- great random -- random is a good word, and so is
- exegesis, for that matter, and so is holocaust, and de-
- falcation, and usufruct and a hundred others, but land!
- a body ought to discriminate -- they come together
- with great random, and a spear is brast, and one party
- brake his shield and the other one goes down, horse
- and man, over his horse-tail and brake his neck, and
- then the next candidate comes randoming in, and brast
- HIS spear, and the other man brast his shield, and
- down HE goes, horse and man, over his horse-tail, and
- brake HIS neck, and then there's another elected, and
- another and another and still another, till the material
- is all used up; and when you come to figure up results,
- you can't tell one fight from another, nor who whip-
- ped; and as a PICTURE, of living, raging, roaring battle,
- sho! why, it's pale and noiseless -- just ghosts scuffling
- in a fog. Dear me, what would this barren vocabulary
- get out of the mightiest spectacle? -- the burning of
- Rome in Nero's time, for instance? Why, it would
- merely say, 'Town burned down; no insurance; boy
- brast a window, fireman brake his neck!' Why, THAT
- ain't a picture!"
-
- It was a good deal of a lecture, I thought, but it
- didn't disturb Sandy, didn't turn a feather; her steam
- soared steadily up again, the minute I took off the lid:
-
- "Then Sir Marhaus turned his horse and rode toward
- Gawaine with his spear. And when Sir Gawaine saw
- that, he dressed his shield, and they aventred their
- spears, and they came together with all the might of
- their horses, that either knight smote other so hard in
- the midst of their shields, but Sir Gawaine's spear
- brake --"
-
- "I knew it would."
-
- -- "but Sir Marhaus's spear held; and therewith Sir
- Gawaine and his horse rushed down to the earth --"
-
- "Just so -- and brake his back."
-
- -- "and lightly Sir Gawaine rose upon his feet and
- pulled out his sword, and dressed him toward Sir Mar-
- haus on foot, and therewith either came unto other
- eagerly, and smote together with their swords, that their
- shields flew in cantels, and they bruised their helms and
- their hauberks, and wounded either other. But Sir
- Gawaine, fro it passed nine of the clock, waxed by the
- space of three hours ever stronger and stronger. and
- thrice his might was increased. All this espied Sir
- Marhaus, and had great wonder how his might in-
- creased, and so they wounded other passing sore; and
- then when it was come noon --"
-
- The pelting sing-song of it carried me forward to
- scenes and sounds of my boyhood days:
-
- "N-e-e-ew Haven! ten minutes for refreshments --
- knductr'll strike the gong-bell two minutes before train
- leaves -- passengers for the Shore line please take seats
- in the rear k'yar, this k'yar don't go no furder -- AHH -
- pls, AW-rnjz, b'NANners, S-A-N-D'ches, p--OP-corn!"
-
- -- "and waxed past noon and drew toward even-
- song. Sir Gawaine's strength feebled and waxed pass-
- ing faint, that unnethes he might dure any longer, and
- Sir Marhaus was then bigger and bigger --"
-
- "Which strained his armor, of course; and yet little
- would one of these people mind a small thing like that."
-
- -- "and so, Sir Knight, said Sir Marhaus, I have
- well felt that ye are a passing good knight, and a mar-
- velous man of might as ever I felt any, while it lasteth,
- and our quarrels are not great, and therefore it were a
- pity to do you hurt, for I feel you are passing feeble.
- Ah, said Sir Gawaine, gentle knight, ye say the word
- that I should say. And therewith they took off their
- helms and either kissed other, and there they swore
- together either to love other as brethren --"
-
- But I lost the thread there, and dozed off to slumber,
- thinking about what a pity it was that men with such
- superb strength -- strength enabling them to stand up
- cased in cruelly burdensome iron and drenched with
- perspiration, and hack and batter and bang each other
- for six hours on a stretch -- should not have been
- born at a time when they could put it to some useful
- purpose. Take a jackass, for instance: a jackass has
- that kind of strength, and puts it to a useful purpose,
- and is valuable to this world because he is a jackass;
- but a nobleman is not valuable because he is a jackass.
- It is a mixture that is always ineffectual, and should
- never have been attempted in the first place. And yet,
- once you start a mistake, the trouble is done and you
- never know what is going to come of it.
-
- When I came to myself again and began to listen, I
- perceived that I had lost another chapter, and that
- Alisande had wandered a long way off with her people.
-
- "And so they rode and came into a deep valley full
- of stones, and thereby they saw a fair stream of water;
- above thereby was the head of the stream, a fair foun-
- tain, and three damsels sitting thereby. In this coun-
- try, said Sir Marhaus, came never knight since it was
- christened, but he found strange adventures --"
-
- "This is not good form, Alisande. Sir Marhaus the
- king's son of Ireland talks like all the rest; you ought
- to give him a brogue, or at least a characteristic exple-
- tive; by this means one would recognize him as soon
- as he spoke, without his ever being named. It is a
- common literary device with the great authors. You
- should make him say, 'In this country, be jabers, came
- never knight since it was christened, but he found
- strange adventures, be jabers.' You see how much
- better that sounds."
-
- -- "came never knight but he found strange adven-
- tures, be jabers. Of a truth it doth indeed, fair lord,
- albeit 'tis passing hard to say, though peradventure
- that will not tarry but better speed with usage. And
- then they rode to the damsels, and either saluted other,
- and the eldest had a garland of gold about her head,
- and she was threescore winter of age or more --"
-
- "The DAMSEL was?"
-
- "Even so, dear lord -- and her hair was white under
- the garland --"
-
- "Celluloid teeth, nine dollars a set, as like as not --
- the loose-fit kind, that go up and down like a portcullis
- when you eat, and fall out when you laugh."
-
- "The second damsel was of thirty winter of age,
- with a circlet of gold about her head. The third damsel
- was but fifteen year of age --"
-
- Billows of thought came rolling over my soul, and
- the voice faded out of my hearing!
-
- Fifteen! Break -- my heart! oh, my lost darling!
- Just her age who was so gentle, and lovely, and all the
- world to me, and whom I shall never see again! How
- the thought of her carries me back over wide seas of
- memory to a vague dim time, a happy time, so many,
- many centuries hence, when I used to wake in the soft
- summer mornings, out of sweet dreams of her, and say
- "Hello, Central!" just to hear her dear voice come
- melting back to me with a "Hello, Hank!" that was
- music of the spheres to my enchanted ear. She got
- three dollars a week, but she was worth it.
-
- I could not follow Alisande's further explanation of
- who our captured knights were, now -- I mean in case
- she should ever get to explaining who they were. My
- interest was gone, my thoughts were far away, and sad.
- By fitful glimpses of the drifting tale, caught here and
- there and now and then, I merely noted in a vague way
- that each of these three knights took one of these three
- damsels up behind him on his horse, and one rode
- north, another east, the other south, to seek adventures,
- and meet again and lie, after year and day. Year and
- day -- and without baggage. It was of a piece with
- the general simplicity of the country.
-
- The sun was now setting. It was about three in the
- afternoon when Alisande had begun to tell me who the
- cowboys were; so she had made pretty good progress
- with it -- for her. She would arrive some time or
- other, no doubt, but she was not a person who could
- be hurried.
-
- We were approaching a castle which stood on high
- ground; a huge, strong, venerable structure, whose
- gray towers and battlements were charmingly draped
- with ivy, and whose whole majestic mass was drenched
- with splendors flung from the sinking sun. It was the
- largest castle we had seen, and so I thought it might be
- the one we were after, but Sandy said no. She did
- not know who owned it; she said she had passed it
- without calling, when she went down to Camelot.
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
- MORGAN LE FAY
-
- IF knights errant were to be believed, not all castles
- were desirable places to seek hospitality in. As a
- matter of fact, knights errant were NOT persons to be
- believed -- that is, measured by modern standards of
- veracity; yet, measured by the standards of their own
- time, and scaled accordingly, you got the truth. It
- was very simple: you discounted a statement ninety-
- seven per cent.; the rest was fact. Now after making
- this allowance, the truth remained that if I could find
- out something about a castle before ringing the door-
- bell -- I mean hailing the warders -- it was the sensible
- thing to do. So I was pleased when I saw in the dis-
- tance a horseman making the bottom turn of the road
- that wound down from this castle.
-
- As we approached each other, I saw that he wore a
- plumed helmet, and seemed to be otherwise clothed in
- steel, but bore a curious addition also -- a stiff square
- garment like a herald's tabard. However, I had to
- smile at my own forgetfulness when I got nearer and
- read this sign on his tabard:
-
- "Persimmon's Soap -- All the Prime-Donna Use It."
-
- That was a little idea of my own, and had several
- wholesome purposes in view toward the civilizing and
- uplifting of this nation. In the first place, it was a
- furtive, underhand blow at this nonsense of knight
- errantry, though nobody suspected that but me. I
- had started a number of these people out -- the bravest
- knights I could get -- each sandwiched between bul-
- letin-boards bearing one device or another, and I
- judged that by and by when they got to be numerous
- enough they would begin to look ridiculous; and then,
- even the steel-clad ass that HADN'T any board would
- himself begin to look ridiculous because he was out of
- the fashion.
-
- Secondly, these missionaries would gradually, and
- without creating suspicion or exciting alarm, introduce
- a rudimentary cleanliness among the nobility, and from
- them it would work down to the people, if the priests
- could be kept quiet. This would undermine the
- Church. I mean would be a step toward that. Next,
- education -- next, freedom -- and then she would begin
- to crumble. It being my conviction that any Estab-
- lished Church is an established crime, an established
- slave-pen, I had no scruples, but was willing to assail
- it in any way or with any weapon that promised to
- hurt it. Why, in my own former day -- in remote
- centuries not yet stirring in the womb of time -- there
- were old Englishmen who imagined that they had been
- born in a free country: a "free" country with the
- Corporation Act and the Test still in force in it --
- timbers propped against men's liberties and dishonored
- consciences to shore up an Established Anachronism
- with.
-
- My missionaries were taught to spell out the gilt
- signs on their tabards -- the showy gilding was a neat
- idea, I could have got the king to wear a bulletin-board
- for the sake of that barbaric splendor -- they were to
- spell out these signs and then explain to the lords and
- ladies what soap was; and if the lords and ladies were
- afraid of it, get them to try it on a dog. The mission-
- ary's next move was to get the family together and try
- it on himself; he was to stop at no experiment, how-
- ever desperate. that could convince the nobility that
- soap was harmless; if any final doubt remained, he
- must catch a hermit -- the woods were full of them;
- saints they called themselves, and saints they were be-
- lieved to be. They were unspeakably holy, and worked
- miracles, and everybody stood in awe of them. If a
- hermit could survive a wash, and that failed to convince
- a duke, give him up, let him alone.
-
- Whenever my missionaries overcame a knight errant
- on the road they washed him, and when he got well
- they swore him to go and get a bulletin-board and dis-
- seminate soap and civilization the rest of his days. As
- a consequence the workers in the field were increasing
- by degrees, and the reform was steadily spreading.
- My soap factory felt the strain early. At first I had
- only two hands; but before I had left home I was
- already employing fifteen, and running night and day;
- and the atmospheric result was getting so pronounced
- that the king went sort of fainting and gasping around
- and said he did not believe he could stand it much
- longer, and Sir Launcelot got so that he did hardly
- anything but walk up and down the roof and swear,
- although I told him it was worse up there than any-
- where else, but he said he wanted plenty of air; and
- he was always complaining that a palace was no place
- for a soap factory anyway, and said if a man was to
- start one in his house he would be damned if he
- wouldn't strangle him. There were ladies present,
- too, but much these people ever cared for that; they
- would swear before children, if the wind was their way
- when the factory was going.
-
- This missionary knight's name was La Cote Male
- Taile, and he said that this castle was the abode of
- Morgan le Fay, sister of King Arthur, and wife of
- King Uriens. monarch of a realm about as big as the
- District of Columbia -- you could stand in the middle
- of it and throw bricks into the next kingdom.
- "Kings" and "Kingdoms" were as thick in Britain
- as they had been in little Palestine in Joshua's time,
- when people had to sleep with their knees pulled up
- because they couldn't stretch out without a passport.
-
- La Cote was much depressed, for he had scored
- here the worst failure of his campaign. He had not
- worked off a cake; yet he had tried all the tricks of
- the trade, even to the washing of a hermit; but the
- hermit died. This was, indeed, a bad failure, for this
- animal would now be dubbed a martyr, and would take
- his place among the saints of the Roman calendar.
- Thus made he his moan, this poor Sir La Cote Male
- Taile, and sorrowed passing sore. And so my heart
- bled for him, and I was moved to comfort and stay
- him. Wherefore I said:
-
- "Forbear to grieve, fair knight, for this is not a
- defeat. We have brains, you and I; and for such as
- have brains there are no defeats, but only victories.
- Observe how we will turn this seeming disaster into an
- advertisement; an advertisement for our soap; and
- the biggest one, to draw, that was ever thought of; an
- advertisement that will transform that Mount Washing-
- ton defeat into a Matterhorn victory. We will put on
- your bulletin-board, 'PATRONIZED BY THE ELECT.' How
- does that strike you?"
-
- "Verily, it is wonderly bethought!"
-
- "Well, a body is bound to admit that for just a
- modest little one-line ad., it's a corker."
-
- So the poor colporteur's griefs vanished away. He
- was a brave fellow, and had done mighty feats of arms
- in his time. His chief celebrity rested upon the events
- of an excursion like this one of mine, which he had
- once made with a damsel named Maledisant, who was
- as handy with her tongue as was Sandy, though in a
- different way, for her tongue churned forth only rail-
- ings and insult, whereas Sandy's music was of a
- kindlier sort. I knew his story well, and so I knew
- how to interpret the compassion that was in his face
- when he bade me farewell. He supposed I was having
- a bitter hard time of it.
-
- Sandy and I discussed his story, as we rode along,
- and she said that La Cote's bad luck had begun with
- the very beginning of that trip; for the king's fool had
- overthrown him on the first day, and in such cases it
- was customary for the girl to desert to the conqueror,
- but Maledisant didn't do it; and also persisted after-
- ward in sticking to him, after all his defeats. But,
- said I, suppose the victor should decline to accept his
- spoil? She said that that wouldn't answer -- he must.
- He couldn't decline; it wouldn't be regular. I made
- a note of that. If Sandy's music got to be too
- burdensome, some time, I would let a knight defeat
- me, on the chance that she would desert to him.
-
- In due time we were challenged by the warders,
- from the castle walls, and after a parley admitted. I
- have nothing pleasant to tell about that visit. But it
- was not a disappointment, for I knew Mrs. le Fay by
- reputation, and was not expecting anything pleasant.
- She was held in awe by the whole realm, for she had
- made everybody believe she was a great sorceress. All
- her ways were wicked, all her instincts devilish. She
- was loaded to the eyelids with cold malice. All her
- history was black with crime; and among her crimes
- murder was common. I was most curious to see her;
- as curious as I could have been to see Satan. To my
- surprise she was beautiful; black thoughts had failed
- to make her expression repulsive, age had failed to
- wrinkle her satin skin or mar its bloomy freshness.
- She could have passed for old Uriens' granddaughter,
- she could have been mistaken for sister to her own son.
-
- As soon as we were fairly within the castle gates we
- were ordered into her presence. King Uriens was
- there, a kind-faced old man with a subdued look; and
- also the son, Sir Uwaine le Blanchemains, in whom I
- was, of course, interested on account of the tradition
- that he had once done battle with thirty knights, and
- also on account of his trip with Sir Gawaine and Sir
- Marhaus, which Sandy had been aging me with. But
- Morgan was the main attraction, the conspicuous per-
- sonality here; she was head chief of this household,
- that was plain. She caused us to be seated, and then
- she began, with all manner of pretty graces and
- graciousnesses, to ask me questions. Dear me, it was
- like a bird or a flute, or something, talking. I felt
- persuaded that this woman must have been misrepre-
- sented, lied about. She trilled along, and trilled along,
- and presently a handsome young page, clothed like the
- rainbow, and as easy and undulatory of movement as a
- wave, came with something on a golden salver, and,
- kneeling to present it to her, overdid his graces and
- lost his balance, and so fell lightly against her knee.
- She slipped a dirk into him in as matter-of-course a
- way as another person would have harpooned a rat!
-
- Poor child! he slumped to the floor, twisted his silken
- limbs in one great straining contortion of pain, and was
- dead. Out of the old king was wrung an involuntary
- "O-h!" of compassion. The look he got, made him
- cut it suddenly short and not put any more hyphens in
- it. Sir Uwaine, at a sign from his mother, went to
- the anteroom and called some servants, and meanwhile
- madame went rippling sweetly along with her talk.
-
- I saw that she was a good housekeeper, for while
- she talked she kept a corner of her eye on the servants
- to see that they made no balks in handling the body
- and getting it out; when they came with fresh clean
- towels, she sent back for the other kind; and when
- they had finished wiping the floor and were going, she
- indicated a crimson fleck the size of a tear which their
- duller eyes had overlooked. It was plain to me that
- La Cote Male Taile had failed to see the mistress of
- the house. Often, how louder and clearer than any
- tongue, does dumb circumstantial evidence speak.
-
- Morgan le Fay rippled along as musically as ever.
- Marvelous woman. And what a glance she had: when
- it fell in reproof upon those servants, they shrunk and
- quailed as timid people do when the lightning flashes
- out of a cloud. I could have got the habit myself. It
- was the same with that poor old Brer Uriens; he was
- always on the ragged edge of apprehension; she could
- not even turn toward him but he winced.
-
- In the midst of the talk I let drop a complimentary
- word about King Arthur, forgetting for the moment
- how this woman hated her brother. That one little
- compliment was enough. She clouded up like
- storm; she called for her guards, and said:
-
- "Hale me these varlets to the dungeons."
-
- That struck cold on my ears, for her dungeons had
- a reputation. Nothing occurred to me to say -- or
- do. But not so with Sandy. As the guard laid a
- hand upon me, she piped up with the tranquilest con-
- fidence, and said:
-
- "God's wounds, dost thou covet destruction, thou
- maniac? It is The Boss!"
-
- Now what a happy idea that was! -- and so simple;
- yet it would never have occurred to me. I was born
- modest; not all over, but in spots; and this was one
- of the spots.
-
- The effect upon madame was electrical. It cleared
- her countenance and brought back her smiles and all
- her persuasive graces and blandishments; but never-
- theless she was not able to entirely cover up with them
- the fact that she was in a ghastly fright. She said:
-
- "La, but do list to thine handmaid! as if one
- gifted with powers like to mine might say the thing
- which I have said unto one who has vanquished
- Merlin, and not be jesting. By mine enchantments I
- foresaw your coming, and by them I knew you when
- you entered here. I did but play this little jest with
- hope to surprise you into some display of your art, as
- not doubting you would blast the guards with occult
- fires, consuming them to ashes on the spot, a marvel
- much beyond mine own ability, yet one which I have
- long been childishly curious to see."
-
- The guards were less curious, and got out as soon as
- they got permission.
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
- A ROYAL BANQUET
-
- MADAME, seeing me pacific and unresentful, no
- doubt judged that I was deceived by her excuse;
- for her fright dissolved away, and she was soon so
- importunate to have me give an exhibition and kill
- somebody, that the thing grew to be embarrassing.
- However, to my relief she was presently interrupted by
- the call to prayers. I will say this much for the
- nobility: that, tyrannical, murderous, rapacious, and
- morally rotten as they were, they were deeply and
- enthusiastically religious. Nothing could divert them
- from the regular and faithful performance of the pieties
- enjoined by the Church. More than once I had seen
- a noble who had gotten his enemy at a disadvantage,
- stop to pray before cutting his throat; more than once
- I had seen a noble, after ambushing and despatching
- his enemy, retire to the nearest wayside shrine and
- humbly give thanks, without even waiting to rob the
- body. There was to be nothing finer or sweeter in the
- life of even Benvenuto Cellini, that rough-hewn saint,
- ten centuries later. All the nobles of Britain, with
- their families, attended divine service morning and
- night daily, in their private chapels, and even the
- worst of them had family worship five or six times a
- day besides. The credit of this belonged entirely to
- the Church. Although I was no friend to that Cath-
- olic Church, I was obliged to admit this. And often,
- in spite of me, I found myself saying, "What would
- this country be without the Church?"
-
- After prayers we had dinner in a great banqueting
- hall which was lighted by hundreds of grease-jets, and
- everything was as fine and lavish and rudely splendid
- as might become the royal degree of the hosts. At
- the head of the hall, on a dais, was the table of the
- king, queen, and their son, Prince Uwaine. Stretching
- down the hall from this, was the general table, on the
- floor. At this, above the salt, sat the visiting nobles
- and the grown members of their families, of both
- sexes, -- the resident Court, in effect -- sixty-one per-
- sons; below the salt sat minor officers of the house-
- hold, with their principal subordinates: altogether a
- hundred and eighteen persons sitting, and about as
- many liveried servants standing behind their chairs, or
- serving in one capacity or another. It was a very fine
- show. In a gallery a band with cymbals, horns, harps,
- and other horrors, opened the proceedings with what
- seemed to be the crude first-draft or original agony of
- the wail known to later centuries as "In the Sweet
- Bye and Bye." It was new, and ought to have been
- rehearsed a little more. For some reason or other the
- queen had the composer hanged, after dinner.
-
- After this music, the priest who stood behind the
- royal table said a noble long grace in ostensible Latin.
- Then the battalion of waiters broke away from their
- posts, and darted, rushed, flew, fetched and carried,
- and the mighty feeding began; no words anywhere,
- but absorbing attention to business. The rows of
- chops opened and shut in vast unison, and the sound
- of it was like to the muffled burr of subterranean
- machinery.
-
- The havoc continued an hour and a half, and unim-
- aginable was the destruction of substantials. Of the
- chief feature of the feast -- the huge wild boar that lay
- stretched out so portly and imposing at the start --
- nothing was left but the semblance of a hoop-skirt;
- and he was but the type and symbol of what had hap-
- pened to all the other dishes.
-
- With the pastries and so on, the heavy drinking
- began -- and the talk. Gallon after gallon of wine and
- mead disappeared, and everybody got comfortable,
- then happy, then sparklingly joyous -- both sexes, --
- and by and by pretty noisy. Men told anecdotes that
- were terrific to hear, but nobody blushed; and when
- the nub was sprung, the assemblage let go with a
- horse-laugh that shook the fortress. Ladies answered
- back with historiettes that would almost have made
- Queen Margaret of Navarre or even the great Elizabeth
- of England hide behind a handkerchief, but nobody
- hid here, but only laughed -- howled, you may say.
- In pretty much all of these dreadful stories, ecclesiastics
- were the hardy heroes, but that didn't worry the chap-
- lain any, he had his laugh with the rest; more than
- that, upon invitation he roared out a song which was
- of as daring a sort as any that was sung that night.
-
- By midnight everybody was fagged out, and sore
- with laughing; and, as a rule, drunk: some weepingly,
- some affectionately, some hilariously, some quarrel-
- somely, some dead and under the table. Of the
- ladies, the worst spectacle was a lovely young duch-
- ess, whose wedding-eve this was; and indeed she was
- a spectacle, sure enough. Just as she was she could
- have sat in advance for the portrait of the young
- daughter of the Regent d'Orleans, at the famous dinner
- whence she was carried, foul-mouthed, intoxicated, and
- helpless, to her bed, in the lost and lamented days of
- the Ancient Regime.
-
- Suddenly, even while the priest was lifting his hands,
- and all conscious heads were bowed in reverent expec-
- tation of the coming blessing, there appeared under
- the arch of the far-off door at the bottom of the hall
- an old and bent and white-haired lady, leaning upon a
- crutch-stick; and she lifted the stick and pointed it
- toward the queen and cried out:
-
- "The wrath and curse of God fall upon you, woman
- without pity, who have slain mine innocent grandchild
- and made desolate this old heart that had nor chick, nor
- friend nor stay nor comfort in all this world but him!"
-
- Everybody crossed himself in a grisly fright, for a
- curse was an awful thing to those people; but the
- queen rose up majestic, with the death-light in her
- eye, and flung back this ruthless command:
-
- "Lay hands on her! To the stake with her!"
-
- The guards left their posts to obey. It was a
- shame; it was a cruel thing to see. What could be
- done? Sandy gave me a look; I knew she had an-
- other inspiration. I said:
-
- "Do what you choose."
-
- She was up and facing toward the queen in a mo-
- ment. She indicated me, and said:
-
- "Madame, HE saith this may not be. Recall the
- commandment, or he will dissolve the castle and it
- shall vanish away like the instable fabric of a dream!"
-
- Confound it, what a crazy contract to pledge a per-
- son to! What if the queen --
-
- But my consternation subsided there, and my panic
- passed off; for the queen, all in a collapse, made no
- show of resistance but gave a countermanding sign and
- sunk into her seat. When she reached it she was
- sober. So were many of the others. The assemblage
- rose, whiffed ceremony to the winds, and rushed for
- the door like a mob; overturning chairs, smashing
- crockery, tugging, struggling, shouldering, crowding
- -- anything to get out before I should change my
- mind and puff the castle into the measureless dim
- vacancies of space. Well, well, well, they WERE a
- superstitious lot. It is all a body can do to conceive
- of it.
-
- The poor queen was so scared and humbled that she
- was even afraid to hang the composer without first
- consulting me. I was very sorry for her -- indeed, any
- one would have been, for she was really suffering; so
- I was willing to do anything that was reasonable, and
- had no desire to carry things to wanton extremities. I
- therefore considered the matter thoughtfully, and ended
- by having the musicians ordered into our presence to
- play that Sweet Bye and Bye again, which they did.
- Then I saw that she was right, and gave her permission
- to hang the whole band. This little relaxation of
- sternness had a good effect upon the queen. A states-
- man gains little by the arbitrary exercise of iron-clad
- authority upon all occasions that offer, for this wounds
- the just pride of his subordinates, and thus tends to
- undermine his strength. A little concession, now and
- then, where it can do no harm, is the wiser policy.
-
- Now that the queen was at ease in her mind once
- more, and measurably happy, her wine naturally began
- to assert itself again, and it got a little the start of her.
- I mean it set her music going -- her silver bell of a
- tongue. Dear me, she was a master talker. It would
- not become me to suggest that it was pretty late and
- that I was a tired man and very sleepy. I wished I
- had gone off to bed when I had the chance. Now I
- must stick it out; there was no other way. So she
- tinkled along and along, in the otherwise profound and
- ghostly hush of the sleeping castle, until by and by
- there came, as if from deep down under us, a far-away
- sound, as of a muffled shriek -- with an expression of
- agony about it that made my flesh crawl. The queen
- stopped, and her eyes lighted with pleasure; she tilted
- her graceful head as a bird does when it listens. The
- sound bored its way up through the stillness again.
-
- "What is it?" I said.
-
- "It is truly a stubborn soul, and endureth long. It
- is many hours now."
-
- "Endureth what?"
-
- "The rack. Come -- ye shall see a blithe sight.
- An he yield not his secret now, ye shall see him torn
- asunder."
-
- What a silky smooth hellion she was; and so com-
- posed and serene, when the cords all down my legs
- were hurting in sympathy with that man's pain. Con-
- ducted by mailed guards bearing flaring torches, we
- tramped along echoing corridors, and down stone stair-
- ways dank and dripping, and smelling of mould and
- ages of imprisoned night -- a chill, uncanny journey
- and a long one, and not made the shorter or the
- cheerier by the sorceress's talk, which was about this
- sufferer and his crime. He had been accused by an
- anonymous informer, of having killed a stag in the
- royal preserves. I said:
-
- "Anonymous testimony isn't just the right thing,
- your Highness. It were fairer to confront the accused
- with the accuser."
-
- "I had not thought of that, it being but of small
- consequence. But an I would, I could not, for that
- the accuser came masked by night, and told the
- forester, and straightway got him hence again, and so
- the forester knoweth him not."
-
- "Then is this Unknown the only person who saw
- the stag killed?"
-
- "Marry, NO man SAW the killing, but this Unknown
- saw this hardy wretch near to the spot where the stag
- lay, and came with right loyal zeal and betrayed him
- to the forester."
-
- "So the Unknown was near the dead stag, too?
- Isn't it just possible that he did the killing himself?
- His loyal zeal -- in a mask -- looks just a shade sus-
- picious. But what is your highness's idea for racking
- the prisoner? Where is the profit?"
-
- "He will not confess, else; and then were his soul
- lost. For his crime his life is forfeited by the law --
- and of a surety will I see that he payeth it! -- but it
- were peril to my own soul to let him die unconfessed
- and unabsolved. Nay, I were a fool to fling me into
- hell for HIS accommodation."
-
- "But, your Highness, suppose he has nothing to
- confess?"
-
- "As to that, we shall see, anon. An I rack him to
- death and he confess not, it will peradventure show
- that he had indeed naught to confess -- ye will grant
- that that is sooth? Then shall I not be damned for
- an unconfessed man that had naught to confess --
- wherefore, I shall be safe."
-
- It was the stubborn unreasoning of the time. It was
- useless to argue with her. Arguments have no chance
- against petrified training; they wear it as little as the
- waves wear a cliff. And her training was everybody's.
- The brightest intellect in the land would not have been
- able to see that her position was defective.
-
- As we entered the rack-cell I caught a picture that
- will not go from me; I wish it would. A native young
- giant of thirty or thereabouts lay stretched upon the
- frame on his back, with his wrists and ankles tied to
- ropes which led over windlasses at either end. There
- was no color in him; his features were contorted and
- set, and sweat-drops stood upon his forehead. A
- priest bent over him on each side; the executioner
- stood by; guards were on duty; smoking torches
- stood in sockets along the walls; in a corner crouched
- a poor young creature, her face drawn with anguish,
- a half-wild and hunted look in her eyes, and in her lap
- lay a little child asleep. Just as we stepped across the
- threshold the executioner gave his machine a slight
- turn, which wrung a cry from both the prisoner and
- the woman; but I shouted, and the executioner released
- the strain without waiting to see who spoke. I could
- not let this horror go on; it would have killed me to
- see it. I asked the queen to let me clear the place
- and speak to the prisoner privately; and when she was
- going to object I spoke in a low voice and said I did
- not want to make a scene before her servants, but I
- must have my way; for I was King Arthur's repre-
- sentative, and was speaking in his name. She saw she
- had to yield. I asked her to indorse me to these peo-
- ple, and then leave me. It was not pleasant for her,
- but she took the pill; and even went further than I
- was meaning to require. I only wanted the backing of
- her own authority; but she said:
-
- "Ye will do in all things as this lord shall command.
- It is The Boss."
-
- It was certainly a good word to conjure with: you
- could see it by the squirming of these rats. The
- queen's guards fell into line, and she and they marched
- away, with their torch-bearers, and woke the echoes of
- the cavernous tunnels with the measured beat of their
- retreating footfalls. I had the prisoner taken from
- the rack and placed upon his bed, and medicaments
- applied to his hurts, and wine given him to drink.
- The woman crept near and looked on, eagerly, lov-
- ingly, but timorously, -- like one who fears a repulse;
- indeed, she tried furtively to touch the man's forehead,
- and jumped back, the picture of fright, when I turned
- unconsciously toward her. It was pitiful to see.
-
- "Lord," I said, "stroke him, lass, if you want to.
- Do anything you're a mind to; don't mind me."
-
- Why, her eyes were as grateful as an animal's, when
- you do it a kindness that it understands. The baby
- was out of her way and she had her cheek against the
- man's in a minute. and her hands fondling his hair,
- and her happy tears running down. The man revived
- and caressed his wife with his eyes, which was all he
- could do. I judged I might clear the den, now, and I
- did; cleared it of all but the family and myself. Then
- I said:
-
- "Now, my friend, tell me your side of this matter;
- I know the other side."
-
- The man moved his head in sign of refusal. But
- the woman looked pleased -- as it seemed to me --
- pleased with my suggestion. I went on --
-
- "You know of me?"
-
- "Yes. All do, in Arthur's realms."
-
- "If my reputation has come to you right and
- straight, you should not be afraid to speak."
-
- The woman broke in, eagerly:
-
- "Ah, fair my lord, do thou persuade him! Thou
- canst an thou wilt. Ah, he suffereth so; and it is for
- me -- for ME! And how can I bear it? I would I
- might see him die -- a sweet, swift death; oh, my
- Hugo, I cannot bear this one!"
-
- And she fell to sobbing and grovelling about my
- feet, and still imploring. Imploring what? The man's
- death? I could not quite get the bearings of the thing.
- But Hugo interrupted her and said:
-
- "Peace! Ye wit not what ye ask. Shall I starve
- whom I love, to win a gentle death? I wend thou
- knewest me better."
-
- "Well," I said, "I can't quite make this out. It
- is a puzzle. Now --"
-
- "Ah, dear my lord, an ye will but persuade him!
- Consider how these his tortures wound me! Oh, and
- he will not speak! -- whereas, the healing, the solace
- that lie in a blessed swift death --"
-
- "What ARE you maundering about? He's going out
- from here a free man and whole -- he's not going to
- die."
-
- The man's white face lit up, and the woman flung
- herself at me in a most surprising explosion of joy,
- and cried out:
-
- "He is saved! -- for it is the king's word by the
- mouth of the king's servant -- Arthur, the king whose
- word is gold!"
-
- "Well, then you do believe I can be trusted, after
- all. Why didn't you before?"
-
- "Who doubted? Not I, indeed; and not she."
-
- "Well, why wouldn't you tell me your story, then?"
-
- "Ye had made no promise; else had it been other-
- wise."
-
- "I see, I see.... And yet I believe I don't quite
- see, after all. You stood the torture and refused to
- confess; which shows plain enough to even the dull-
- est understanding that you had nothing to confess --"
-
- "I, my lord? How so? It was I that killed the
- deer!"
-
- "You DID? Oh, dear, this is the most mixed-up
- business that ever --"
-
- "Dear lord, I begged him on my knees to confess,
- but --"
-
- "You DID! It gets thicker and thicker. What did
- you want him to do that for?"
-
- "Sith it would bring him a quick death and save
- him all this cruel pain."
-
- "Well -- yes, there is reason in that. But HE didn't
- want the quick death."
-
- "He? Why, of a surety he DID."
-
- "Well, then, why in the world DIDN'T he confess?"
-
- "Ah, sweet sir, and leave my wife and chick with-
- out bread and shelter?"
-
- "Oh, heart of gold, now I see it! The bitter law
- takes the convicted man's estate and beggars his widow
- and his orphans. They could torture you to death,
- but without conviction or confession they could not
- rob your wife and baby. You stood by them like a
- man; and YOU -- true wife and the woman that you
- are -- you would have bought him release from torture
- at cost to yourself of slow starvation and death -- well,
- it humbles a body to think what your sex can do when
- it comes to self-sacrifice. I'll book you both for my
- colony; you'll like it there; it's a Factory where I'm
- going to turn groping and grubbing automata into
- MEN."
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
- IN THE QUEEN'S DUNGEONS
-
- WELL, I arranged all that; and I had the man sent
- to his home. I had a great desire to rack the
- executioner; not because he was a good, painstaking
- and paingiving official, -- for surely it was not to his
- discredit that he performed his functions well -- but to
- pay him back for wantonly cuffing and otherwise dis-
- tressing that young woman. The priests told me about
- this, and were generously hot to have him punished.
- Something of this disagreeable sort was turning up
- every now and then. I mean, episodes that showed
- that not all priests were frauds and self-seekers, but
- that many, even the great majority, of these that were
- down on the ground among the common people, were
- sincere and right-hearted, and devoted to the alleviation
- of human troubles and sufferings. Well, it was a thing
- which could not be helped, so I seldom fretted about
- it, and never many minutes at a time; it has never
- been my way to bother much about things which you
- can't cure. But I did not like it, for it was just the
- sort of thing to keep people reconciled to an Estab-
- lished Church. We MUST have a religion -- it goes
- without saying -- but my idea is, to have it cut up into
- forty free sects, so that they will police each other, as
- had been the case in the United States in my time.
- Concentration of power in a political machine is bad;
- and and an Established Church is only a political machine;
- it was invented for that; it is nursed, cradled, pre-
- served for that; it is an enemy to human liberty, and
- does no good which it could not better do in a split-up
- and scattered condition. That wasn't law; it wasn't
- gospel: it was only an opinion -- my opinion, and I
- was only a man, one man: so it wasn't worth any
- more than the pope's -- or any less, for that matter.
-
- Well, I couldn't rack the executioner, neither would
- I overlook the just complaint of the priests. The man
- must be punished somehow or other, so I degraded
- him from his office and made him leader of the band
- -- the new one that was to be started. He begged
- hard, and said he couldn't play -- a plausible excuse,
- but too thin; there wasn't a musician in the country
- that could.
-
- The queen was a good deal outraged, next morning
- when she found she was going to have neither Hugo's
- life nor his property. But I told her she must bear
- this cross; that while by law and custom she certainly
- was entitled to both the man's life and his property,
- there were extenuating circumstances, and so in Arthur
- the king's name I had pardoned him. The deer was
- ravaging the man's fields, and he had killed it in sud-
- den passion, and not for gain; and he had carried it
- into the royal forest in the hope that that might make
- detection of the misdoer impossible. Confound her, I
- couldn't make her see that sudden passion is an ex-
- tenuating circumstance in the killing of venison -- or
- of a person -- so I gave it up and let her sulk it out
- I DID think I was going to make her see it by remark-
- ing that her own sudden passion in the case of the
- page modified that crime.
-
- "Crime!" she exclaimed. "How thou talkest!
- Crime, forsooth! Man, I am going to PAY for him!"
-
- Oh, it was no use to waste sense on her. Training
- -- training is everything; training is all there is TO a
- person. We speak of nature; it is folly; there is no
- such thing as nature; what we call by that misleading
- name is merely heredity and training. We have no
- thoughts of our own, no opinions of our own; they
- are transmitted to us, trained into us. All that is
- original in us, and therefore fairly creditable or dis-
- creditable to us, can be covered up and hidden by the
- point of a cambric needle, all the rest being atoms
- contributed by, and inherited from, a procession of
- ancestors that stretches back a billion years to the
- Adam-clam or grasshopper or monkey from whom our
- race has been so tediously and ostentatiously and un-
- profitably developed. And as for me, all that I think
- about in this plodding sad pilgrimage, this pathetic
- drift between the eternities, is to look out and humbly
- live a pure and high and blameless life, and save that
- one microscopic atom in me that is truly ME: the rest
- may land in Sheol and welcome for all I care.
-
- No, confound her, her intellect was good, she had
- brains enough, but her training made her an ass -- that
- is, from a many-centuries-later point of view. To kill
- the page was no crime -- it was her right; and upon
- her right she stood, serenely and unconscious of
- offense. She was a result of generations of training
- in the unexamined and unassailed belief that the law
- which permitted her to kill a subject when she chose
- was a perfectly right and righteous one.
-
- Well, we must give even Satan his due. She de-
- served a compliment for one thing; and I tried to pay
- it, but the words stuck in my throat. She had a right
- to kill the boy, but she was in no wise obliged to pay
- for him. That was law for some other people, but
- not for her. She knew quite well that she was doing a
- large and generous thing to pay for that lad, and that
- I ought in common fairness to come out with some-
- thing handsome about it, but I couldn't -- my mouth
- refused. I couldn't help seeing, in my fancy, that
- poor old grandma with the broken heart, and that fair
- young creature lying butchered, his little silken pomps
- and vanities laced with his golden blood. How could
- she PAY for him! WHOM could she pay? And so,
- well knowing that this woman, trained as she had been,
- deserved praise, even adulation, I was yet not able to
- utter it, trained as I had been. The best I could do
- was to fish up a compliment from outside, so to speak
- -- and the pity of it was, that it was true:
-
- "Madame, your people will adore you for this."
-
- Quite true, but I meant to hang her for it some day
- if I lived. Some of those laws were too bad, altogether
- too bad. A master might kill his slave for nothing --
- for mere spite, malice, or to pass the time -- just as
- we have seen that the crowned head could do it with
- HIS slave, that is to say, anybody. A gentleman could
- kill a free commoner, and pay for him -- cash or
- garden-truck. A noble could kill a noble without ex-
- pense, as far as the law was concerned, but reprisals in
- kind were to be expected. ANYbody could kill SOME-
- body, except the commoner and the slave; these had
- no privileges. If they killed, it was murder, and the
- law wouldn't stand murder. It made short work of
- the experimenter -- and of his family, too, if he mur-
- dered somebody who belonged up among the orna-
- mental ranks. If a commoner gave a noble even so
- much as a Damiens-scratch which didn't kill or even
- hurt, he got Damiens' dose for it just the same; they
- pulled him to rags and tatters with horses, and all the
- world came to see the show, and crack jokes, and have
- a good time; and some of the performances of the
- best people present were as tough, and as properly
- unprintable, as any that have been printed by the
- pleasant Casanova in his chapter about the dismember-
- ment of Louis XV.'s poor awkward enemy.
-
- I had had enough of this grisly place by this time,
- and wanted to leave, but I couldn't, because I had
- something on my mind that my conscience kept prod-
- ding me about, and wouldn't let me forget. If I had
- the remaking of man, he wouldn't have any conscience.
- It is one of the most disagreeable things connected
- with a person; and although it certainly does a great
- deal of good, it cannot be said to pay, in the long run;
- it would be much better to have less good and more
- comfort. Still, this is only my opinion, and I am only
- one man; others, with less experience, may think
- differently. They have a right to their view. I only
- stand to this: I have noticed my conscience for many
- years, and I know it is more trouble and bother to me
- than anything else I started with. I suppose that in
- the beginning I prized it, because we prize anything
- that is ours; and yet how foolish it was to think so.
- If we look at it in another way, we see how absurd it
- is: if I had an anvil in me would I prize it? Of course
- not. And yet when you come to think, there is no
- real difference between a conscience and an anvil -- I
- mean for comfort. I have noticed it a thousand times.
- And you could dissolve an anvil with acids, when you
- couldn't stand it any longer; but there isn't any way
- that you can work off a conscience -- at least so it will
- stay worked off; not that I know of, anyway.
-
- There was something I wanted to do before leaving,
- but it was a disagreeable matter, and I hated to go at
- it. Well, it bothered me all the morning. I could
- have mentioned it to the old king, but what would be
- the use? -- he was but an extinct volcano; he had
- been active in his time, but his fire was out, this good
- while, he was only a stately ash-pile now; gentle
- enough, and kindly enough for my purpose, without
- doubt, but not usable. He was nothing, this so-called
- king: the queen was the only power there. And she
- was a Vesuvius. As a favor, she might consent to
- warm a flock of sparrows for you, but then she might
- take that very opportunity to turn herself loose and
- bury a city. However, I reflected that as often as any
- other way, when you are expecting the worst, you get
- something that is not so bad, after all.
-
- So I braced up and placed my matter before her
- royal Highness. I said I had been having a general
- jail-delivery at Camelot and among neighboring castles,
- and with her permission I would like to examine her
- collection, her bric-a-brac -- that is to say, her prison-
- ers. She resisted; but I was expecting that. But she
- finally consented. I was expecting that, too, but not
- so soon. That about ended my discomfort. She
- called her guards and torches, and we went down into
- the dungeons. These were down under the castle's
- foundations, and mainly were small cells hollowed out
- of the living rock. Some of these cells had no light at
- all. In one of them was a woman, in foul rags, who
- sat on the ground, and would not answer a question or
- speak a word, but only looked up at us once or twice,
- through a cobweb of tangled hair, as if to see what
- casual thing it might be that was disturbing with sound
- and light the meaningless dull dream that was become
- her life; after that, she sat bowed, with her dirt-caked
- fingers idly interlocked in her lap, and gave no further
- sign. This poor rack of bones was a woman of middle
- age, apparently; but only apparently; she had been
- there nine years, and was eighteen when she entered.
- She was a commoner, and had been sent here on her
- bridal night by Sir Breuse Sance Pite, a neighboring
- lord whose vassal her father was, and to which said
- lord she had refused what has since been called le droit
- du seigneur, and, moreover, had opposed violence to
- violence and spilt half a gill of his almost sacred blood.
- The young husband had interfered at that point. be-
- lieving the bride's life in danger, and had flung the
- noble out into the midst of the humble and trembling
- wedding guests, in the parlor, and left him there aston-
- ished at this strange treatment, and implacably embit-
- tered against both bride and groom. The said lord
- being cramped for dungeon-room had asked the queen
- to accommodate his two criminals, and here in her
- bastile they had been ever since; hither, indeed, they
- had come before their crime was an hour old, and had
- never seen each other since. Here they were, ken-
- neled like toads in the same rock; they had passed
- nine pitch dark years within fifty feet of each other,
- yet neither knew whether the other was alive or not.
- All the first years, their only question had been --
- asked with beseechings and tears that might have
- moved stones, in time, perhaps, but hearts are not
- stones: "Is he alive?" "Is she alive?" But they
- had never got an answer; and at last that question was
- not asked any more -- or any other.
-
- I wanted to see the man, after hearing all this. He
- was thirty-four years old, and looked sixty. He sat
- upon a squared block of stone, with his head bent
- down, his forearms resting on his knees, his long hair
- hanging like a fringe before his face, and he was
- muttering to himself. He raised his chin and looked
- us slowly over, in a listless dull way, blinking with the
- distress of the torchlight, then dropped his head and
- fell to muttering again and took no further notice of
- us. There were some pathetically suggestive dumb
- witnesses present. On his wrists and ankles were
- cicatrices, old smooth scars, and fastened to the stone
- on which he sat was a chain with manacles and fetters
- attached; but this apparatus lay idle on the ground,
- and was thick with rust. Chains cease to be needed
- after the spirit has gone out of a prisoner.
-
- I could not rouse the man; so I said we would take
- him to her, and see -- to the bride who was the fairest
- thing in the earth to him, once -- roses, pearls, and dew
- made flesh, for him; a wonder-work, the master-work
- of nature: with eyes like no other eyes, and voice like
- no other voice, and a freshness, and lithe young grace,
- and beauty, that belonged properly to the creatures of
- dreams -- as he thought -- and to no other. The sight
- of her would set his stagnant blood leaping; the sight
- of her --
-
- But it was a disappointment. They sat together on
- the ground and looked dimly wondering into each
- other's faces a while, with a sort of weak animal curi-
- osity; then forgot each other's presence, and dropped
- their eyes, and you saw that they were away again and
- wandering in some far land of dreams and shadows
- that we know nothing about.
-
- I had them taken out and sent to their friends. The
- queen did not like it much. Not that she felt any
- personal interest in the matter, but she thought it dis-
- respectful to Sir Breuse Sance Pite. However, I
- assured her that if he found he couldn't stand it I
- would fix him so that he could.
-
- I set forty-seven prisoners loose out of those awful
- rat-holes, and left only one in captivity. He was a
- lord, and had killed another lord, a sort of kinsman of
- the queen. That other lord had ambushed him to
- assassinate him, but this fellow had got the best of him
- and cut his throat. However, it was not for that that
- I left him jailed, but for maliciously destroying the
- only public well in one of his wretched villages. The
- queen was bound to hang him for killing her kinsman,
- but I would not allow it: it was no crime to kill an
- assassin. But I said I was willing to let her hang him
- for destroying the well; so she concluded to put up
- with that, as it was better than nothing.
-
- Dear me, for what trifling offenses the most of those
- forty-seven men and women were shut up there! In-
- deed, some were there for no distinct offense at all,
- but only to gratify somebody's spite; and not always
- the queen's by any means, but a friend's. The newest
- prisoner's crime was a mere remark which he had
- made. He said he believed that men were about all
- alike, and one man as good as another, barring clothes.
- He said he believed that if you were to strip the nation
- naked and send a stranger through the crowd, he
- couldn't tell the king from a quack doctor, nor a duke
- from a hotel clerk. Apparently here was a man whose
- brains had not been reduced to an ineffectual mush by
- idiotic training. I set him loose and sent him to the
- Factory.
-
- Some of the cells carved in the living rock were just
- behind the face of the precipice, and in each of these
- an arrow-slit had been pierced outward to the daylight,
- and so the captive had a thin ray from the blessed sun
- for his comfort. The case of one of these poor fel-
- lows was particularly hard. From his dusky swallow's
- hole high up in that vast wall of native rock he could
- peer out through the arrow-slit and see his own home
- off yonder in the valley; and for twenty-two years he
- had watched it, with heartache and longing, through
- that crack. He could see the lights shine there at
- night, and in the daytime he could see figures go in
- and come out -- his wife and children, some of them,
- no doubt, though he could not make out at that dis-
- tance. In the course of years he noted festivities
- there, and tried to rejoice, and wondered if they were
- weddings or what they might be. And he noted
- funerals; and they wrung his heart. He could make
- out the coffin, but he could not determine its size, and
- so could not tell whether it was wife or child. He
- could see the procession form, with priests and mourn-
- ers, and move solemnly away, bearing the secret with
- them. He had left behind him five children and a
- wife; and in nineteen years he had seen five funerals
- issue, and none of them humble enough in pomp to
- denote a servant. So he had lost five of his treasures;
- there must still be one remaining -- one now infinitely,
- unspeakably precious, -- but WHICH one? wife, or child?
- That was the question that tortured him, by night and
- by day, asleep and awake. Well, to have an interest,
- of some sort, and half a ray of light, when you are in
- a dungeon, is a great support to the body and preserver
- of the intellect. This man was in pretty good condi-
- tion yet. By the time he had finished telling me his
- distressful tale, I was in the same state of mind that
- you would have been in yourself, if you have got
- average human curiosity; that is to say, I was as
- burning up as he was to find out which member of
- the family it was that was left. So I took him over
- home myself; and an amazing kind of a surprise party
- it was, too -- typhoons and cyclones of frantic joy,
- and whole Niagaras of happy tears; and by George!
- we found the aforetime young matron graying toward
- the imminent verge of her half century, and the babies
- all men and women, and some of them married and
- experimenting familywise themselves -- for not a soul
- of the tribe was dead! Conceive of the ingenious
- devilishness of that queen: she had a special hatred
- for this prisoner, and she had INVENTED all those funer-
- als herself, to scorch his heart with; and the sublimest
- stroke of genius of the whole thing was leaving the
- family-invoice a funeral SHORT, so as to let him wear his
- poor old soul out guessing.
-
- But for me, he never would have got out. Morgan
- le Fay hated him with her whole heart, and she never
- would have softened toward him. And yet his crime
- was committed more in thoughtlessness than deliberate
- depravity. He had said she had red hair. Well, she
- had; but that was no way to speak of it. When red-
- headed people are above a certain social grade their
- hair is auburn.
-
- Consider it: among these forty-seven captives there
- were five whose names, offenses, and dates of incar-
- ceration were no longer known! One woman and four
- men -- all bent, and wrinkled, and mind-extinguished
- patriarchs. They themselves had long ago forgotten
- these details; at any rate they had mere vague theories
- about them, nothing definite and nothing that they re-
- peated twice in the same way. The succession of
- priests whose office it had been to pray daily with the
- captives and remind them that God had put them
- there, for some wise purpose or other, and teach them
- that patience, humbleness, and submission to oppres-
- sion was what He loved to see in parties of a subordi-
- nate rank, had traditions about these poor old human
- ruins, but nothing more. These traditions went but
- little way, for they concerned the length of the incar-
- ceration only, and not the names of the offenses. And
- even by the help of tradition the only thing that could
- be proven was that none of the five had seen daylight
- for thirty-five years: how much longer this privation
- has lasted was not guessable. The king and the queen
- knew nothing about these poor creatures, except that
- they were heirlooms, assets inherited, along with the
- throne, from the former firm. Nothing of their history
- had been transmitted with their persons, and so the
- inheriting owners had considered them of no value,
- and had felt no interest in them. I said to the queen:
-
- "Then why in the world didn't you set them free?"
-
- The question was a puzzler. She didn't know WHY
- she hadn't, the thing had never come up in her mind.
- So here she was, forecasting the veritable history of
- future prisoners of the Castle d'If, without knowing it.
- It seemed plain to me now, that with her training,
- those inherited prisoners were merely property -- noth-
- ing more, nothing less. Well, when we inherit prop-
- erty, it does not occur to us to throw it away, even
- when we do not value it.
-
- When I brought my procession of human bats up
- into the open world and the glare of the afternoon sun
- -- previously blindfolding them, in charity for eyes
- so long untortured by light -- they were a spectacle
- to look at. Skeletons, scarecrows, goblins, pathetic
- frights, every one; legitimatest possible children of
- Monarchy by the Grace of God and the Established
- Church. I muttered absently:
-
- "I WISH I could photograph them!"
-
- You have seen that kind of people who will never let
- on that they don't know the meaning of a new big
- word. The more ignorant they are, the more pitifully
- certain they are to pretend you haven't shot over their
- heads. The queen was just one of that sort, and was
- always making the stupidest blunders by reason of it.
- She hesitated a moment; then her face brightened up
- with sudden comprehension, and she said she would
- do it for me.
-
- I thought to myself: She? why what can she know
- about photography? But it was a poor time to be
- thinking. When I looked around, she was moving on
- the procession with an axe!
-
- Well, she certainly was a curious one, was Morgan
- le Fay. I have seen a good many kinds of women in
- my time, but she laid over them all for variety. And
- how sharply characteristic of her this episode was.
- She had no more idea than a horse of how to photo-
- graph a procession; but being in doubt, it was just
- like her to try to do it with an axe.
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
- KNIGHT-ERRANTRY AS A TRADE
-
- SANDY and I were on the road again, next morn-
- ing, bright and early. It was so good to open up
- one's lungs and take in whole luscious barrels-ful of
- the blessed God's untainted, dew-fashioned, woodland-
- scented air once more, after suffocating body and mind
- for two days and nights in the moral and physical
- stenches of that intolerable old buzzard-roost!
- mean, for me: of course the place was all right and
- agreeable enough for Sandy, for she had been used to
- high life all her days.
-
- Poor girl, her jaws had had a wearisome rest now
- for a while, and I was expecting to get the conse-
- quences. I was right; but she had stood by me most
- helpfully in the castle, and had mightily supported and
- reinforced me with gigantic foolishnesses which were
- worth more for the occasion than wisdoms double
- their size; so I thought she had earned a right to work
- her mill for a while, if she wanted to, and I felt not a
- pang when she started it up:
-
- "Now turn we unto Sir Marhaus that rode with the
- damsel of thirty winter of age southward --"
-
- "Are you going to see if you can work up another
- half-stretch on the trail of the cowboys, Sandy?"
-
- "Even so, fair my lord."
-
- "Go ahead, then. I won't interrupt this time, if I
- can help it. Begin over again; start fair, and shake
- out all your reefs, and I will load my pipe and give
- good attention."
-
- "Now turn we unto Sir Marhaus that rode with the
- damsel of thirty winter of age southward. And so
- they came into a deep forest, and by fortune they were
- nighted, and rode along in a deep way, and at the last
- they came into a courtelage where abode the duke of
- South Marches, and there they asked harbour. And
- on the morn the duke sent unto Sir Marhaus, and bad
- him make him ready. And so Sir Marhaus arose and
- armed him, and there was a mass sung afore him, and
- he brake his fast, and so mounted on horseback in the
- court of the castle, there they should do the battle.
- So there was the duke already on horseback, clean
- armed, and his six sons by him, and every each had a
- spear in his hand, and so they encountered, whereas
- the duke and his two sons brake their spears upon
- him, but Sir Marhaus held up his spear and touched
- none of them. Then came the four sons by couples,
- and two of them brake their spears, and so did the
- other two. And all this while Sir Marhaus touched
- them not. Then Sir Marhaus ran to the duke, and
- smote him with his spear that horse and man fell to
- the earth. And so he served his sons. And then Sir
- Marhaus alight down, and bad the duke yield him or
- else he would slay him. And then some of his sons
- recovered, and would have set upon Sir Marhaus.
- Then Sir Marhaus said to the duke, Cease thy sons, or
- else I will do the uttermost to you all. When the
- duke saw he might not escape the death, he cried to
- his sons, and charged them to yield them to Sir Mar-
- haus. And they kneeled all down and put the pom-
- mels of their swords to the knight, and so he received
- them. And then they holp up their father, and so by
- their common assent promised unto Sir Marhaus never
- to be foes unto King Arthur, and thereupon at Whit-
- suntide after, to come he and his sons, and put them
- in the king's grace. *
-
- [* Footnote: The story is borrowed, language and
- all, from the Morte d'Arthur. --M.T.]
-
- "Even so standeth the history, fair Sir Boss. Now
- ye shall wit that that very duke and his six sons are
- they whom but few days past you also did overcome
- and send to Arthur's court!"
-
- "Why, Sandy, you can't mean it!"
-
- "An I speak not sooth, let it be the worse for me."
-
- "Well, well, well, -- now who would ever have
- thought it? One whole duke and six dukelets; why,
- Sandy, it was an elegant haul. Knight-errantry is a
- most chuckle-headed trade, and it is tedious hard
- work, too, but I begin to see that there IS money in
- it, after all, if you have luck. Not that I would ever
- engage in it as a business, for I wouldn't. No sound
- and legitimate business can be established on a basis of
- speculation. A successful whirl in the knight-errantry
- line -- now what is it when you blow away the non-
- sense and come down to the cold facts? It's just a
- corner in pork, that's all, and you can't make anything
- else out of it. You're rich -- yes, -- suddenly rich --
- for about a day, maybe a week; then somebody cor-
- ners the market on YOU, and down goes your bucket-
- shop; ain't that so, Sandy?"
-
- "Whethersoever it be that my mind miscarrieth,
- bewraying simple language in such sort that the words
- do seem to come endlong and overthwart --"
-
- "There's no use in beating about the bush and
- trying to get around it that way, Sandy, it's SO, just as
- I say. I KNOW it's so. And, moreover, when you
- come right down to the bedrock, knight-errantry is
- WORSE than pork; for whatever happens, the pork's
- left, and so somebody's benefited anyway; but when
- the market breaks, in a knight-errantry whirl, and
- every knight in the pool passes in his checks, what
- have you got for assets? Just a rubbish-pile of bat-
- tered corpses and a barrel or two of busted hardware.
- Can you call THOSE assets? Give me pork, every time.
- Am I right?"
-
- "Ah, peradventure my head being distraught by
- the manifold matters whereunto the confusions of these
- but late adventured haps and fortunings whereby not
- I alone nor you alone, but every each of us, meseem-
- eth --"
-
- "No, it's not your head, Sandy. Your head's all
- right, as far as it goes, but you don't know business;
- that's where the trouble is. It unfits you to argue
- about business, and you're wrong to be always trying.
- However, that aside, it was a good haul, anyway, and
- will breed a handsome crop of reputation in Arthur's
- court. And speaking of the cowboys, what a curious
- country this is for women and men that never get old.
- Now there's Morgan le Fay, as fresh and young as a
- Vassar pullet, to all appearances, and here is this old
- duke of the South Marches still slashing away with
- sword and lance at his time of life, after raising such a
- family as he has raised. As I understand it, Sir
- Gawaine killed seven of his sons, and still he had six
- left for Sir Marhaus and me to take into camp. And
- then there was that damsel of sixty winter of age still
- excursioning around in her frosty bloom -- How old
- are you, Sandy?"
-
- It was the first time I ever struck a still place in her.
- The mill had shut down for repairs, or something.
-
-
- CHAPTER XX.
- THE OGRE'S CASTLE
-
- BETWEEN six and nine we made ten miles, which
- was plenty for a horse carrying triple -- man,
- woman, and armor; then we stopped for a long noon-
- ing under some trees by a limpid brook.
-
- Right so came by and by a knight riding; and as he
- drew near he made dolorous moan, and by the words
- of it I perceived that he was cursing and swearing; yet
- nevertheless was I glad of his coming, for that I saw
- he bore a bulletin-board whereon in letters all of
- shining gold was writ:
-
- "USE PETERSON S PROPHYLACTIC TOOTH-BRUSH--
- ALL THE GO."
-
- I was glad of his coming, for even by this token I
- knew him for knight of mine. It was Sir Madok de
- la Montaine, a burly great fellow whose chief distinc-
- tion was that he had come within an ace of sending Sir
- Launcelot down over his horse-tail once. He was
- never long in a stranger's presence without finding
- some pretext or other to let out that great fact. But
- there was another fact of nearly the same size, which
- he never pushed upon anybody unasked, and yet never
- withheld when asked: that was, that the reason he
- didn't quite succeed was, that he was interrupted and
- sent down over horse-tail himself. This innocent vast
- lubber did not see any particular difference between
- the two facts. I liked him, for he was earnest in his
- work, and very valuable. And he was so fine to look
- at, with his broad mailed shoulders, and the grand
- leonine set of his plumed head, and his big shield
- with its quaint device of a gauntleted hand clutch-
- ing a prophylactic tooth-brush, with motto: "Try
- Noyoudont." This was a tooth-wash that I was
- introducing.
-
- He was aweary, he said, and indeed he looked it;
- but he would not alight. He said he was after the
- stove-polish man; and with this he broke out cursing
- and swearing anew. The bulletin-boarder referred to
- was Sir Ossaise of Surluse, a brave knight, and of
- considerable celebrity on account of his having tried
- conclusions in a tournament once, with no less a Mogul
- that Sir Gaheris himself -- although not successfully.
- He was of a light and laughing disposition, and to him
- nothing in this world was serious. It was for this
- reason that I had chosen him to work up a stove-polish
- sentiment. There were no stoves yet, and so there
- could be nothing serious about stove-polish. All that
- the agent needed to do was to deftly and by degrees
- prepare the public for the great change, and have them
- established in predilections toward neatness against the
- time when the stove should appear upon the stage.
-
- Sir Madok was very bitter, and brake out anew with
- cursings. He said he had cursed his soul to rags;
- and yet he would not get down from his horse, neither
- would he take any rest, or listen to any comfort, until
- he should have found Sir Ossaise and settled this ac-
- count. It appeared, by what I could piece together
- of the unprofane fragments of his statement, that he
- had chanced upon Sir Ossaise at dawn of the morning,
- and been told that if he would make a short cut across
- the fields and swamps and broken hills and glades, he
- could head off a company of travelers who would be
- rare customers for prophylactics and tooth-wash. With
- characteristic zeal Sir Madok had plunged away at
- once upon this quest, and after three hours of awful
- crosslot riding had overhauled his game. And behold,
- it was the five patriarchs that had been released from
- the dungeons the evening before! Poor old creatures,
- it was all of twenty years since any one of them had
- known what it was to be equipped with any remaining
- snag or remnant of a tooth.
-
- "Blank-blank-blank him," said Sir Madok, "an I
- do not stove-polish him an I may find him, leave it to
- me; for never no knight that hight Ossaise or aught
- else may do me this disservice and bide on live, an I
- may find him, the which I have thereunto sworn a
- great oath this day."
-
- And with these words and others, he lightly took his
- spear and gat him thence. In the middle of the after-
- noon we came upon one of those very patriarchs our-
- selves, in the edge of a poor village. He was basking
- in the love of relatives and friends whom he had not
- seen for fifty years; and about him and caressing him
- were also descendants of his own body whom he had
- never seen at all till now; but to him these were all
- strangers, his memory was gone, his mind was stag-
- nant. It seemed incredible that a man could outlast
- half a century shut up in a dark hole like a rat, but
- here were his old wife and some old comrades to
- testify to it. They could remember him as he was in
- the freshness and strength of his young manhood,
- when he kissed his child and delivered it to its mother's
- hands and went away into that long oblivion. The
- people at the castle could not tell within half a genera-
- tion the length of time the man had been shut up there
- for his unrecorded and forgotten offense; but this old
- wife knew; and so did her old child, who stood there
- among her married sons and daughters trying to realize
- a father who had been to her a name, a thought, a
- formless image, a tradition, all her life, and now was
- suddenly concreted into actual flesh and blood and set
- before her face.
-
- It was a curious situation; yet it is not on that ac-
- count that I have made room for it here, but on
- account of a thing which seemed to me still more
- curious. To wit, that this dreadful matter brought
- from these downtrodden people no outburst of rage
- against these oppressors. They had been heritors and
- subjects of cruelty and outrage so long that nothing
- could have startled them but a kindness. Yes, here
- was a curious revelation, indeed, of the depth to which
- this people had been sunk in slavery. Their entire
- being was reduced to a monotonous dead level of
- patience, resignation, dumb uncomplaining acceptance
- of whatever might befall them in this life. Their very
- imagination was dead. When you can say that of a
- man, he has struck bottom, I reckon; there is no
- lower deep for him.
-
- I rather wished I had gone some other road. This
- was not the sort of experience for a statesman to en-
- counter who was planning out a peaceful revolution in
- his mind. For it could not help bringing up the un-
- get-aroundable fact that, all gentle cant and philoso-
- phizing to the contrary notwithstanding, no people in
- the world ever did achieve their freedom by goody-
- goody talk and moral suasion: it being immutable law
- that all revolutions that will succeed must BEGIN in
- blood, whatever may answer afterward. If history
- teaches anything, it teaches that. What this folk
- needed, then, was a Reign of Terror and a guillotine,
- and I was the wrong man for them.
-
- Two days later, toward noon, Sandy began to show
- signs of excitement and feverish expectancy. She
- said we were approaching the ogre's castle. I was
- surprised into an uncomfortable shock. The object of
- our quest had gradually dropped out of my mind; this
- sudden resurrection of it made it seem quite a real and
- startling thing for a moment, and roused up in me a
- smart interest. Sandy's excitement increased every
- moment; and so did mine, for that sort of thing is
- catching. My heart got to thumping. You can't
- reason with your heart; it has its own laws, and
- thumps about things which the intellect scorns. Pres-
- ently, when Sandy slid from the horse, motioned me
- to stop, and went creeping stealthily, with her head
- bent nearly to her knees, toward a row of bushes that
- bordered a declivity, the thumpings grew stronger and
- quicker. And they kept it up while she was gaining
- her ambush and getting her glimpse over the declivity;
- and also while I was creeping to her side on my knees.
- Her eyes were burning now, as she pointed with her
- finger, and said in a panting whisper:
-
- "The castle! The castle! Lo, where it looms!"
-
- What a welcome disappointment I experienced! I
- said:
-
- "Castle? It is nothing but a pigsty; a pigsty with
- a wattled fence around it."
-
- She looked surprised and distressed. The animation
- faded out of her face; and during many moments she
- was lost in thought and silent. Then:
-
- "It was not enchanted aforetime," she said in a
- musing fashion, as if to herself. "And how strange
- is this marvel, and how awful -- that to the one per-
- ception it is enchanted and dight in a base and shame-
- ful aspect; yet to the perception of the other it is not
- enchanted, hath suffered no change, but stands firm
- and stately still, girt with its moat and waving its ban-
- ners in the blue air from its towers. And God shield
- us, how it pricks the heart to see again these gracious
- captives, and the sorrow deepened in their sweet faces!
- We have tarried along, and are to blame."
-
- I saw my cue. The castle was enchanted to ME, not
- to her. It would be wasted time to try to argue her
- out of her delusion, it couldn't be done; I must just
- humor it. So I said:
-
- "This is a common case -- the enchanting of a thing
- to one eye and leaving it in its proper form to another.
- You have heard of it before, Sandy, though you
- haven't happened to experience it. But no harm is
- done. In fact, it is lucky the way it is. If these
- ladies were hogs to everybody and to themselves, it
- would be necessary to break the enchantment, and that
- might be impossible if one failed to find out the par-
- ticular process of the enchantment. And hazardous,
- too; for in attempting a disenchantment without the
- true key, you are liable to err, and turn your hogs into
- dogs, and the dogs into cats, the cats into rats, and so
- on, and end by reducing your materials to nothing
- finally, or to an odorless gas which you can't follow --
- which, of course, amounts to the same thing. But
- here, by good luck, no one's eyes but mine are under
- the enchantment, and so it is of no consequence to
- dissolve it. These ladies remain ladies to you, and to
- themselves, and to everybody else; and at the same
- time they will suffer in no way from my delusion, for
- when I know that an ostensible hog is a lady, that is
- enough for me, I know how to treat her."
-
- "Thanks, oh, sweet my lord, thou talkest like an
- angel. And I know that thou wilt deliver them, for
- that thou art minded to great deeds and art as strong a
- knight of your hands and as brave to will and to do,
- as any that is on live."
-
- "I will not leave a princess in the sty, Sandy. Are
- those three yonder that to my disordered eyes are
- starveling swine-herds --"
-
- "The ogres, Are THEY changed also? It is most
- wonderful. Now am I fearful; for how canst thou
- strike with sure aim when five of their nine cubits of
- stature are to thee invisible? Ah, go warily, fair sir;
- this is a mightier emprise than I wend."
-
- "You be easy, Sandy. All I need to know is, how
- MUCH of an ogre is invisible; then I know how to
- locate his vitals. Don't you be afraid, I will make
- short work of these bunco-steerers. Stay where you
- are."
-
- I left Sandy kneeling there, corpse-faced but plucky
- and hopeful, and rode down to the pigsty, and struck
- up a trade with the swine-herds. I won their gratitude
- by buying out all the hogs at the lump sum of sixteen
- pennies, which was rather above latest quotations. I
- was just in time; for the Church, the lord of the
- manor, and the rest of the tax-gatherers would have
- been along next day and swept off pretty much all the
- stock, leaving the swine-herds very short of hogs and
- Sandy out of princesses. But now the tax people
- could be paid in cash, and there would be a stake left
- besides. One of the men had ten children; and he
- said that last year when a priest came and of his ten
- pigs took the fattest one for tithes, the wife burst out
- upon him, and offered him a child and said:
-
- "Thou beast without bowels of mercy, why leave
- me my child, yet rob me of the wherewithal to feed it?"
-
- How curious. The same thing had happened in the
- Wales of my day, under this same old Established
- Church, which was supposed by many to have changed
- its nature when it changed its disguise.
-
- I sent the three men away, and then opened the sty
- gate and beckoned Sandy to come -- which she did;
- and not leisurely, but with the rush of a prairie fire.
- And when I saw her fling herself upon those hogs,
- with tears of joy running down her cheeks, and strain
- them to her heart, and kiss them, and caress them,
- and call them reverently by grand princely names, I
- was ashamed of her, ashamed of the human race.
-
- We had to drive those hogs home -- ten miles; and
- no ladies were ever more fickle-minded or contrary.
- They would stay in no road, no path; they broke out
- through the brush on all sides, and flowed away in all
- directions, over rocks, and hills, and the roughest
- places they could find. And they must not be struck,
- or roughly accosted; Sandy could not bear to see
- them treated in ways unbecoming their rank. The
- troublesomest old sow of the lot had to be called my
- Lady, and your Highness, like the rest. It is annoy-
- ing and difficult to scour around after hogs, in armor.
- There was one small countess, with an iron ring in her
- snout and hardly any hair on her back, that was the
- devil for perversity. She gave me a race of an hour,
- over all sorts of country, and then we were right where
- we had started from, having made not a rod of real
- progress. I seized her at last by the tail, and brought
- her along squealing. When I overtook Sandy she was
- horrified, and said it was in the last degree indelicate
- to drag a countess by her train.
-
- We got the hogs home just at dark -- most of them.
- The princess Nerovens de Morganore was missing, and
- two of her ladies in waiting: namely, Miss Angela
- Bohun, and the Demoiselle Elaine Courtemains, the
- former of these two being a young black sow with a
- white star in her forehead, and the latter a brown one
- with thin legs and a slight limp in the forward shank
- on the starboard side -- a couple of the tryingest blis-
- ters to drive that I ever saw. Also among the missing
- were several mere baronesses -- and I wanted them to
- stay missing; but no, all that sausage-meat had to be
- found; so servants were sent out with torches to scour
- the woods and hills to that end.
-
- Of course, the whole drove was housed in the house,
- and, great guns! -- well, I never saw anything like it.
- Nor ever heard anything like it. And never smelt
- anything like it. It was like an insurrection in a gaso-
- meter.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
- THE PILGRIMS
-
- WHEN I did get to bed at last I was unspeakably
- tired; the stretching out, and the relaxing of
- the long-tense muscles, how luxurious, how delicious!
- but that was as far as I could get -- sleep was out of
- the question for the present. The ripping and tearing
- and squealing of the nobility up and down the halls
- and corridors was pandemonium come again, and kept
- me broad awake. Being awake, my thoughts were
- busy, of course; and mainly they busied themselves
- with Sandy's curious delusion. Here she was, as sane
- a person as the kingdom could produce; and yet,
- from my point of view she was acting like a crazy
- woman. My land, the power of training! of influence!
- of education! It can bring a body up to believe any-
- thing. I had to put myself in Sandy's place to realize
- that she was not a lunatic. Yes, and put her in mine,
- to demonstrate how easy it is to seem a lunatic to a
- person who has not been taught as you have been
- taught. If I had told Sandy I had seen a wagon,
- uninfluenced by enchantment, spin along fifty miles an
- hour; had seen a man, unequipped with magic powers,
- get into a basket and soar out of sight among the
- clouds; and had listened, without any necromancer's
- help, to the conversation of a person who was several
- hundred miles away, Sandy would not merely have
- supposed me to be crazy, she would have thought she
- knew it. Everybody around her believed in enchant-
- ments; nobody had any doubts; to doubt that a castle
- could be turned into a sty, and its occupants into hogs,
- would have been the same as my doubting among Con-
- necticut people the actuality of the telephone and its
- wonders, -- and in both cases would be absolute proof
- of a diseased mind, an unsettled reason. Yes, Sandy
- was sane; that must be admitted. If I also would be
- sane -- to Sandy -- I must keep my superstitions about
- unenchanted and unmiraculous locomotives, balloons,
- and telephones, to myself. Also, I believed that the
- world was not flat, and hadn't pillars under it to sup-
- port it, nor a canopy over it to turn off a universe of
- water that occupied all space above; but as I was the
- only person in the kingdom afflicted with such impious
- and criminal opinions, I recognized that it would be
- good wisdom to keep quiet about this matter, too, if I
- did not wish to be suddenly shunned and forsaken by
- everybody as a madman.
-
- The next morning Sandy assembled the swine in the
- dining-room and gave them their breakfast, waiting
- upon them personally and manifesting in every way
- the deep reverence which the natives of her island,
- ancient and modern, have always felt for rank, let its
- outward casket and the mental and moral contents be
- what they may. I could have eaten with the hogs if I
- had had birth approaching my lofty official rank; but
- I hadn't, and so accepted the unavoidable slight and
- made no complaint. Sandy and I had our breakfast at
- the second table. The family were not at home. I
- said:
-
- "How many are in the family, Sandy, and where
- do they keep themselves?"
-
- "Family?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Which family, good my lord?"
-
- "Why, this family; your own family."
-
- "Sooth to say, I understand you not. I have no
- family."
-
- "No family? Why, Sandy, isn't this your home?"
-
- "Now how indeed might that be? I have no home."
-
- "Well, then, whose house is this?"
-
- "Ah, wit you well I would tell you an I knew
- myself."
-
- "Come -- you don't even know these people?
- Then who invited us here?"
-
- "None invited us. We but came; that is all."
-
- "Why, woman, this is a most extraordinary per-
- formance. The effrontery of it is beyond admiration.
- We blandly march into a man's house, and cram it
- full of the only really valuable nobility the sun has yet
- discovered in the earth, and then it turns out that we
- don't even know the man's name. How did you ever
- venture to take this extravagant liberty? I supposed,
- of course, it was your home. What will the man say?"
-
- "What will he say? Forsooth what can he say but
- give thanks?"
-
- "Thanks for what?"
-
- Her face was filled with a puzzled surprise:
-
- "Verily, thou troublest mine understanding with
- strange words. Do ye dream that one of his estate is
- like to have the honor twice in his life to entertain
- company such as we have brought to grace his house
- withal?"
-
- "Well, no -- when you come to that. No, it's an
- even bet that this is the first time he has had a treat
- like this."
-
- "Then let him be thankful, and manifest the same
- by grateful speech and due humility; he were a dog,
- else, and the heir and ancestor of dogs."
-
- To my mind, the situation was uncomfortable. It
- might become more so. It might be a good idea to
- muster the hogs and move on. So I said:
-
- "The day is wasting, Sandy. It is time to get the
- nobility together and be moving."
-
- "Wherefore, fair sir and Boss?"
-
- "We want to take them to their home, don't we?"
-
- "La, but list to him! They be of all the regions of
- the earth! Each must hie to her own home; wend
- you we might do all these journeys in one so brief life
- as He hath appointed that created life, and thereto
- death likewise with help of Adam, who by sin done
- through persuasion of his helpmeet, she being wrought
- upon and bewrayed by the beguilements of the great
- enemy of man, that serpent hight Satan, aforetime
- consecrated and set apart unto that evil work by over-
- mastering spite and envy begotten in his heart through
- fell ambitions that did blight and mildew a nature erst
- so white and pure whenso it hove with the shining
- multitudes its brethren-born in glade and shade of that
- fair heaven wherein all such as native be to that rich
- estate and --"
-
- "Great Scott!"
-
- "My lord?"
-
- "Well, you know we haven't got time for this sort
- of thing. Don't you see, we could distribute these
- people around the earth in less time than it is going to
- take you to explain that we can't. We mustn't talk
- now, we must act. You want to be careful; you
- mustn't let your mill get the start of you that way, at
- a time like this. To business now -- and sharp's the
- word. Who is to take the aristocracy home?"
-
- "Even their friends. These will come for them
- from the far parts of the earth."
-
- This was lightning from a clear sky, for unexpected-
- ness; and the relief of it was like pardon to a prisoner.
- She would remain to deliver the goods, of course.
-
- "Well, then, Sandy, as our enterprise is handsomely
- and successfully ended, I will go home and report;
- and if ever another one --"
-
- "I also am ready; I will go with thee."
-
- This was recalling the pardon.
-
- "How? You will go with me? Why should you?"
-
- "Will I be traitor to my knight, dost think? That
- were dishonor. I may not part from thee until in
- knightly encounter in the field some overmatching
- champion shall fairly win and fairly wear me. I were
- to blame an I thought that that might ever hap."
-
- "Elected for the long term," I sighed to myself.
- "I may as well make the best of it." So then I spoke
- up and said:
-
- "All right; let us make a start."
-
- While she was gone to cry her farewells over the
- pork, I gave that whole peerage away to the servants.
- And I asked them to take a duster and dust around a
- little where the nobilities had mainly lodged and prom-
- enaded; but they considered that that would be hardly
- worth while, and would moreover be a rather grave
- departure from custom, and therefore likely to make
- talk. A departure from custom -- that settled it; it
- was a nation capable of committing any crime but
- that. The servants said they would follow the fashion,
- a fashion grown sacred through immemorial observ-
- ance; they would scatter fresh rushes in all the rooms
- and halls, and then the evidence of the aristocratic
- visitation would be no longer visible. It was a kind of
- satire on Nature: it was the scientific method, the
- geologic method; it deposited the history of the family
- in a stratified record; and the antiquary could dig
- through it and tell by the remains of each period what
- changes of diet the family had introduced successively
- for a hundred years.
-
- The first thing we struck that day was a procession
- of pilgrims. It was not going our way, but we joined
- it, nevertheless; for it was hourly being borne in
- upon me now, that if I would govern this country
- wisely, I must be posted in the details of its life,
- and not at second hand, but by personal observation
- and scrutiny.
-
- This company of pilgrims resembled Chaucer's in
- this: that it had in it a sample of about all the upper
- occupations and professions the country could show,
- and a corresponding variety of costume. There were
- young men and old men, young women and old
- women, lively folk and grave folk. They rode upon
- mules and horses, and there was not a side-saddle in
- the party; for this specialty was to remain unknown in
- England for nine hundred years yet.
-
- It was a pleasant, friendly, sociable herd; pious,
- happy, merry and full of unconscious coarsenesses and
- innocent indecencies. What they regarded as the
- merry tale went the continual round and caused no
- more embarrassment than it would have caused in the
- best English society twelve centuries later. Practical
- jokes worthy of the English wits of the first quarter of
- the far-off nineteenth century were sprung here and
- there and yonder along the line, and compelled the
- delightedest applause; and sometimes when a bright
- remark was made at one end of the procession and
- started on its travels toward the other, you could note
- its progress all the way by the sparkling spray of
- laughter it threw off from its bows as it plowed along;
- and also by the blushes of the mules in its wake.
-
- Sandy knew the goal and purpose of this pilgrimage,
- and she posted me. She said:
-
- "They journey to the Valley of Holiness, for to be
- blessed of the godly hermits and drink of the miracu-
- lous waters and be cleased from sin."
-
- "Where is this watering place?"
-
- "It lieth a two-day journey hence, by the borders
- of the land that hight the Cuckoo Kingdom."
-
- "Tell me about it. Is it a celebrated place?"
-
- "Oh, of a truth, yes. There be none more so. Of
- old time there lived there an abbot and his monks.
- Belike were none in the world more holy than these;
- for they gave themselves to study of pious books, and
- spoke not the one to the other, or indeed to any, and
- ate decayed herbs and naught thereto, and slept hard,
- and prayed much, and washed never; also they wore
- the same garment until it fell from their bodies through
- age and decay. Right so came they to be known of
- all the world by reason of these holy austerities, and
- visited by rich and poor, and reverenced."
-
- "Proceed."
-
- "But always there was lack of water there. Whereas,
- upon a time, the holy abbot prayed, and for answer
- a great stream of clear water burst forth by miracle
- in a desert place. Now were the fickle monks tempted
- of the Fiend, and they wrought with their abbot un-
- ceasingly by beggings and beseechings that he would
- construct a bath; and when he was become aweary and
- might not resist more, he said have ye your will, then,
- and granted that they asked. Now mark thou what
- 'tis to forsake the ways of purity the which He loveth,
- and wanton with such as be worldly and an offense.
- These monks did enter into the bath and come thence
- washed as white as snow; and lo, in that moment His
- sign appeared, in miraculous rebuke! for His insulted
- waters ceased to flow, and utterly vanished away."
-
- "They fared mildly, Sandy, considering how that
- kind of crime is regarded in this country."
-
- "Belike; but it was their first sin; and they had
- been of perfect life for long, and differing in naught
- from the angels. Prayers, tears, torturings of the
- flesh, all was vain to beguile that water to flow again.
- Even processions; even burnt-offerings; even votive
- candles to the Virgin, did fail every each of them;
- and all in the land did marvel."
-
- "How odd to find that even this industry has its
- financial panics, and at times sees its assignats and
- greenbacks languish to zero, and everything come to a
- standstill. Go on, Sandy."
-
- "And so upon a time, after year and day, the good
- abbot made humble surrender and destroyed the bath.
- And behold, His anger was in that moment appeased,
- and the waters gushed richly forth again, and even
- unto this day they have not ceased to flow in that
- generous measure."
-
- "Then I take it nobody has washed since."
-
- "He that would essay it could have his halter free;
- yes, and swiftly would he need it, too."
-
- "The community has prospered since?"
-
- "Even from that very day. The fame of the miracle
- went abroad into all lands. From every land came
- monks to join; they came even as the fishes come, in
- shoals; and the monastery added building to building,
- and yet others to these, and so spread wide its arms
- and took them in. And nuns came, also; and more
- again, and yet more; and built over against the mon-
- astery on the yon side of the vale, and added building
- to building, until mighty was that nunnery. And
- these were friendly unto those, and they joined their
- loving labors together, and together they built a fair
- great foundling asylum midway of the valley between."
-
- "You spoke of some hermits, Sandy."
-
- "These have gathered there from the ends of the
- earth. A hermit thriveth best where there be multi-
- tudes of pilgrims. Ye shall not find no hermit of no
- sort wanting. If any shall mention a hermit of a kind
- he thinketh new and not to be found but in some far
- strange land, let him but scratch among the holes and
- caves and swamps that line that Valley of Holiness,
- and whatsoever be his breed, it skills not, he shall find
- a sample of it there."
-
- I closed up alongside of a burly fellow with a fat
- good-humored face, purposing to make myself agree-
- able and pick up some further crumbs of fact; but I
- had hardly more than scraped acquaintance with him
- when he began eagerly and awkwardly to lead up, in
- the immemorial way, to that same old anecdote -- the
- one Sir Dinadan told me, what time I got into trouble
- with Sir Sagramor and was challenged of him on ac-
- count of it. I excused myself and dropped to the rear
- of the procession, sad at heart, willing to go hence
- from this troubled life, this vale of tears, this brief day
- of broken rest, of cloud and storm, of weary struggle
- and monotonous defeat; and yet shrinking from the
- change, as remembering how long eternity is, and how
- many have wended thither who know that anecdote.
-
- Early in the afternoon we overtook another proces-
- sion of pilgrims; but in this one was no merriment, no
- jokes, no laughter, no playful ways, nor any happy
- giddiness, whether of youth or age. Yet both were
- here, both age and youth; gray old men and women,
- strong men and women of middle age, young hus-
- bands, young wives, little boys and girls, and three
- babies at the breast. Even the children were smileless;
- there was not a face among all these half a hundred
- people but was cast down, and bore that set expression
- of hopelessness which is bred of long and hard trials
- and old acquaintance with despair. They were slaves.
- Chains led from their fettered feet and their manacled
- hands to a sole-leather belt about their waists; and all
- except the children were also linked together in a file
- six feet apart, by a single chain which led from collar
- to collar all down the line. They were on foot, and
- had tramped three hundred miles in eighteen days,
- upon the cheapest odds and ends of food, and stingy
- rations of that. They had slept in these chains every
- night, bundled together like swine. They had upon
- their bodies some poor rags, but they could not be
- said to be clothed. Their irons had chafed the skin
- from their ankles and made sores which were ulcerated
- and wormy. Their naked feet were torn, and none
- walked without a limp. Originally there had been a
- hundred of these unfortunates, but about half had been
- sold on the trip. The trader in charge of them rode
- a horse and carried a whip with a short handle and a
- long heavy lash divided into several knotted tails at the
- end. With this whip he cut the shoulders of any that
- tottered from weariness and pain, and straightened
- them up. He did not speak; the whip conveyed his
- desire without that. None of these poor creatures
- looked up as we rode along by; they showed no con-
- sciousness of our presence. And they made no sound
- but one; that was the dull and awful clank of their
- chains from end to end of the long file, as forty-three
- burdened feet rose and fell in unison. The file moved
- in a cloud of its own making.
-
- All these faces were gray with a coating of dust.
- One has seen the like of this coating upon furniture in
- unoccupied houses, and has written his idle thought in
- it with his finger. I was reminded of this when I
- noticed the faces of some of those women, young
- mothers carrying babes that were near to death and
- freedom, how a something in their hearts was written
- in the dust upon their faces, plain to see, and lord, how
- plain to read! for it was the track of tears. One of
- these young mothers was but a girl, and it hurt me to
- the heart to read that writing, and reflect that it was
- come up out of the breast of such a child, a breast
- that ought not to know trouble yet, but only the glad-
- ness of the morning of life; and no doubt --
-
- She reeled just then, giddy with fatigue, and down
- came the lash and flicked a flake of skin from her
- naked shoulder. It stung me as if I had been hit in-
- stead. The master halted the file and jumped from his
- horse. He stormed and swore at this girl, and said
- she had made annoyance enough with her laziness, and
- as this was the last chance he should have, he would
- settle the account now. She dropped on her knees
- and put up her hands and began to beg, and cry, and
- implore, in a passion of terror, but the master gave no
- attention. He snatched the child from her, and then
- made the men-slaves who were chained before and
- behind her throw her on the ground and hold her there
- and expose her body; and then he laid on with his
- lash like a madman till her back was flayed, she shriek-
- ing and struggling the while piteously. One of the
- men who was holding her turned away his face, and
- for this humanity he was reviled and flogged.
-
- All our pilgrims looked on and commented -- on the
- expert way in which the whip was handled. They
- were too much hardened by lifelong everyday familiar-
- ity with slavery to notice that there was anything else
- in the exhibition that invited comment. This was what
- slavery could do, in the way of ossifying what one may
- call the superior lobe of human feeling; for these pil-
- grims were kind-hearted people, and they would not
- have allowed that man to treat a horse like that.
-
- I wanted to stop the whole thing and set the slaves
- free, but that would not do. I must not interfere too
- much and get myself a name for riding over the
- country's laws and the citizen's rights roughshod. If
- I lived and prospered I would be the death of slavery,
- that I was resolved upon; but I would try to fix it so
- that when I became its executioner it should be by
- command of the nation.
-
- Just here was the wayside shop of a smith; and now
- arrived a landed proprietor who had bought this girl a
- few miles back, deliverable here where her irons could
- be taken off. They were removed; then there was a
- squabble between the gentleman and the dealer as to
- which should pay the blacksmith. The moment the
- girl was delivered from her irons, she flung herself, all
- tears and frantic sobbings, into the arms of the slave
- who had turned away his face when she was whipped.
- He strained her to his breast, and smothered her
- face and the child's with kisses, and washed them
- with the rain of his tears. I suspected. I inquired.
- Yes, I was right; it was husband and wife. They had
- to be torn apart by force; the girl had to be dragged
- away, and she struggled and fought and shrieked like
- one gone mad till a turn of the road hid her from
- sight; and even after that, we could still make out the
- fading plaint of those receding shrieks. And the hus-
- band and father, with his wife and child gone, never to
- be seen by him again in life? -- well, the look of him
- one might not bear at all, and so I turned away; but I
- knew I should never get his picture out of my mind
- again, and there it is to this day, to wring my heart-
- strings whenever I think of it.
-
- We put up at the inn in a village just at nightfall,
- and when I rose next morning and looked abroad, I
- was ware where a knight came riding in the golden
- glory of the new day, and recognized him for knight
- of mine -- Sir Ozana le Cure Hardy. He was in the
- gentlemen's furnishing line, and his missionarying
- specialty was plug hats. He was clothed all in steel,
- in the beautifulest armor of the time -- up to where his
- helmet ought to have been; but he hadn't any helmet,
- he wore a shiny stove-pipe hat, and was ridiculous a
- spectacle as one might want to see. It was another of
- my surreptitious schemes for extinguishing knighthood
- by making it grotesque and absurd. Sir Ozana's sad-
- dle was hung about with leather hat boxes, and every
- time he overcame a wandering knight he swore him
- into my service and fitted him with a plug and made
- him wear it. I dressed and ran down to welcome Sir
- Ozana and get his news.
-
- "How is trade?" I asked.
-
- "Ye will note that I have but these four left; yet
- were they sixteen whenas I got me from Camelot."
-
- "Why, you have certainly done nobly, Sir Ozana.
- Where have you been foraging of late?"
-
- "I am but now come from the Valley of Holiness,
- please you sir."
-
- "I am pointed for that place myself. Is there
- anything stirring in the monkery, more than com-
- mon?"
-
- "By the mass ye may not question it!.... Give him
- good feed, boy, and stint it not, an thou valuest thy
- crown; so get ye lightly to the stable and do even as I
- bid...... Sir, it is parlous news I bring, and -- be
- these pilgrims? Then ye may not do better, good
- folk, than gather and hear the tale I have to tell, sith it
- concerneth you, forasmuch as ye go to find that ye
- will not find, and seek that ye will seek in vain, my life
- being hostage for my word, and my word and message
- being these, namely: That a hap has happened where-
- of the like has not been seen no more but once this
- two hundred years, which was the first and last time
- that that said misfortune strake the holy valley in that
- form by commandment of the Most High whereto by
- reasons just and causes thereunto contributing, wherein
- the matter --"
-
- "The miraculous fount hath ceased to flow!" This
- shout burst from twenty pilgrim mouths at once.
-
- "Ye say well, good people. I was verging to it,
- even when ye spake. "
-
- "Has somebody been washing again?"
-
- "Nay, it is suspected, but none believe it. It is
- thought to be some other sin, but none wit what."
-
- "How are they feeling about the calamity?"
-
- "None may describe it in words. The fount is
- these nine days dry. The prayers that did begin then,
- and the lamentations in sackcloth and ashes, and the
- holy processions, none of these have ceased nor night
- nor day; and so the monks and the nuns and the
- foundlings be all exhausted, and do hang up prayers
- writ upon parchment, sith that no strength is left in
- man to lift up voice. And at last they sent for thee,
- Sir Boss, to try magic and enchantment; and if you
- could not come, then was the messenger to fetch
- Merlin, and he is there these three days now, and
- saith he will fetch that water though he burst the globe
- and wreck its kingdoms to accomplish it; and right
- bravely doth he work his magic and call upon his
- hellions to hie them hither and help, but not a whiff
- of moisture hath he started yet, even so much as might
- qualify as mist upon a copper mirror an ye count not
- the barrel of sweat he sweateth betwixt sun and sun
- over the dire labors of his task; and if ye --"
-
- Breakfast was ready. As soon as it was over I
- showed to Sir Ozana these words which I had written
- on the inside of his hat: Chemical Department, Labor-
- atory extension, Section G. Pxxp. Send two of first
- size, two of No. 3, and six of No. 4, together with the
- proper complementary details -- and two of my trained
- assistants." And I said:
-
- "Now get you to Camelot as fast as you can fly,
- brave knight, and show the writing to Clarence, and
- tell him to have these required matters in the Valley of
- Holiness with all possible dispatch."
-
- "I will well, Sir Boss," and he was off.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
- THE HOLY FOUNTAIN
-
- THE pilgrims were human beings. Otherwise they
- would have acted differently. They had come a
- long and difficult journey, and now when the journey
- was nearly finished, and they learned that the main
- thing they had come for had ceased to exist, they
- didn't do as horses or cats or angle-worms would
- probably have done -- turn back and get at something
- profitable -- no, anxious as they had before been to
- see the miraculous fountain, they were as much as
- forty times as anxious now to see the place where it
- had used to be. There is no accounting for human
- beings.
-
- We made good time; and a couple of hours before
- sunset we stood upon the high confines of the Valley
- of Holiness, and our eyes swept it from end to end
- and noted its features. That is, its large features.
- These were the three masses of buildings. They were
- distant and isolated temporalities shrunken to toy con-
- structions in the lonely waste of what seemed a desert
- -- and was. Such a scene is always mournful, it is so
- impressively still, and looks so steeped in death. But
- there was a sound here which interrupted the stillness
- only to add to its mournfulness; this was the faint far
- sound of tolling bells which floated fitfully to us on the
- passing breeze, and so faintly, so softly, that we hardly
- knew whether we heard it with our ears or with our
- spirits.
-
- We reached the monastery before dark, and there
- the males were given lodging, but the women were sent
- over to the nunnery. The bells were close at hand
- now, and their solemn booming smote upon the ear
- like a message of doom. A superstitious despair pos-
- sessed the heart of every monk and published itself
- in his ghastly face. Everywhere, these black-robed,
- soft-sandaled, tallow-visaged specters appeared, flitted
- about and disappeared, noiseless as the creatures of a
- troubled dream, and as uncanny.
-
- The old abbot's joy to see me was pathetic. Even
- to tears; but he did the shedding himself. He said:
-
- "Delay not, son, but get to thy saving work. An
- we bring not the water back again, and soon, we are
- ruined, and the good work of two hundred years must
- end. And see thou do it with enchantments that be
- holy, for the Church will not endure that work in her
- cause be done by devil's magic."
-
- "When I work, Father, be sure there will be no
- devil's work connected with it. I shall use no arts
- that come of the devil, and no elements not created
- by the hand of God. But is Merlin working strictly
- on pious lines?"
-
- "Ah, he said he would, my son, he said he would,
- and took oath to make his promise good."
-
- "Well, in that case, let him proceed."
-
- "But surely you will not sit idle by, but help?"
-
- "It will not answer to mix methods, Father; neither
- would it be professional courtesy. Two of a trade
- must not underbid each other. We might as well cut
- rates and be done with it; it would arrive at that in
- the end. Merlin has the contract; no other magician
- can touch it till he throws it up."
-
- "But I will take it from him; it is a terrible emer-
- gency and the act is thereby justified. And if it were
- not so, who will give law to the Church? The Church
- giveth law to all; and what she wills to do, that she
- may do, hurt whom it may. I will take it from him;
- you shall begin upon the moment."
-
- "It may not be, Father. No doubt, as you say,
- where power is supreme, one can do as one likes and
- suffer no injury; but we poor magicians are not so
- situated. Merlin is a very good magician in a small
- way, and has quite a neat provincial reputation. He
- is struggling along, doing the best he can, and it would
- not be etiquette for me to take his job until he himself
- abandons it."
-
- The abbot's face lighted.
-
- "Ah, that is simple. There are ways to persuade
- him to abandon it."
-
- "No-no, Father, it skills not, as these people say.
- If he were persuaded against his will, he would load
- that well with a malicious enchantment which would
- balk me until I found out its secret. It might take a
- month. I could set up a little enchantment of mine
- which I call the telephone, and he could not find out
- its secret in a hundred years. Yes, you perceive, he
- might block me for a month. Would you like to risk a
- month in a dry time like this?"
-
- "A month! The mere thought of it maketh me to
- shudder. Have it thy way, my son. But my heart is
- heavy with this disappointment. Leave me, and let
- me wear my spirit with weariness and waiting, even as
- I have done these ten long days, counterfeiting thus
- the thing that is called rest, the prone body making
- outward sign of repose where inwardly is none."
-
- Of course, it would have been best, all round, for
- Merlin to waive etiquette and quit and call it half a
- day, since he would never be able to start that water,
- for he was a true magician of the time; which is to
- say, the big miracles, the ones that gave him his repu-
- tation, always had the luck to be performed when
- nobody but Merlin was present; he couldn't start this
- well with all this crowd around to see; a crowd was as
- bad for a magician's miracle in that day as it was for a
- spiritualist's miracle in mine; there was sure to be
- some skeptic on hand to turn up the gas at the crucial
- moment and spoil everything. But I did not want
- Merlin to retire from the job until I was ready to take
- hold of it effectively myself; and I could not do that
- until I got my things from Camelot, and that would
- take two or three days.
-
- My presence gave the monks hope, and cheered
- them up a good deal; insomuch that they ate a square
- meal that night for the first time in ten days. As
- soon as their stomachs had been properly reinforced
- with food, their spirits began to rise fast; when the
- mead began to go round they rose faster. By the
- time everybody was half-seas over, the holy com-
- munity was in good shape to make a night of it; so
- we stayed by the board and put it through on that
- line. Matters got to be very jolly. Good old ques-
- tionable stories were told that made the tears run down
- and cavernous mouths stand wide and the round bellies
- shake with laughter; and questionable songs were
- bellowed out in a mighty chorus that drowned the
- boom of the tolling bells.
-
- At last I ventured a story myself; and vast was the
- success of it. Not right off, of course, for the native
- of those islands does not, as a rule, dissolve upon the
- early applications of a humorous thing; but the fifth
- time I told it, they began to crack in places; the eight
- time I told it, they began to crumble; at the twelfth
- repetition they fell apart in chunks; and at the fifteenth
- they disintegrated, and I got a broom and swept them
- up. This language is figurative. Those islanders --
- well, they are slow pay at first, in the matter of return
- for your investment of effort, but in the end they make
- the pay of all other nations poor and small by contrast.
-
- I was at the well next day betimes. Merlin was
- there, enchanting away like a beaver, but not raising
- the moisture. He was not in a pleasant humor; and
- every time I hinted that perhaps this contract was a
- shade too hefty for a novice he unlimbered his tongue
- and cursed like a bishop -- French bishop of the
- Regency days, I mean.
-
- Matters were about as I expected to find them.
- The "fountain" was an ordinary well, it had been dug
- in the ordinary way, and stoned up in the ordinary
- way. There was no miracle about it. Even the lie
- that had created its reputation was not miraculous; I
- could have told it myself, with one hand tied behind
- me. The well was in a dark chamber which stood in
- the center of a cut-stone chapel, whose walls were
- hung with pious pictures of a workmanship that would
- have made a chromo feel good; pictures historically
- commemorative of curative miracles which had been
- achieved by the waters when nobody was looking.
- That is, nobody but angels; they are always on deck
- when there is a miracle to the fore -- so as to get put
- in the picture, perhaps. Angels are as fond of that as
- a fire company; look at the old masters.
-
- The well-chamber was dimly lighted by lamps; the
- water was drawn with a windlass and chain by monks,
- and poured into troughs which delivered it into stone
- reservoirs outside in the chapel -- when there was
- water to draw, I mean -- and none but monks could
- enter the well-chamber. I entered it, for I had tempo-
- rary authority to do so, by courtesy of my professional
- brother and subordinate. But he hadn't entered it
- himself. He did everything by incantations; he never
- worked his intellect. If he had stepped in there and
- used his eyes, instead of his disordered mind, he could
- have cured the well by natural means, and then turned
- it into a miracle in the customary way; but no, he was
- an old numskull, a magician who believed in his own
- magic; and no magician can thrive who is handicapped
- with a superstition like that.
-
- I had an idea that the well had sprung a leak; that
- some of the wall stones near the bottom had fallen and
- exposed fissures that allowed the water to escape. I
- measured the chain -- 98 feet. Then I called in
- couple of monks, locked the door, took a candle, and
- made them lower me in the bucket. When the chain
- was all paid out, the candle confirmed my suspicion;
- a considerable section of the wall was gone, exposing a
- good big fissure.
-
- I almost regretted that my theory about the well's
- trouble was correct, because I had another one that
- had a showy point or two about it for a miracle. I
- remembered that in America, many centuries later,
- when an oil well ceased to flow, they used to blast it
- out with a dynamite torpedo. If I should find this
- well dry and no explanation of it, I could astonish
- these people most nobly by having a person of no
- especial value drop a dynamite bomb into it. It was
- my idea to appoint Merlin. However, it was plain
- that there was no occasion for the bomb. One cannot
- have everything the way he would like it. A man has
- no business to be depressed by a disappointment, any-
- way; he ought to make up his mind to get even.
- That is what I did. I said to myself, I am in no
- hurry, I can wait; that bomb will come good yet.
- And it did, too.
-
- When I was above ground again, I turned out the
- monks, and let down a fish-line; the well was a hun-
- dred and fifty feet deep, and there was forty-one feet
- of water in it I I called in a monk and asked:
-
- A Yankee in King Arthur's Court 187
-
- "How deep is the well?"
-
- "That, sir, I wit not, having never been told."
-
- "How does the water usually stand in it?"
-
- "Near to the top, these two centuries, as the testi-
- mony goeth, brought down to us through our prede-
- cessors."
-
- It was true -- as to recent times at least -- for there
- was witness to it, and better witness than a monk;
- only about twenty or thirty feet of the chain showed
- wear and use, the rest of it was unworn and rusty.
- What had happened when the well gave out that other
- time? Without doubt some practical person had come
- along and mended the leak, and then had come up and
- told the abbot he had discovered by divination that if
- the sinful bath were destroyed the well would flow
- again. The leak had befallen again now, and these
- children would have prayed, and processioned, and
- tolled their bells for heavenly succor till they all dried
- up and blew away, and no innocent of them all would
- ever have thought to drop a fish-line into the well or
- go down in it and find out what was really the matter.
- Old habit of mind is one of the toughest things to
- get away from in the world. It transmits itself like
- physical form and feature; and for a man, in those
- days, to have had an idea that his ancestors hadn't
- had, would have brought him under suspicion of being
- illegitimate. I said to the monk:
-
- "It is a difficult miracle to restore water in a dry
- well, but we will try, if my brother Merlin fails.
- Brother Merlin is a very passable artist, but only in the
- parlor-magic line, and he may not succeed; in fact, is
- not likely to succeed. But that should be nothing to
- his discredit; the man that can do THIS kind of miracle
- knows enough to keep hotel."
-
- "Hotel? I mind not to have heard --"
-
- "Of hotel? It's what you call hostel. The man
- that can do this miracle can keep hostel. I can do this
- miracle; I shall do this miracle; yet I do not try to
- conceal from you that it is a miracle to tax the occult
- powers to the last strain."
-
- "None knoweth that truth better than the brother-
- hood, indeed; for it is of record that aforetime it was
- parlous difficult and took a year. Natheless, God send
- you good success, and to that end will we pray."
-
- As a matter of business it was a good idea to get the
- notion around that the thing was difficult. Many a
- small thing has been made large by the right kind of
- advertising. That monk was filled up with the diffi-
- culty of this enterprise; he would fill up the others.
- In two days the solicitude would be booming.
-
- On my way home at noon, I met Sandy. She had
- been sampling the hermits. I said:
-
- "I would like to do that myself. This is Wednes-
- day. Is there a matinee?"
-
- "A which, please you, sir?"
-
- "Matinee. Do they keep open afternoons?"
-
- "Who?"
-
- "The hermits, of course."
-
- "Keep open?"
-
- "Yes, keep open. Isn't that plain enough? Do
- they knock off at noon?"
-
- "Knock off?"
-
- "Knock off? -- yes, knock off. What is the matter
- with knock off? I never saw such a dunderhead;
- can't you understand anything at all? In plain terms,
- do they shut up shop, draw the game, bank the
- fires --"
-
- "Shut up shop, draw --"
-
- "There, never mind, let it go; you make me tired.
- You can't seem to understand the simplest thing."
-
- I would I might please thee, sir, and it is to me
- dole and sorrow that I fail, albeit sith I am but a
- simple damsel and taught of none, being from the
- cradle unbaptized in those deep waters of learning that
- do anoint with a sovereignty him that partaketh of that
- most noble sacrament, investing him with reverend
- state to the mental eye of the humble mortal who, by
- bar and lack of that great consecration seeth in his
- own unlearned estate but a symbol of that other sort
- of lack and loss which men do publish to the pitying
- eye with sackcloth trappings whereon the ashes of
- grief do lie bepowdered and bestrewn, and so, when
- such shall in the darkness of his mind encounter these
- golden phrases of high mystery, these shut-up-shops,
- and draw-the-game, and bank-the-fires, it is but by the
- grace of God that he burst not for envy of the mind
- that can beget, and tongue that can deliver so great
- and mellow-sounding miracles of speech, and if there
- do ensue confusion in that humbler mind, and failure
- to divine the meanings of these wonders, then if so be
- this miscomprehension is not vain but sooth and true,
- wit ye well it is the very substance of worshipful dear
- homage and may not lightly be misprized, nor had
- been, an ye had noted this complexion of mood
- and mind and understood that that I would I could
- not, and that I could not I might not, nor yet nor
- might NOR could, nor might-not nor could-not, might
- be by advantage turned to the desired WOULD, and so I
- pray you mercy of my fault, and that ye will of your
- kindness and your charity forgive it, good my master
- and most dear lord."
-
- I couldn't make it all out -- that is, the details -- but
- I got the general idea; and enough of it, too, to be
- ashamed. It was not fair to spring those nineteenth
- century technicalities upon the untutored infant of the
- sixth and then rail at her because she couldn't get
- their drift; and when she was making the honest best
- drive at it she could, too, and no fault of hers that she
- couldn't fetch the home plate; and so I apologized.
- Then we meandered pleasantly away toward the hermit
- holes in sociable converse together, and better friends
- than ever.
-
- I was gradually coming to have a mysterious and
- shuddery reverence for this girl; nowadays whenever
- she pulled out from the station and got her train fairly
- started on one of those horizonless transcontinental
- sentences of hers, it was borne in upon me that I was
- standing in the awful presence of the Mother of the
- German Language. I was so impressed with this, that
- sometimes when she began to empty one of these sen-
- tences on me I unconsciously took the very attitude of
- reverence, and stood uncovered; and if words had
- been water, I had been drowned, sure. She had ex-
- actly the German way; whatever was in her mind to
- be delivered, whether a mere remark, or a sermon, or
- a cyclopedia, or the history of a war, she would get it
- into a single sentence or die. Whenever the literary
- German dives into a sentence, that is the last you are
- going to see of him till he emerges on the other side of
- his Atlantic with his verb in his mouth.
-
- We drifted from hermit to hermit all the afternoon.
- It was a most strange menagerie. The chief emulation
- among them seemed to be, to see which could manage
- to be the uncleanest and most prosperous with vermin.
- Their manner and attitudes were the last expression of
- complacent self-righteousness. It was one anchorite's
- pride to lie naked in the mud and let the insects bite
- him and blister him unmolested; it was another's to
- lean against a rock, all day long, conspicuous to the
- admiration of the throng of pilgrims and pray; it was
- another's to go naked and crawl around on all fours;
- it was another's to drag about with him, year in and
- year out, eighty pounds of iron; it was another's to
- never lie down when he slept, but to stand among the
- thorn-bushes and snore when there were pilgrims
- around to look; a woman, who had the white hair of
- age, and no other apparel, was black from crown to
- heel with forty-seven years of holy abstinence from
- water. Groups of gazing pilgrims stood around all
- and every of these strange objects, lost in reverent
- wonder, and envious of the fleckless sanctity which
- these pious austerities had won for them from an
- exacting heaven.
-
- By and by we went to see one of the supremely
- great ones. He was a mighty celebrity; his fame had
- penetrated all Christendom; the noble and the re-
- nowned journeyed from the remotest lands on the
- globe to pay him reverence. His stand was in the
- center of the widest part of the valley; and it took all
- that space to hold his crowds.
-
- His stand was a pillar sixty feet high, with a broad
- platform on the top of it. He was now doing what he
- had been doing every day for twenty years up there --
- bowing his body ceaselessly and rapidly almost to his
- feet. It was his way of praying. I timed him with a
- stop watch, and he made 1,244 revolutions in 24 min-
- utes and 46 seconds. It seemed a pity to have all this
- power going to waste. It was one of the most useful
- motions in mechanics, the pedal movement; so I made
- a note in my memorandum book, purposing some day
- to apply a system of elastic cords to him and run a
- sewing machine with it. I afterward carried out that
- scheme, and got five years' good service out of him;
- in which time he turned out upward of eighteen thou-
- sand first-rate tow-linen shirts, which was ten a day. I
- worked him Sundays and all; he was going, Sundays,
- the same as week days, and it was no use to waste the
- power. These shirts cost me nothing but just the mere
- trifle for the materials -- I furnished those myself, it
- would not have been right to make him do that -- and
- they sold like smoke to pilgrims at a dollar and a half
- apiece, which was the price of fifty cows or a blooded
- race horse in Arthurdom. They were regarded as a
- perfect protection against sin, and advertised as such
- by my knights everywhere, with the paint-pot and
- stencil-plate; insomuch that there was not a cliff or a
- bowlder or a dead wall in England but you could read
- on it at a mile distance:
-
- "Buy the only genuine St. Stylite; patronized by the
- Nobility. Patent applied for."
-
- There was more money in the business than one
- knew what to do with. As it extended, I brought out
- a line of goods suitable for kings, and a nobby thing
- for duchesses and that sort, with ruffles down the fore-
- hatch and the running-gear clewed up with a feather-
- stitch to leeward and then hauled aft with a back-stay
- and triced up with a half-turn in the standing rigging
- forward of the weather-gaskets. Yes, it was a daisy.
-
- But about that time I noticed that the motive power
- had taken to standing on one leg, and I found that
- there was something the matter with the other one; so
- I stocked the business and unloaded, taking Sir Bors
- de Ganis into camp financially along with certain of his
- friends; for the works stopped within a year, and the
- good saint got him to his rest. But he had earned it.
- I can say that for him.
-
- When I saw him that first time -- however, his per-
- sonal condition will not quite bear description here.
- You can read it in the Lives of the Saints. *
-
- [* All the details concerning the hermits, in this
- chapter, are from Lecky -- but greatly modified. This
- book not being a history but only a tale, the majority
- of the historian's frank details were too strong for
- reproduction in it. - EDITOR]
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
- RESTORATION OF THE FOUNTAIN
-
- SATURDAY noon I went to the well and looked on
- a while. Merlin was still burning smoke-powders,
- and pawing the air, and muttering gibberish as hard as
- ever, but looking pretty down-hearted, for of course
- he had not started even a perspiration in that well yet.
- Finally I said:
-
- "How does the thing promise by this time, partner?"
-
- "Behold, I am even now busied with trial of the
- powerfulest enchantment known to the princes of the oc-
- cult arts in the lands of the East; an it fail me, naught
- can avail. Peace, until I finish."
-
- He raised a smoke this time that darkened all the
- region, and must have made matters uncomfortable for
- the hermits, for the wind was their way, and it rolled
- down over their dens in a dense and billowy fog. He
- poured out volumes of speech to match, and contorted
- his body and sawed the air with his hands in a most
- extraordinary way. At the end of twenty minutes he
- dropped down panting, and about exhausted. Now
- arrived the abbot and several hundred monks and nuns,
- and behind them a multitude of pilgrims and a couple
- of acres of foundlings, all drawn by the prodigious smoke,
- and all in a grand state of excitement. The abbot
- inquired anxiously for results. Merlin said:
-
- "If any labor of mortal might break the spell that
- binds these waters, this which I have but just essayed
- had done it. It has failed; whereby I do now know
- that that which I had feared is a truth established; the
- sign of this failure is, that the most potent spirit known
- to the magicians of the East, and whose name none
- may utter and live, has laid his spell upon this well.
- The mortal does not breathe, nor ever will, who can
- penetrate the secret of that spell, and without that
- secret none can break it. The water will flow no more
- forever, good Father. I have done what man could.
- Suffer me to go."
-
- Of course this threw the abbot into a good deal of a
- consternation. He turned to me with the signs of it in
- his face, and said:
-
- "Ye have heard him. Is it true?"
-
- "Part of it is."
-
- "Not all, then, not all! What part is true?"
-
- "That that spirit with the Russian name has put his
- spell upon the well."
-
- "God's wownds, then are we ruined!"
-
- "Possibly."
-
- "But not certainly? Ye mean, not certainly?"
-
- "That is it."
-
- "Wherefore, ye also mean that when he saith none
- can break the spell --"
-
- "Yes, when he says that, he says what isn't neces-
- sarily true. There are conditions under which an effort
- to break it may have some chance -- that is, some
- small, some trifling chance -- of success."
-
- "The conditions --"
-
- "Oh, they are nothing difficult. Only these: I
- want the well and the surroundings for the space of
- half a mile, entirely to myself from sunset to-day until
- I remove the ban -- and nobody allowed to cross the
- ground but by my authority."
-
- "Are these all?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "And you have no fear to try?"
-
- "Oh, none. One may fail, of course; and one
- may also succeed. One can try, and I am ready to
- chance it. I have my conditions?"
-
- "These and all others ye may name. I will issue
- commandment to that effect."
-
- "Wait," said Merlin, with an evil smile. "Ye
- wit that he that would break this spell must know that
- spirit's name?"
-
- "Yes, I know his name."
-
- "And wit you also that to know it skills not of
- itself, but ye must likewise pronounce it? Ha-ha!
- Knew ye that?"
-
- "Yes, I knew that, too."
-
- "You had that knowledge! Art a fool? Are ye
- minded to utter that name and die?"
-
- "Utter it? Why certainly. I would utter it if it
- was Welsh."
-
- "Ye are even a dead man, then; and I go to
- tell Arthur."
-
- "That's all right. Take your gripsack and get
- along. The thing for YOU to do is to go home and
- work the weather, John W. Merlin."
-
- It was a home shot, and it made him wince; for he
- was the worst weather-failure in the kingdom. When-
- ever he ordered up the danger-signals along the coast
- there was a week's dead calm, sure, and every time he
- prophesied fair weather it rained brickbats. But I kept
- him in the weather bureau right along, to undermine
- his reputation. However, that shot raised his bile, and
- instead of starting home to report my death, he said
- he would remain and enjoy it.
-
- My two experts arrived in the evening, and pretty
- well fagged, for they had traveled double tides. They
- had pack-mules along, and had brought everything I
- needed -- tools, pump, lead pipe, Greek fire, sheaves
- of big rockets, roman candles, colored fire sprays,
- electric apparatus, and a lot of sundries -- everything
- necessary for the stateliest kind of a miracle. They
- got their supper and a nap, and about midnight we
- sallied out through a solitude so wholly vacant and
- complete that it quite overpassed the required condi-
- tions. We took possession of the well and its sur-
- roundings. My boys were experts in all sorts of
- things, from the stoning up of a well to the construct-
- ing of a mathematical instrument. An hour before
- sunrise we had that leak mended in ship-shape fashion,
- and the water began to rise. Then we stowed our fire-
- works in the chapel, locked up the place, and went
- home to bed.
-
- Before the noon mass was over, we were at the well
- again; for there was a deal to do yet, and I was deter-
- mined to spring the miracle before midnight, for busi-
- ness reasons: for whereas a miracle worked for the
- Church on a week-day is worth a good deal, it is worth
- six times as much if you get it in on a Sunday. In
- nine hours the water had risen to its customary level --
- that is to say, it was within twenty-three feet of the
- top. We put in a little iron pump, one of the first
- turned out by my works near the capital; we bored
- into a stone reservoir which stood against the outer
- wall of the well-chamber and inserted a section of lead
- pipe that was long enough to reach to the door of the
- chapel and project beyond the threshold, where the
- gushing water would be visible to the two hundred and
- fifty acres of people I was intending should be present
- on the flat plain in front of this little holy hillock at
- the proper time.
-
- We knocked the head out of an empty hogshead and
- hoisted this hogshead to the flat roof of the chapel,
- where we clamped it down fast, poured in gunpowder
- till it lay loosely an inch deep on the bottom, then we
- stood up rockets in the hogshead as thick as they
- could loosely stand, all the different breeds of rockets
- there are; and they made a portly and imposing sheaf,
- I can tell you. We grounded the wire of a pocket
- electrical battery in that powder, we placed a whole
- magazine of Greek fire on each corner of the roof --
- blue on one corner, green on another, red on another,
- and purple on the last -- and grounded a wire in each.
-
- About two hundred yards off, in the flat, we built a
- pen of scantlings, about four feet high, and laid planks
- on it, and so made a platform. We covered it with
- swell tapestries borrowed for the occasion, and topped
- it off with the abbot's own throne. When you are
- going to do a miracle for an ignorant race, you want
- to get in every detail that will count; you want to
- make all the properties impressive to the public eye;
- you want to make matters comfortable for your head
- guest; then you can turn yourself loose and play your
- effects for all they are worth. I know the value of
- these things, for I know human nature. You can't
- throw too much style into a miracle. It costs trouble,
- and work, and sometimes money; but it pays in the
- end. Well, we brought the wires to the ground at the
- chapel, and then brought them under the ground to
- the platform, and hid the batteries there. We put a
- rope fence a hundred feet square around the platform
- to keep off the common multitude, and that finished
- the work. My idea was, doors open at 10:30, per-
- formance to begin at 11:25 sharp. I wished I could
- charge admission, but of course that wouldn't answer.
- I instructed my boys to be in the chapel as early as
- 10, before anybody was around, and be ready to man
- the pumps at the proper time, and make the fur fly.
- Then we went home to supper.
-
- The news of the disaster to the well had traveled far
- by this time; and now for two or three days a steady
- avalanche of people had been pouring into the valley.
- The lower end of the valley was become one huge
- camp; we should have a good house, no question
- about that. Criers went the rounds early in the eve-
- ning and announced the coming attempt, which put
- every pulse up to fever heat. They gave notice that
- the abbot and his official suite would move in state and
- occupy the platform at 10:30, up to which time all the
- region which was under my ban must be clear; the
- bells would then cease from tolling, and this sign
- should be permission to the multitudes to close in and
- take their places.
-
- I was at the platform and all ready to do the honors
- when the abbot's solemn procession hove in sight --
- which it did not do till it was nearly to the rope fence,
- because it was a starless black night and no torches
- permitted. With it came Merlin, and took a front seat
- on the platform; he was as good as his word for once.
- One could not see the multitudes banked together be-
- yond the ban, but they were there, just the same.
- The moment the bells stopped, those banked masses
- broke and poured over the line like a vast black wave,
- and for as much as a half hour it continued to flow,
- and then it solidified itself, and you could have walked
- upon a pavement of human heads to -- well, miles.
-
- We had a solemn stage-wait, now, for about twenty
- minutes -- a thing I had counted on for effect; it is
- always good to let your audience have a chance to
- work up its expectancy. At length, out of the silence
- a noble Latin chant -- men's voices -- broke and
- swelled up and rolled away into the night, a majestic
- tide of melody. I had put that up, too, and it was one
- of the best effects I ever invented. When it was finished
- I stood up on the platform and extended my hands
- abroad, for two minutes, with my face uplifted -- that
- always produces a dead hush -- and then slowly pro-
- nounced this ghastly word with a kind of awfulness which
- caused hundreds to tremble, and many women to faint:
-
- "Constantinopolitanischerdudelsackspfeifen-
- machersgesellschafft!"
-
- Just as I was moaning out the closing hunks of that
- word, I touched off one of my electric connections
- and all that murky world of people stood revealed in a
- hideous blue glare! It was immense -- that effect!
- Lots of people shrieked, women curled up and quit in
- every direction, foundlings collapsed by platoons. The
- abbot and the monks crossed themselves nimbly and
- their lips fluttered with agitated prayers. Merlin held
- his grip, but he was astonished clear down to his
- corns; he had never seen anything to begin with that,
- before. Now was the time to pile in the effects. I
- lifted my hands and groaned out this word -- as it were
- in agony:
-
- "Nihilistendynamittheaterkaestchensspreng-
- ungsattentaetsversuchungen!"
-
- -- and turned on the red fire! You should have heard
- that Atlantic of people moan and howl when that
- crimson hell joined the blue! After sixty seconds I
- shouted:
-
- "Transvaaltruppentropentransporttrampelthier-
- treibertrauungsthraenentragoedie!"
-
- -- and lit up the green fire! After waiting only forty
- seconds this time, I spread my arms abroad and
- thundered out the devastating syllables of this word of
- words:
-
- "Mekkamuselmannenmassenmenchenmoerdermohrenmutter-
- marmormonumentenmacher!"
-
- -- and whirled on the purple glare! There they were,
- all going at once, red, blue, green, purple! -- four
- furious volcanoes pouring vast clouds of radiant smoke
- aloft, and spreading a blinding rainbowed noonday to
- the furthest confines of that valley. In the distance
- one could see that fellow on the pillar standing rigid
- against the background of sky, his seesaw stopped for
- the first time in twenty years. I knew the boys were
- at the pump now and ready. So I said to the abbot:
-
- "The time is come, Father. I am about to pro-
- nounce the dread name and command the spell to dis-
- solve. You want to brace up, and take hold of some-
- thing." Then I shouted to the people: "Behold, in
- another minute the spell will be broken, or no mortal
- can break it. If it break, all will know it, for you will
- see the sacred water gush from the chapel door!"
-
- I stood a few moments, to let the hearers have a
- chance to spread my announcement to those who
- couldn't hear, and so convey it to the furthest ranks,
- then I made a grand exhibition of extra posturing and
- gesturing, and shouted:
-
- "Lo, I command the fell spirit that possesses the
- holy fountain to now disgorge into the skies all the
- infernal fires that still remain in him, and straightway
- dissolve his spell and flee hence to the pit, there to lie
- bound a thousand years. By his own dread name I
- command it -- BGWJJILLIGKKK!"
-
- Then I touched off the hogshead of rockets, and a
- vast fountain of dazzling lances of fire vomited itself
- toward the zenith with a hissing rush, and burst in
- mid-sky into a storm of flashing jewels! One mighty
- groan of terror started up from the massed people --
- then suddenly broke into a wild hosannah of joy -- for
- there, fair and plain in the uncanny glare, they saw
- the freed water leaping forth! The old abbot could not
- speak a word, for tears and the chokings in his throat;
- without utterance of any sort, he folded me in his arms
- and mashed me. It was more eloquent than speech.
- And harder to get over, too, in a country where there
- were really no doctors that were worth a damaged
- nickel.
-
- You should have seen those acres of people throw
- themselves down in that water and kiss it; kiss it, and
- pet it, and fondle it, and talk to it as if it were alive,
- and welcome it back with the dear names they gave
- their darlings, just as if it had been a friend who was
- long gone away and lost, and was come home again.
- Yes, it was pretty to see, and made me think more of
- them than I had done before.
-
- I sent Merlin home on a shutter. He had caved in
- and gone down like a landslide when I pronounced that
- fearful name, and had never come to since. He never
- had heard that name before, -- neither had I -- but to
- him it was the right one. Any jumble would have
- been the right one. He admitted, afterward, that
- that spirit's own mother could not have pronounced
- that name better than I did. He never could under-
- stand how I survived it, and I didn't tell him. It is
- only young magicians that give away a secret like that.
- Merlin spent three months working enchantments to
- try to find out the deep trick of how to pronounce that
- name and outlive it. But he didn't arrive.
-
- When I started to the chapel, the populace un-
- covered and fell back reverently to make a wide way
- for me, as if I had been some kind of a superior being
- -- and I was. I was aware of that. I took along a
- night shift of monks, and taught them the mystery of
- the pump, and set them to work, for it was plain that
- a good part of the people out there were going to sit
- up with the water all night, consequently it was but
- right that they should have all they wanted of it. To
- those monks that pump was a good deal of a miracle
- itself, and they were full of wonder over it; and of
- admiration, too, of the exceeding effectiveness of its
- performance.
-
- It was a great night, an immense night. There was
- reputation in it. I could hardly get to sleep for glory-
- ing over it.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV.
- A RIVAL MAGICIAN
-
- MY influence in the Valley of Holiness was some-
- thing prodigious now. It seemed worth while
- to try to turn it to some valuable account. The
- thought came to me the next morning, and was sug-
- gested by my seeing one of my knights who was in
- the soap line come riding in. According to history,
- the monks of this place two centuries before had been
- worldly minded enough to want to wash. It might be
- that there was a leaven of this unrighteousness still re-
- maining. So I sounded a Brother:
-
- "Wouldn't you like a bath?"
-
- He shuddered at the thought -- the thought of the
- peril of it to the well -- but he said with feeling:
-
- "One needs not to ask that of a poor body who has
- not known that blessed refreshment sith that he was a
- boy. Would God I might wash me! but it may not
- be, fair sir, tempt me not; it is forbidden."
-
- And then he sighed in such a sorrowful way that I
- was resolved he should have at least one layer of his
- real estate removed, if it sized up my whole influence
- and bankrupted the pile. So I went to the abbot and
- asked for a permit for this Brother. He blenched at
- the idea -- I don't mean that you could see him blench,
- for of course you couldn't see it without you scraped
- him, and I didn't care enough about it to scrape him,
- but I knew the blench was there, just the same, and
- within a book-cover's thickness of the surface, too --
- blenched, and trembled. He said:
-
- "Ah, son, ask aught else thou wilt, and it is thine,
- and freely granted out of a grateful heart -- but this,
- oh, this! Would you drive away the blessed water
- again?"
-
- "No, Father, I will not drive it away. I have
- mysterious knowledge which teaches me that there
- was an error that other time when it was thought the
- institution of the bath banished the fountain." A
- large interest began to show up in the old man's face.
- "My knowledge informs me that the bath was inno-
- cent of that misfortune, which was caused by quite
- another sort of sin."
-
- "These are brave words -- but -- but right welcome,
- if they be true."
-
- "They are true, indeed. Let me build the bath
- again, Father. Let me build it again, and the fountain
- shall flow forever."
-
- "You promise this? -- you promise it? Say the
- word -- say you promise it!"
-
- "I do promise it."
-
- "Then will I have the first bath myself! Go --
- get ye to your work. Tarry not, tarry not, but go."
-
- I and my boys were at work, straight off. The
- ruins of the old bath were there yet in the basement of
- the monastery, not a stone missing. They had been
- left just so, all these lifetimes, and avoided with a
- pious fear, as things accursed. In two days we had it
- all done and the water in -- a spacious pool of clear
- pure water that a body could swim in. It was running
- water, too. It came in, and went out, through the
- ancient pipes. The old abbot kept his word, and was
- the first to try it. He went down black and shaky,
- leaving the whole black community above troubled and
- worried and full of bodings; but he came back white
- and joyful, and the game was made! another triumph
- scored.
-
- It was a good campaign that we made in that Valley
- of Holiness, and I was very well satisfied, and ready to
- move on now, but I struck a disappointment. I caught
- a heavy cold, and it started up an old lurking rheuma-
- tism of mine. Of course the rheumatism hunted up
- my weakest place and located itself there. This was
- the place where the abbot put his arms about me and
- mashed me, what time he was moved to testify his
- gratitude to me with an embrace.
-
- When at last I got out, I was a shadow. But every-
- body was full of attentions and kindnesses, and these
- brought cheer back into my life, and were the right
- medicine to help a convalescent swiftly up toward
- health and strength again; so I gained fast.
-
- Sandy was worn out with nursing; so I made up my
- mind to turn out and go a cruise alone, leaving her at
- the nunnery to rest up. My idea was to disguise myself
- as a freeman of peasant degree and wander through
- the country a week or two on foot. This would give
- me a chance to eat and lodge with the lowliest and
- poorest class of free citizens on equal terms. There
- was no other way to inform myself perfectly of their
- everyday life and the operation of the laws upon it. If
- I went among them as a gentleman, there would be
- restraints and conventionalities which would shut me
- out from their private joys and troubles, and I should
- get no further than the outside shell.
-
- One morning I was out on a long walk to get up
- muscle for my trip, and had climbed the ridge which
- bordered the northern extremity of the valley, when I
- came upon an artificial opening in the face of a low
- precipice, and recognized it by its location as a hermit-
- age which had often been pointed out to me from a
- distance as the den of a hermit of high renown for dirt
- and austerity. I knew he had lately been offered a
- situation in the Great Sahara, where lions and sandflies
- made the hermit-life peculiarly attractive and difficult,
- and had gone to Africa to take possession, so I thought
- I would look in and see how the atmosphere of this
- den agreed with its reputation.
-
- My surprise was great: the place was newly swept
- and scoured. Then there was another surprise. Back
- in the gloom of the cavern I heard the clink of a little
- bell, and then this exclamation:
-
- "Hello Central! Is this you, Camelot? -- Be-
- hold, thou mayst glad thy heart an thou hast faith to
- believe the wonderful when that it cometh in unex-
- pected guise and maketh itself manifest in impossible
- places -- here standeth in the flesh his mightiness The
- Boss, and with thine own ears shall ye hear him
- speak!"
-
- Now what a radical reversal of things this was; what
- a jumbling together of extravagant incongruities; what
- a fantastic conjunction of opposites and irreconcilables
- -- the home of the bogus miracle become the home of
- a real one, the den of a mediaeval hermit turned into a
- telephone office!
-
- The telephone clerk stepped into the light, and I
- recognized one of my young fellows. I said:
-
- "How long has this office been established here,
- Ulfius?"
-
- "But since midnight, fair Sir Boss, an it please you.
- We saw many lights in the valley, and so judged it
- well to make a station, for that where so many lights
- be needs must they indicate a town of goodly size."
-
- "Quite right. It isn't a town in the customary
- sense, but it's a good stand, anyway. Do you know
- where you are?"
-
- "Of that I have had no time to make inquiry; for
- whenas my comradeship moved hence upon their
- labors, leaving me in charge, I got me to needed rest,
- purposing to inquire when I waked, and report the
- place's name to Camelot for record."
-
- "Well, this is the Valley of Holiness."
-
- It didn't take; I mean, he didn't start at the name,
- as I had supposed he would. He merely said:
-
- "I will so report it."
-
- "Why, the surrounding regions are filled with the
- noise of late wonders that have happened here! You
- didn't hear of them?"
-
- "Ah, ye will remember we move by night, and
- avoid speech with all. We learn naught but that we
- get by the telephone from Camelot."
-
- "Why THEY know all about this thing. Haven't
- they told you anything about the great miracle of the
- restoration of a holy fountain?"
-
- "Oh, THAT? Indeed yes. But the name of THIS
- valley doth woundily differ from the name of THAT one;
- indeed to differ wider were not pos --"
-
- "What was that name, then?"
-
- "The Valley of Hellishness."
-
- "THAT explains it. Confound a telephone, anyway.
- It is the very demon for conveying similarities of sound
- that are miracles of divergence from similarity of sense.
- But no matter, you know the name of the place now.
- Call up Camelot."
-
- He did it, and had Clarence sent for. It was good
- to hear my boy's voice again. It was like being home.
- After some affectionate interchanges, and some account
- of my late illness, I said:
-
- "What is new?"
-
- "The king and queen and many of the court do
- start even in this hour, to go to your valley to pay
- pious homage to the waters ye have restored, and
- cleanse themselves of sin, and see the place where the
- infernal spirit spouted true hell-flames to the clouds --
- an ye listen sharply ye may hear me wink and hear me
- likewise smile a smile, sith 'twas I that made selection
- of those flames from out our stock and sent them by
- your order."
-
- "Does the king know the way to this place?"
-
- "The king? -- no, nor to any other in his realms,
- mayhap; but the lads that holp you with your miracle
- will be his guide and lead the way, and appoint the
- places for rests at noons and sleeps at night."
-
- "This will bring them here -- when?"
-
- "Mid-afternoon, or later, the third day."
-
- "Anything else in the way of news?"
-
- "The king hath begun the raising of the standing
- army ye suggested to him; one regiment is complete
- and officered."
-
- "The mischief! I wanted a main hand in that my-
- self. There is only one body of men in the kingdom
- that are fitted to officer a regular army."
-
- "Yes -- and now ye will marvel to know there's not
- so much as one West Pointer in that regiment."
-
- "What are you talking about? Are you in earnest?"
-
- "It is truly as I have said."
-
- "Why, this makes me uneasy. Who were chosen,
- and what was the method? Competitive examination?"
-
- "Indeed, I know naught of the method. I but
- know this -- these officers be all of noble family, and
- are born -- what is it you call it? -- chuckleheads."
-
- "There's something wrong, Clarence. "
-
- "Comfort yourself, then; for two candidates for a
- lieutenancy do travel hence with the king -- young
- nobles both -- and if you but wait where you are you
- will hear them questioned."
-
- "That is news to the purpose. I will get one West
- Pointer in, anyway. Mount a man and send him to
- that school with a message; let him kill horses, if
- necessary, but he must be there before sunset to-night
- and say -- "
-
- "There is no need. I have laid a ground wire to
- the school. Prithee let me connect you with it."
-
- It sounded good! In this atmosphere of telephones
- and lightning communication with distant regions, I
- was breathing the breath of life again after long suffo-
- cation. I realized, then, what a creepy, dull, inanimate
- horror this land had been to me all these years, and
- how I had been in such a stifled condition of mind as
- to have grown used to it almost beyond the power to
- notice it.
-
- I gave my order to the superintendent of the Acad-
- emy personally. I also asked him to bring me some
- paper and a fountain pen and a box or so of safety
- matches. I was getting tired of doing without these
- conveniences. I could have them now, as I wasn't
- going to wear armor any more at present, and there-
- fore could get at my pockets.
-
- When I got back to the monastery, I found a thing
- of interest going on. The abbot and his monks were
- assembled in the great hall, observing with childish
- wonder and faith the performances of a new magician,
- a fresh arrival. His dress was the extreme of the
- fantastic; as showy and foolish as the sort of thing an
- Indian medicine-man wears. He was mowing, and
- mumbling, and gesticulating, and drawing mystical
- figures in the air and on the floor, -- the regular thing,
- you know. He was a celebrity from Asia -- so he
- said, and that was enough. That sort of evidence was
- as good as gold, and passed current everywhere.
-
- How easy and cheap it was to be a great magician
- on this fellow's terms. His specialty was to tell you
- what any individual on the face of the globe was doing
- at the moment; and what he had done at any time in
- the past, and what he would do at any time in the
- future. He asked if any would like to know what the
- Emperor of the East was doing now? The sparkling
- eyes and the delighted rubbing of hands made eloquent
- answer -- this reverend crowd WOULD like to know what
- that monarch was at, just as this moment. The fraud
- went through some more mummery, and then made
- grave announcement:
-
- "The high and mighty Emperor of the East doth at
- this moment put money in the palm of a holy begging
- friar -- one, two, three pieces, and they be all of
- silver."
-
- A buzz of admiring exclamations broke out, all
- around:
-
- "It is marvelous!" "Wonderful!" "What study,
- what labor, to have acquired a so amazing power as this!"
-
- Would they like to know what the Supreme Lord of
- Inde was doing? Yes. He told them what the
- Supreme Lord of Inde was doing. Then he told
- them what the Sultan of Egypt was at; also what the
- King of the Remote Seas was about. And so on and
- so on; and with each new marvel the astonishment at
- his accuracy rose higher and higher. They thought
- he must surely strike an uncertain place some time;
- but no, he never had to hesitate, he always knew, and
- always with unerring precision. I saw that if this thing
- went on I should lose my supremacy, this fellow would
- capture my following, I should be left out in the cold.
- I must put a cog in his wheel, and do it right away,
- too. I said:
-
- "If I might ask, I should very greatly like to know
- what a certain person is doing."
-
- "Speak, and freely. I will tell you."
-
- "It will be difficult -- perhaps impossible."
-
- "My art knoweth not that word. The more difficult
- it is, the more certainly will I reveal it to you."
-
- You see, I was working up the interest. It was
- getting pretty high, too; you could see that by the
- craning necks all around, and the half-suspended
- breathing. So now I climaxed it:
-
- "If you make no mistake -- if you tell me truly
- what I want to know -- I will give you two hundred
- silver pennies."
-
- "The fortune is mine! I will tell you what you
- would know."
-
- "Then tell me what I am doing with my right hand."
-
- "Ah-h!" There was a general gasp of surprise.
- It had not occurred to anybody in the crowd -- that
- simple trick of inquiring about somebody who wasn't
- ten thousand miles away. The magician was hit hard;
- it was an emergency that had never happened in his
- experience before, and it corked him; he didn't know
- how to meet it. He looked stunned, confused; he
- couldn't say a word. "Come," I said, "what are
- you waiting for? Is it possible you can answer up,
- right off, and tell what anybody on the other side of
- the earth is doing, and yet can't tell what a person is
- doing who isn't three yards from you? Persons behind
- me know what I am doing with my right hand -- they
- will indorse you if you tell correctly." He was still
- dumb. "Very well, I'll tell you why you don't speak
- up and tell; it is because you don't know. YOU a
- magician! Good friends, this tramp is a mere fraud
- and liar."
-
- This distressed the monks and terrified them. They
- were not used to hearing these awful beings called
- names, and they did not know what might be the con-
- sequence. There was a dead silence now; superstitious
- bodings were in every mind. The magician began to
- pull his wits together, and when he presently smiled an
- easy, nonchalant smile, it spread a mighty relief
- around; for it indicated that his mood was not destruc-
- tive. He said:
-
- "It hath struck me speechless, the frivolity of this
- person's speech. Let all know, if perchance there be
- any who know it not, that enchanters of my degree
- deign not to concern themselves with the doings of any
- but kings, princes, emperors, them that be born in the
- purple and them only. Had ye asked me what Arthur
- the great king is doing, it were another matter, and I
- had told ye; but the doings of a subject interest me
- not."
-
- "Oh, I misunderstood you. I thought you said
- 'anybody,' and so I supposed 'anybody' included --
- well, anybody; that is, everybody."
-
- "It doth -- anybody that is of lofty birth; and the
- better if he be royal."
-
- "That, it meseemeth, might well be," said the abbot,
- who saw his opportunity to smooth things and avert
- disaster, "for it were not likely that so wonderful a
- gift as this would be conferred for the revelation of the
- concerns of lesser beings than such as be born near to
- the summits of greatness. Our Arthur the king --"
-
- "Would you know of him?" broke in the en-
- chanter.
-
- "Most gladly, yea, and gratefully."
-
- Everybody was full of awe and interest again right
- away, the incorrigible idiots. They watched the incan-
- tations absorbingly, and looked at me with a "There,
- now, what can you say to that?" air, when the
- announcement came:
-
- "The king is weary with the chase, and lieth in his
- palace these two hours sleeping a dreamless sleep."
-
- "God's benison upon him!" said the abbot, and
- crossed himself; "may that sleep be to the refresh-
- ment of his body and his soul."
-
- "And so it might be, if he were sleeping," I said,
- "but the king is not sleeping, the king rides."
-
- Here was trouble again -- a conflict of authority.
- Nobody knew which of us to believe; I still had some
- reputation left. The magician's scorn was stirred, and
- he said:
-
- "Lo, I have seen many wonderful soothsayers and
- prophets and magicians in my life days, but none be-
- fore that could sit idle and see to the heart of things
- with never an incantation to help."
-
- "You have lived in the woods, and lost much by it.
- I use incantations myself, as this good brotherhood are
- aware -- but only on occasions of moment."
-
- When it comes to sarcasming, I reckon I know how
- to keep my end up. That jab made this fellow squirm.
- The abbot inquired after the queen and the court, and
- got this information:
-
- "They be all on sleep, being overcome by fatigue,
- like as to the king."
-
- I said:
-
- "That is merely another lie. Half of them are
- about their amusements, the queen and the other half
- are not sleeping, they ride. Now perhaps you can
- spread yourself a little, and tell us where the king and
- queen and all that are this moment riding with them
- are going?"
-
- "They sleep now, as I said; but on the morrow
- they will ride, for they go a journey toward the sea."
-
- "And where will they be the day after to-morrow at
- vespers?"
-
- "Far to the north of Camelot, and half their journey
- will be done."
-
- "That is another lie, by the space of a hundred and
- fifty miles. Their journey will not be merely half
- done, it will be all done, and they will be HERE, in this
- valley."
-
- THAT was a noble shot! It set the abbot and the
- monks in a whirl of excitement, and it rocked the en-
- chanter to his base. I followed the thing right up:
-
- "If the king does not arrive, I will have myself
- ridden on a rail: if he does I will ride you on a rail
- instead."
-
- Next day I went up to the telephone office and found
- that the king had passed through two towns that were
- on the line. I spotted his progress on the succeeding
- day in the same way. I kept these matters to myself.
- The third day's reports showed that if he kept up his
- gait he would arrive by four in the afternoon. There
- was still no sign anywhere of interest in his coming;
- there seemed to be no preparations making to receive
- him in state; a strange thing, truly. Only one thing
- could explain this: that other magician had been cut-
- ting under me, sure. This was true. I asked a friend
- of mine, a monk, about it, and he said, yes, the
- magician had tried some further enchantments and
- found out that the court had concluded to make no
- journey at all, but stay at home. Think of that!
- Observe how much a reputation was worth in such a
- country. These people had seen me do the very
- showiest bit of magic in history, and the only one
- within their memory that had a positive value, and yet
- here they were, ready to take up with an adventurer
- who could offer no evidence of his powers but his mere
- unproven word.
-
- However, it was not good politics to let the king
- come without any fuss and feathers at all, so I went
- down and drummed up a procession of pilgrims and
- smoked out a batch of hermits and started them out at
- two o'clock to meet him. And that was the sort of
- state he arrived in. The abbot was helpless with rage
- and humiliation when I brought him out on a balcony
- and showed him the head of the state marching in and
- never a monk on hand to offer him welcome, and no
- stir of life or clang of joy-bell to glad his spirit. He
- took one look and then flew to rouse out his forces.
- The next minute the bells were dinning furiously, and
- the various buildings were vomiting monks and nuns,
- who went swarming in a rush toward the coming pro-
- cession; and with them went that magician -- and he
- was on a rail, too, by the abbot's order; and his
- reputation was in the mud, and mine was in the sky
- again. Yes, a man can keep his trademark current in
- such a country, but he can't sit around and do it; he
- has got to be on deck and attending to business right
- along.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV.
- A COMPETITIVE EXAMINATION
-
- WHEN the king traveled for change of air, or made
- a progress, or visited a distant noble whom he
- wished to bankrupt with the cost of his keep, part of
- the administration moved with him. It was a fashion
- of the time. The Commission charged with the ex-
- amination of candidates for posts in the army came
- with the king to the Valley, whereas they could have
- transacted their business just as well at home. And
- although this expedition was strictly a holiday excur-
- sion for the king, he kept some of his business func-
- tions going just the same. He touched for the evil, as
- usual; he held court in the gate at sunrise and tried
- cases, for he was himself Chief Justice of the King's
- Bench.
-
- He shone very well in this latter office. He was a
- wise and humane judge, and he clearly did his honest
- best and fairest, -- according to his lights. That is a
- large reservation. His lights -- I mean his rearing --
- often colored his decisions. Whenever there was a
- dispute between a noble or gentleman and a person of
- lower degree, the king's leanings and sympathies were
- for the former class always, whether he suspected it or
- not. It was impossible that this should be otherwise.
- The blunting effects of slavery upon the slaveholder's
- moral perceptions are known and conceded, the world
- over; and a privileged class, an aristocracy, is but a
- band of slaveholders under another name. This has a
- harsh sound, and yet should not be offensive to any --
- even to the noble himself -- unless the fact itself be an
- offense: for the statement simply formulates a fact.
- The repulsive feature of slavery is the THING, not its
- name. One needs but to hear an aristocrat speak of
- the classes that are below him to recognize -- and in
- but indifferently modified measure -- the very air and
- tone of the actual slaveholder; and behind these are
- the slaveholder's spirit, the slaveholder's blunted feel-
- ing. They are the result of the same cause in both
- cases: the possessor's old and inbred custom of re-
- garding himself as a superior being. The king's judg-
- ments wrought frequent injustices, but it was merely
- the fault of his training, his natural and unalterable
- sympathies. He was as unfitted for a judgeship as
- would be the average mother for the position of milk-
- distributor to starving children in famine-time; her
- own children would fare a shade better than the rest.
-
- One very curious case came before the king. A
- young girl, an orphan, who had a considerable estate,
- married a fine young fellow who had nothing. The
- girl's property was within a seigniory held by the
- Church. The bishop of the diocese, an arrogant scion
- of the great nobility, claimed the girl's estate on the
- ground that she had married privately, and thus had
- cheated the Church out of one of its rights as lord of
- the seigniory -- the one heretofore referred to as le droit
- du seigneur. The penalty of refusal or avoidance was
- confiscation. The girl's defense was, that the lordship
- of the seigniory was vested in the bishop, and the par-
- ticular right here involved was not transferable, but
- must be exercised by the lord himself or stand vacated;
- and that an older law, of the Church itself, strictly
- barred the bishop from exercising it. It was a very
- odd case, indeed.
-
- It reminded me of something I had read in my
- youth about the ingenious way in which the aldermen
- of London raised the money that built the Mansion
- House. A person who had not taken the Sacrament
- according to the Anglican rite could not stand as a
- candidate for sheriff of London. Thus Dissenters were
- ineligible; they could not run if asked, they could not
- serve if elected. The aldermen, who without any
- question were Yankees in disguise, hit upon this neat
- device: they passed a by-law imposing a fine of L400
- upon any one who should refuse to be a candidate for
- sheriff, and a fine of L600 upon any person who, after
- being elected sheriff, refused to serve. Then they went
- to work and elected a lot of Dissenters, one after
- another, and kept it up until they had collected
- L15,000 in fines; and there stands the stately Man-
- sion House to this day, to keep the blushing citizen in
- mind of a long past and lamented day when a band of
- Yankees slipped into London and played games of the
- sort that has given their race a unique and shady
- reputation among all truly good and holy peoples that
- be in the earth.
-
- The girl's case seemed strong to me; the bishop's
- case was just as strong. I did not see how the king
- was going to get out of this hole. But he got out. I
- append his decision:
-
- "Truly I find small difficulty here, the matter being
- even a child's affair for simpleness. An the young
- bride had conveyed notice, as in duty bound, to her
- feudal lord and proper master and protector the bishop,
- she had suffered no loss, for the said bishop could have
- got a dispensation making him, for temporary con-
- veniency, eligible to the exercise of his said right, and
- thus would she have kept all she had. Whereas, fail-
- ing in her first duty, she hath by that failure failed in
- all; for whoso, clinging to a rope, severeth it above
- his hands, must fall; it being no defense to claim that
- the rest of the rope is sound, neither any deliverance
- from his peril, as he shall find. Pardy, the woman's
- case is rotten at the source. It is the decree of the
- court that she forfeit to the said lord bishop all her
- goods, even to the last farthing that she doth possess,
- and be thereto mulcted in the costs. Next!"
-
- Here was a tragic end to a beautiful honeymoon not
- yet three months old. Poor young creatures! They
- had lived these three months lapped to the lips in
- worldly comforts. These clothes and trinkets they
- were wearing were as fine and dainty as the shrewdest
- stretch of the sumptuary laws allowed to people of
- their degree; and in these pretty clothes, she crying
- on his shoulder, and he trying to comfort her with
- hopeful words set to the music of despair, they went
- from the judgment seat out into the world homeless,
- bedless, breadless; why, the very beggars by the road-
- sides were not so poor as they.
-
- Well, the king was out of the hole; and on terms
- satisfactory to the Church and the rest of the aristoc-
- racy, no doubt. Men write many fine and plausible
- arguments in support of monarchy, but the fact re-
- mains that where every man in a State has a vote,
- brutal laws are impossible. Arthur's people were of
- course poor material for a republic, because they had
- been debased so long by monarchy; and yet even they
- would have been intelligent enough to make short work
- of that law which the king had just been administering
- if it had been submitted to their full and free vote.
- There is a phrase which has grown so common in the
- world's mouth that it has come to seem to have sense
- and meaning -- the sense and meaning implied when it
- is used; that is the phrase which refers to this or that
- or the other nation as possibly being "capable of self-
- government"; and the implied sense of it is, that there
- has been a nation somewhere, some time or other
- which WASN'T capable of it -- wasn't as able to govern
- itself as some self-appointed specialists were or would
- be to govern it. The master minds of all nations, in
- all ages, have sprung in affluent multitude from the
- mass of the nation, and from the mass of the nation
- only -- not from its privileged classes; and so, no
- matter what the nation's intellectual grade was; whether
- high or low, the bulk of its ability was in the long
- ranks of its nameless and its poor, and so it never saw
- the day that it had not the material in abundance
- whereby to govern itself. Which is to assert an always
- self-proven fact: that even the best governed and most
- free and most enlightened monarchy is still behind the
- best condition attainable by its people; and that the
- same is true of kindred governments of lower grades,
- all the way down to the lowest.
-
- King Arthur had hurried up the army business
- altogether beyond my calculations. I had not sup-
- posed he would move in the matter while I was away;
- and so I had not mapped out a scheme for determining
- the merits of officers; I had only remarked that it
- would be wise to submit every candidate to a sharp
- and searching examination; and privately I meant to
- put together a list of military qualifications that no-
- body could answer to but my West Pointers. That
- ought to have been attended to before I left; for the
- king was so taken with the idea of a standing army
- that he couldn't wait but must get about it at once,
- and get up as good a scheme of examination as he
- could invent out of his own head.
-
- I was impatient to see what this was; and to show,
- too, how much more admirable was the one which I
- should display to the Examining Board. I intimated
- this, gently, to the king, and it fired his curiosity
- When the Board was assembled, I followed him in;
- and behind us came the candidates. One of these
- candidates was a bright young West Pointer of mine,
- and with him were a couple of my West Point pro-
- fessors.
-
- When I saw the Board, I did not know whether to
- cry or to laugh. The head of it was the officer known
- to later centuries as Norroy King-at-Arms! The two
- other members were chiefs of bureaus in his depart-
- ment; and all three were priests, of course; all officials
- who had to know how to read and write were priests.
-
- My candidate was called first, out of courtesy to
- me, and the head of the Board opened on him with
- official solemnity:
-
- "Name?"
-
- "Mal-ease."
-
- "Son of?"
-
- "Webster."
-
- "Webster -- Webster. H'm -- I -- my memory
- faileth to recall the name. Condition?"
-
- "Weaver."
-
- "Weaver! -- God keep us!"
-
- The king was staggered, from his summit to his
- foundations; one clerk fainted, and the others came
- near it. The chairman pulled himself together, and
- said indignantly:
-
- "It is sufficient. Get you hence."
-
- But I appealed to the king. I begged that my can-
- didate might be examined. The king was willing, but
- the Board, who were all well-born folk, implored the
- king to spare them the indignity of examining the
- weaver's son. I knew they didn't know enough to
- examine him anyway, so I joined my prayers to theirs
- and the king turned the duty over to my professors.
- I had had a blackboard prepared, and it was put up
- now, and the circus began. It was beautiful to hear
- the lad lay out the science of war, and wallow in de-
- tails of battle and siege, of supply, transportation,
- mining and countermining, grand tactics, big strategy
- and little strategy, signal service, infantry, cavalry,
- artillery, and all about siege guns, field guns, gatling
- guns, rifled guns, smooth bores, musket practice,
- revolver practice -- and not a solitary word of it all
- could these catfish make head or tail of, you under-
- stand -- and it was handsome to see him chalk off
- mathematical nightmares on the blackboard that would
- stump the angels themselves, and do it like nothing,
- too -- all about eclipses, and comets, and solstices, and
- constellations, and mean time, and sidereal time, and
- dinner time, and bedtime, and every other imaginable
- thing above the clouds or under them that you could
- harry or bullyrag an enemy with and make him wish
- he hadn't come -- and when the boy made his military
- salute and stood aside at last, I was proud enough to
- hug him, and all those other people were so dazed they
- looked partly petrified, partly drunk, and wholly caught
- out and snowed under. I judged that the cake was ours,
- and by a large majority.
-
- Education is a great thing. This was the same
- youth who had come to West Point so ignorant that
- when I asked him, "If a general officer should have a
- horse shot under him on the field of battle, what ought
- he to do?" answered up naively and said:
-
- "Get up and brush himself."
-
- One of the young nobles was called up now. I
- thought I would question him a little myself. I said:
-
- "Can your lordship read?"
-
- His face flushed indignantly, and he fired this at me:
-
- "Takest me for a clerk? I trow I am not of a blood
- that --"
-
- "Answer the question!"
-
- He crowded his wrath down and made out to answer
- "No."
-
- "Can you write?"
-
- He wanted to resent this, too, but I said:
-
- "You will confine yourself to the questions, and
- make no comments. You are not here to air your
- blood or your graces, and nothing of the sort will be
- permitted. Can you write?"
-
- "No."
-
- "Do you know the multiplication table?"
-
- "I wit not what ye refer to."
-
- "How much is 9 times 6?"
-
- "It is a mystery that is hidden from me by reason
- that the emergency requiring the fathoming of it hath
- not in my life-days occurred, and so, not having no
- need to know this thing, I abide barren of the knowl-
- edge."
-
- "If A trade a barrel of onions to B, worth 2 pence
- the bushel, in exchange for a sheep worth 4 pence and
- a dog worth a penny, and C kill the dog before de-
- livery, because bitten by the same, who mistook him
- for D, what sum is still due to A from B, and which
- party pays for the dog, C or D, and who gets the
- money? If A, is the penny sufficient, or may he claim
- consequential damages in the form of additional money
- to represent the possible profit which might have
- inured from the dog, and classifiable as earned incre-
- ment, that is to say, usufruct?"
-
- "Verily, in the all-wise and unknowable providence of
- God, who moveth in mysterious ways his wonders to
- perform, have I never heard the fellow to this question
- for confusion of the mind and congestion of the ducts
- of thought. Wherefore I beseech you let the dog and
- the onions and these people of the strange and godless
- names work out their several salvations from their
- piteous and wonderful difficulties without help of mine,
- for indeed their trouble is sufficient as it is, whereas an
- I tried to help I should but damage their cause the
- more and yet mayhap not live myself to see the deso-
- lation wrought."
-
- "What do you know of the laws of attraction and
- gravitation?"
-
- "If there be such, mayhap his grace the king did pro-
- mulgate them whilst that I lay sick about the beginning
- of the year and thereby failed to hear his proclamation."
-
- "What do you know of the science of optics?"
-
- "I know of governors of places, and seneschals of
- castles, and sheriffs of counties, and many like small
- offices and titles of honor, but him you call the Science
- of Optics I have not heard of before; peradventure it
- is a new dignity."
-
- "Yes, in this country."
-
- Try to conceive of this mollusk gravely applying for
- an official position, of any kind under the sun! Why,
- he had all the earmarks of a typewriter copyist, if you
- leave out the disposition to contribute uninvited emen-
- dations of your grammar and punctuation. It was
- unaccountable that he didn't attempt a little help of
- that sort out of his majestic supply of incapacity for
- the job. But that didn't prove that he hadn't material
- in him for the disposition, it only proved that he
- wasn't a typewriter copyist yet. After nagging him a
- little more, I let the professors loose on him and they
- turned him inside out, on the line of scientific war, and
- found him empty, of course. He knew somewhat
- about the warfare of the time -- bushwhacking around
- for ogres, and bull-fights in the tournament ring, and
- such things -- but otherwise he was empty and useless.
- Then we took the other young noble in hand, and he
- was the first one's twin, for ignorance and incapacity.
- I delivered them into the hands of the chairman of the
- Board with the comfortable consciousness that their
- cake was dough. They were examined in the previous
- order of precedence.
-
- "Name, so please you?"
-
- "Pertipole, son of Sir Pertipole, Baron of Barley
- Mash."
-
- "Grandfather?"
-
- "Also Sir Pertipole, Baron of Barley Mash."
-
- "Great-grandfather?"
-
- "The same name and title."
-
- "Great-great-grandfather?"
-
- "We had none, worshipful sir, the line failing be-
- fore it had reached so far back."
-
- "It mattereth not. It is a good four generations,
- and fulfilleth the requirements of the rule."
-
- "Fulfills what rule?" I asked.
-
- "The rule requiring four generations of nobility or
- else the candidate is not eligible."
-
- "A man not eligible for a lieutenancy in the
- army unless he can prove four generations of noble
- descent?"
-
- "Even so; neither lieutenant nor any other officer
- may be commissioned without that qualification."
-
- "Oh, come, this is an astonishing thing. What
- good is such a qualification as that?"
-
- "What good? It is a hardy question, fair sir and
- Boss, since it doth go far to impugn the wisdom of
- even our holy Mother Church herself."
-
- "As how?"
-
- "For that she hath established the self-same rule
- regarding saints. By her law none may be canonized
- until he hath lain dead four generations."
-
- "I see, I see -- it is the same thing. It is wonder-
- ful. In the one case a man lies dead-alive four genera-
- tions -- mummified in ignorance and sloth -- and that
- qualifies him to command live people, and take their
- weal and woe into his impotent hands; and in the
- other case, a man lies bedded with death and worms
- four generations, and that qualifies him for office in the
- celestial camp. Does the king's grace approve of this
- strange law?"
-
- The king said:
-
- "Why, truly I see naught about it that is strange.
- All places of honor and of profit do belong, by natural
- right, to them that be of noble blood, and so these
- dignities in the army are their property and would be
- so without this or any rule. The rule is but to mark a
- limit. Its purpose is to keep out too recent blood,
- which would bring into contempt these offices, and
- men of lofty lineage would turn their backs and scorn
- to take them. I were to blame an I permitted this
- calamity. YOU can permit it an you are minded so to
- do, for you have the delegated authority, but that the
- king should do it were a most strange madness and not
- comprehensible to any."
-
- "I yield. Proceed, sir Chief of the Herald's Col-
- lege. "
-
- The chairman resumed as follows:
-
- "By what illustrious achievement for the honor of
- the Throne and State did the founder of your great
- line lift himself to the sacred dignity of the British
- nobility?"
-
- "He built a brewery."
-
- "Sire, the Board finds this candidate perfect in all
- the requirements and qualifications for military com-
- mand, and doth hold his case open for decision after
- due examination of his competitor."
-
- The competitor came forward and proved exactly
- four generations of nobility himself. So there was a
- tie in military qualifications that far.
-
- He stood aside a moment, and Sir Pertipole was
- questioned further:
-
- "Of what condition was the wife of the founder of
- your line?"
-
- "She came of the highest landed gentry, yet she
- was not noble; she was gracious and pure and chari-
- table, of a blameless life and character, insomuch that
- in these regards was she peer of the best lady in the
- land."
-
- "That will do. Stand down." He called up the
- competing lordling again, and asked: "What was the
- rank and condition of the great-grandmother who con-
- ferred British nobility upon your great house?"
-
- "She was a king's leman and did climb to that
- splendid eminence by her own unholpen merit from
- the sewer where she was born."
-
- "Ah, this, indeed, is true nobility, this is the right
- and perfect intermixture. The lieutenancy is yours,
- fair lord. Hold it not in contempt; it is the humble
- step which will lead to grandeurs more worthy of the
- splendor of an origin like to thine."
-
- I was down in the bottomless pit of humiliation. I
- had promised myself an easy and zenith-scouring
- triumph, and this was the outcome!
-
- I was almost ashamed to look my poor disappointed
- cadet in the face. I told him to go home and be
- patient, this wasn't the end.
-
- I had a private audience with the king, and made a
- proposition. I said it was quite right to officer that
- regiment with nobilities, and he couldn't have done a
- wiser thing. It would also be a good idea to add five
- hundred officers to it; in fact, add as many officers
- as there were nobles and relatives of nobles in the
- country, even if there should finally be five times as
- many officers as privates in it; and thus make it the
- crack regiment, the envied regiment, the King's Own
- regiment, and entitled to fight on its own hook and in
- its own way, and go whither it would and come when
- it pleased, in time of war, and be utterly swell and
- independent. This would make that regiment the
- heart's desire of all the nobility, and they would all
- be satisfied and happy. Then we would make up the
- rest of the standing army out of commonplace materi-
- als, and officer it with nobodies, as was proper --
- nobodies selected on a basis of mere efficiency -- and
- we would make this regiment toe the line, allow it no
- aristocratic freedom from restraint, and force it to do
- all the work and persistent hammering, to the end that
- whenever the King's Own was tired and wanted to go
- off for a change and rummage around amongst ogres
- and have a good time, it could go without uneasiness,
- knowing that matters were in safe hands behind it, and
- business going to be continued at the old stand, same
- as usual. The king was charmed with the idea.
-
- When I noticed that, it gave me a valuable notion.
- I thought I saw my way out of an old and stubborn
- difficulty at last. You see, the royalties of the Pen-
- dragon stock were a long-lived race and very fruitful.
- Whenever a child was born to any of these -- and it
- was pretty often -- there was wild joy in the nation's
- mouth, and piteous sorrow in the nation's heart. The
- joy was questionable, but the grief was honest. Be-
- cause the event meant another call for a Royal Grant.
- Long was the list of these royalties, and they were a
- heavy and steadily increasing burden upon the treasury
- and a menace to the crown. Yet Arthur could not
- believe this latter fact, and he would not listen to any
- of my various projects for substituting something in
- the place of the royal grants. If I could have per-
- suaded him to now and then provide a support for one
- of these outlying scions from his own pocket, I could
- have made a grand to-do over it, and it would have
- had a good effect with the nation; but no, he wouldn't
- hear of such a thing. He had something like a
- religious passion for royal grant; he seemed to look
- upon it as a sort of sacred swag, and one could not
- irritate him in any way so quickly and so surely as by
- an attack upon that venerable institution. If I ven-
- tured to cautiously hint that there was not another
- respectable family in England that would humble itself
- to hold out the hat -- however, that is as far as I ever
- got; he always cut me short there, and peremptorily,
- too.
-
- But I believed I saw my chance at last. I would
- form this crack regiment out of officers alone -- not a
- single private. Half of it should consist of nobles,
- who should fill all the places up to Major-General, and
- serve gratis and pay their own expenses; and they
- would be glad to do this when they should learn that
- the rest of the regiment would consist exclusively of
- princes of the blood. These princes of the blood should
- range in rank from Lieutenant-General up to Field
- Marshal, and be gorgeously salaried and equipped and
- fed by the state. Moreover -- and this was the master
- stroke -- it should be decreed that these princely gran-
- dees should be always addressed by a stunningly gaudy
- and awe-compelling title (which I would presently in-
- vent), and they and they only in all England should
- be so addressed. Finally, all princes of the blood
- should have free choice; join that regiment, get that
- great title, and renounce the royal grant, or stay out
- and receive a grant. Neatest touch of all: unborn but
- imminent princes of the blood could be BORN into the
- regiment, and start fair, with good wages and a per-
- manent situation, upon due notice from the parents.
-
- All the boys would join, I was sure of that; so, all
- existing grants would be relinquished; that the newly
- born would always join was equally certain. Within
- sixty days that quaint and bizarre anomaly, the Royal
- Grant, would cease to be a living fact, and take its
- place among the curiosities of the past.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI.
- THE FIRST NEWSPAPER
-
- WHEN I told the king I was going out disguised as
- a petty freeman to scour the country and
- familiarize myself with the humbler life of the people,
- he was all afire with the novelty of the thing in a
- minute, and was bound to take a chance in the adven-
- ture himself -- nothing should stop him -- he would
- drop everything and go along -- it was the prettiest
- idea he had run across for many a day. He wanted
- to glide out the back way and start at once; but I
- showed him that that wouldn't answer. You see, he
- was billed for the king's-evil -- to touch for it, I mean
- -- and it wouldn't be right to disappoint the house
- and it wouldn't make a delay worth considering, any-
- way, it was only a one-night stand. And I thought
- he ought to tell the queen he was going away. He
- clouded up at that and looked sad. I was sorry I had
- spoken, especially when he said mournfully:
-
- "Thou forgettest that Launcelot is here; and where
- Launcelot is, she noteth not the going forth of the
- king, nor what day he returneth."
-
- Of course, I changed the Subject. Yes, Guenever
- was beautiful, it is true, but take her all around she
- was pretty slack. I never meddled in these matters,
- they weren't my affair, but I did hate to see the way
- things were going on, and I don't mind saying that
- much. Many's the time she had asked me, "Sir
- Boss, hast seen Sir Launcelot about?" but if ever she
- went fretting around for the king I didn't happen to be
- around at the time.
-
- There was a very good lay-out for the king's-evil
- business -- very tidy and creditable. The king sat
- under a canopy of state; about him were clustered a
- large body of the clergy in full canonicals. Conspicu-
- ous, both for location and personal outfit, stood
- Marinel, a hermit of the quack-doctor species, to
- introduce the sick. All abroad over the spacious
- floor, and clear down to the doors, in a thick jumble,
- lay or sat the scrofulous, under a strong light. It
- was as good as a tableau; in fact, it had all the look
- of being gotten up for that, though it wasn't. There
- were eight hundred sick people present. The work
- was slow; it lacked the interest of novelty for me,
- because I had seen the ceremonies before; the thing
- soon became tedious, but the proprieties required me
- to stick it out. The doctor was there for the reason
- that in all such crowds there were many people who
- only imagined something was the matter with them,
- and many who were consciously sound but wanted the
- immortal honor of fleshly contact with a king, and yet
- others who pretended to illness in order to get the
- piece of coin that went with the touch. Up to this
- time this coin had been a wee little gold piece worth
- about a third of a dollar. When you consider how
- much that amount of money would buy, in that age
- and country, and how usual it was to be scrofulous,
- when not dead, you would understand that the annual
- king's-evil appropriation was just the River and Harbor
- bill of that government for the grip it took on the
- treasury and the chance it afforded for skinning the
- surplus. So I had privately concluded to touch the
- treasury itself for the king's-evil. I covered six-
- sevenths of the appropriation into the treasury a week
- before starting from Camelot on my adventures, and
- ordered that the other seventh be inflated into five-
- cent nickels and delivered into the hands of the head
- clerk of the King's Evil Department; a nickel to take
- the place of each gold coin, you see, and do its work
- for it. It might strain the nickel some, but I judged it
- could stand it. As a rule, I do not approve of water-
- ing stock, but I considered it square enough in this
- case, for it was just a gift, anyway. Of course, you
- can water a gift as much as you want to; and I gener-
- ally do. The old gold and silver coins of the country
- were of ancient and unknown origin, as a rule, but
- some of them were Roman; they were ill-shapen, and
- seldom rounder than a moon that is a week past the
- full; they were hammered, not minted, and they were
- so worn with use that the devices upon them were as
- illegible as blisters, and looked like them. I judged
- that a sharp, bright new nickel, with a first-rate like-
- ness of the king on one side of it and Guenever on the
- other, and a blooming pious motto, would take the
- tuck out of scrofula as handy as a nobler coin and
- please the scrofulous fancy more; and I was right.
- This batch was the first it was tried on, and it worked
- to a charm. The saving in expense was a notable
- economy. You will see that by these figures: We
- touched a trifle over 700 of the 800 patients; at former
- rates, this would have cost the government about
- $240; at the new rate we pulled through for about
- $35, thus saving upward of $200 at one swoop. To
- appreciate the full magnitude of this stroke, consider
- these other figures: the annual expenses of a national
- government amount to the equivalent of a contribution
- of three days' average wages of every individual of the
- population, counting every individual as if he were a
- man. If you take a nation of 60,000,000, where
- average wages are $2 per day, three days' wages taken
- from each individual will provide $360,000,000 and
- pay the government's expenses. In my day, in my
- own country, this money was collected from imposts,
- and the citizen imagined that the foreign importer paid
- it, and it made him comfortable to think so; whereas,
- in fact, it was paid by the American people, and was
- so equally and exactly distributed among them that
- the annual cost to the 100-millionaire and the annual
- cost to the sucking child of the day-laborer was pre-
- cisely the same -- each paid $6. Nothing could be
- equaler than that, I reckon. Well, Scotland and
- Ireland were tributary to Arthur, and the united popu-
- lations of the British Islands amounted to something
- less than 1,OOO,OOO. A mechanic's average wage was
- 3 cents a day, when he paid his own keep. By this
- rule the national government's expenses were $90,000
- a year, or about $250 a day. Thus, by the substitu-
- tion of nickels for gold on a king's-evil day, I not
- only injured no one, dissatisfied no one, but pleased
- all concerned and saved four-fifths of that day's
- national expense into the bargain -- a saving which
- would have been the equivalent of $800,000 in my
- day in America. In making this substitution I had
- drawn upon the wisdom of a very remote source -- the
- wisdom of my boyhood -- for the true statesman does
- not despise any wisdom, howsoever lowly may be its
- origin: in my boyhood I had always saved my pennies
- and contributed buttons to the foreign missionary
- cause. The buttons would answer the ignorant savage
- as well as the coin, the coin would answer me better
- than the buttons; all hands were happy and nobody
- hurt.
-
- Marinel took the patients as they came. He ex-
- amined the candidate; if he couldn't qualify he was
- warned off; if he could he was passed along to the
- king. A priest pronounced the words, "They shall
- lay their hands on the sick, and they shall recover."
- Then the king stroked the ulcers, while the reading
- continued; finally, the patient graduated and got his
- nickel -- the king hanging it around his neck himself --
- and was dismissed. Would you think that that would
- cure? It certainly did. Any mummery will cure if
- the patient's faith is strong in it. Up by Astolat there
- was a chapel where the Virgin had once appeared to a
- girl who used to herd geese around there -- the girl
- said so herself -- and they built the chapel upon that
- spot and hung a picture in it representing the occur-
- rence -- a picture which you would think it dangerous
- for a sick person to approach; whereas, on the con-
- trary, thousands of the lame and the sick came and
- prayed before it every year and went away whole and
- sound; and even the well could look upon it and live.
- Of course, when I was told these things I did not be-
- lieve them; but when I went there and saw them I had
- to succumb. I saw the cures effected myself; and
- they were real cures and not questionable. I saw
- cripples whom I had seen around Camelot for years
- on crutches, arrive and pray before that picture, and
- put down their crutches and walk off without a limp.
- There were piles of crutches there which had been left
- by such people as a testimony.
-
- In other places people operated on a patient's mind,
- without saying a word to him, and cured him. In
- others, experts assembled patients in a room and
- prayed over them, and appealed to their faith, and
- those patients went away cured. Wherever you find a
- king who can't cure the king's-evil you can be sure
- that the most valuable superstition that supports his
- throne -- the subject's belief in the divine appointment
- of his sovereign -- has passed away. In my youth the
- monarchs of England had ceased to touch for the evil,
- but there was no occasion for this diffidence: they
- could have cured it forty-nine times in fifty.
-
- Well, when the priest had been droning for three
- hours, and the good king polishing the evidences, and
- the sick were still pressing forward as plenty as ever, I
- got to feeling intolerably bored. I was sitting by an
- open window not far from the canopy of state. For
- the five hundredth time a patient stood forward to have
- his repulsivenesses stroked; again those words were
- being droned out: "they shall lay their hands on the
- sick" -- when outside there rang clear as a clarion a
- note that enchanted my soul and tumbled thirteen
- worthless centuries about my ears: "Camelot WEEKLY
- HOSANNAH AND LITERARY VOLCANO! -- latest irruption --
- only two cents -- all about the big miracle in the
- Valley of Holiness!" One greater than kings had
- arrived -- the newsboy. But I was the only person in
- all that throng who knew the meaning of this mighty
- birth, and what this imperial magician was come into
- the world to do.
-
- I dropped a nickel out of the window and got my
- paper; the Adam-newsboy of the world went around
- the corner to get my change; is around the corner
- yet. It was delicious to see a newspaper again, yet I
- was conscious of a secret shock when my eye fell upon
- the first batch of display head-lines. I had lived in a
- clammy atmosphere of reverence, respect, deference,
- so long that they sent a quivery little cold wave
- through me:
-
- HIGH TIMES IN THE VALLEY
-
- OF HOLINESS!
-
- ----
-
- THE WATER-WORKS CORKED!
-
- ----
-
- BRER MERLIN WORKS HIS ARTS, BUT GETS
- LEFT?
-
- ----
-
- But the Boss scores on his first Innings!
-
- ----
-
- The Miraculous Well Uncorked amid
- awful outbursts of
-
- INFERNAL FIRE AND SMOKE
- ATHUNDER!
-
- ----
-
- THE BUZZARD-ROOST ASTONISHED!
-
- ----
-
- UNPARALLELED REJOIBINGS!
-
- -- and so on, and so on. Yes, it was too loud. Once
- I could have enjoyed it and seen nothing out of the
- way about it, but now its note was discordant. It was
- good Arkansas journalism, but this was not Arkansas.
- Moreover, the next to the last line was calculated to
- give offense to the hermits, and perhaps lose us their
- advertising. Indeed, there was too lightsome a tone
- of flippancy all through the paper. It was plain I had
- undergone a considerable change without noticing it.
- I found myself unpleasantly affected by pert little
- irreverencies which would have seemed but proper and
- airy graces of speech at an earlier period of my life.
- There was an abundance of the following breed of
- items, and they discomforted me:
-
- LOCAL SMOKE AND CINDERS.
-
- Sir Launcelot met up with old King
- Agrivance of Ireland unexpectedly last
- weok over on the moor south of Sir
- Balmoral le Merveilleuse's hog dasture.
- The widow has been notified.
-
- Expedition No. 3 will start adout the
- first of mext month on a search f8r Sir
- Sagramour le Desirous. It is in com-
- and of the renowned Knight of the Red
- Lawns, assissted by Sir Persant of Inde,
- who is compete9t. intelligent, courte-
- ous, and in every way a brick, and fur-
- tHer assisted by Sir Palamides the Sara-
- cen, who is no huckleberry hinself.
- This is no pic-nic, these boys mean
- busine&s.
-
- The readers of the Hosannah will re-
- gret to learn that the hadndsome and
- popular Sir Charolais of Gaul, who dur-
- ing his four weeks' stay at the Bull and
- Halibut, this city, has won every heart
- by his polished manners and elegant
- cPnversation, will pUll out to-day for
- home. Give us another call, Charley!
-
- The bdsiness end of the funeral of
- the late Sir Dalliance the duke's son of
- Cornwall, killed in an encounter with
- the Giant of the Knotted Bludgeon last
- Tuesday on the borders of the Plain of
- Enchantment was in the hands of the
- ever affable and efficient Mumble,
- prince of un3ertakers, then whom there
- exists none by whom it were a more
- satisfying pleasure to have the last sad
- offices performed. Give him a trial.
-
- The cordial thanks of the Hosannah
- office are due, from editor down to
- devil, to the ever courteous and thought-
- ful Lord High Stew d of the Palace's
- Third Assistant V t for several sau-
- ceTs of ice crEam a quality calculated
- to make the ey of the recipients hu-
- mid with grt ude; and it done it.
- When this administration wants to
- chalk up a desirable name for early
- promotion, the Hosannah would like a
- chance to sudgest.
-
- The Demoiselle Irene Dewlap, of
- South Astolat, is visiting her uncle, the
- popular host of the Cattlemen's Board-
- ing Ho&se, Liver Lane, this city.
-
- Young Barker the bellows-mender is
- hoMe again, and looks much improved
- by his vacation round-up among the ut-
- lying smithies. See his ad.
-
- A Yankee in King Arthur's Court 239
-
- Of course it was good enough journalism for a be-
- ginning; I knew that quite well, and yet it was some-
- how disappointing. The "Court Circular" pleased
- me better; indeed, its simple and dignified respect-
- fulness was a distinct refreshment to me after all those
- disgraceful familiarities. But even it could have been
- improved. Do what one may, there is no getting an
- air of variety into a court circular, I acknowledge that.
- There is a profound monotonousness about its facts
- that baffles and defeats one's sincerest efforts to make
- them sparkle and enthuse. The best way to manage --
- in fact, the only sensible way -- is to disguise repeti-
- tiousness of fact under variety of form: skin your fact
- each time and lay on a new cuticle of words. It de-
- ceives the eye; you think it is a new fact; it gives you
- the idea that the court is carrying on like everything;
- this excites you, and you drain the whole column, with
- a good appetite, and perhaps never notice that it's a
- barrel of soup made out of a single bean. Clarence's
- way was good, it was simple, it was dignified, it was
- direct and business-like; all I say is, it was not the
- best way:
-
- COURT CIRCULAR.
-
- On Monday, the king rode in the park.
- " Tuesday, " " "
- " Wendesday " " "
- " Thursday " " "
- " Friday, " " "
- " Saturday " " "
- " Sunday, " " "
-
- However, take the paper by and large, I was vastly
- pleased with it. Little crudities of a mechanical sort
- were observable here and there, but there were not
- enough of them to amount to anything, and it was
- good enough Arkansas proof-reading, anyhow, and
- better than was needed in Arthur's day and realm.
- As a rule, the grammar was leaky and the construc-
- tion more or less lame; but I did not much mind these
- things. They are common defects of my own, and
- one mustn't criticise other people on grounds where he
- can't stand perpendicular himself.
-
- I was hungry enough for literature to want to take
- down the whole paper at this one meal, but I got only
- a few bites, and then had to postpone, because the
- monks around me besieged me so with eager ques-
- tions: What is this curious thing? What is it for? Is
- it a handkerchief? -- saddle blanket? -- part of a shirt?
- What is it made of? How thin it is, and how dainty
- and frail; and how it rattles. Will it wear, do you
- think, and won't the rain injure it? Is it writing that
- appears on it, or is it only ornamentation? They sus-
- pected it was writing, because those among them who
- knew how to read Latin and had a smattering of
- Greek, recognized some of the letters, but they could
- make nothing out of the result as a whole. I put my
- information in the simplest form I could:
-
- "It is a public journal; I will explain what that is,
- another time. It is not cloth, it is made of paper;
- some time I will explain what paper is. The lines on
- it are reading matter; and not written by hand, but
- printed; by and by I will explain what printing is. A
- thousand of these sheets have been made, all exactly
- like this, in every minute detail -- they can't be told
- apart." Then they all broke out with exclamations of
- surprise and admiration:
-
- "A thousand! Verily a mighty work -- a year's
- work for many men."
-
- "No -- merely a day's work for a man and a boy."
-
- They crossed themselves, and whiffed out a protec-
- tive prayer or two.
-
- "Ah-h -- a miracle, a wonder! Dark work of en-
- chantment."
-
- I let it go at that. Then I read in a low voice, to as
- many as could crowd their shaven heads within hearing
- distance, part of the account of the miracle of the
- restoration of the well, and was accompanied by aston-
- ished and reverent ejaculations all through: "Ah-h-h!"
- "How true!" "Amazing, amazing!" "These be
- the very haps as they happened, in marvelous exact-
- ness!" And might they take this strange thing in
- their hands, and feel of it and examine it? -- they
- would be very careful. Yes. So they took it, hand-
- ling it as cautiously and devoutly as if it had been
- some holy thing come from some supernatural region;
- and gently felt of its texture, caressed its pleasant
- smooth surface with lingering touch, and scanned the
- mysterious characters with fascinated eyes. These
- grouped bent heads, these charmed faces, these speak-
- ing eyes -- how beautiful to me! For was not this my
- darling, and was not all this mute wonder and interest
- and homage a most eloquent tribute and unforced
- compliment to it? I knew, then, how a mother feels
- when women, whether strangers or friends, take her
- new baby, and close themselves about it with one
- eager impulse, and bend their heads over it in a
- tranced adoration that makes all the rest of the uni-
- verse vanish out of their consciousness and be as if it
- were not, for that time. I knew how she feels, and
- that there is no other satisfied ambition, whether of
- king, conqueror, or poet, that ever reaches half-way to
- that serene far summit or yields half so divine a con-
- tentment.
-
- During all the rest of the seance my paper traveled
- from group to group all up and down and about that
- huge hall, and my happy eye was upon it always, and
- I sat motionless, steeped in satisfaction, drunk with
- enjoyment. Yes, this was heaven; I was tasting it
- once, if I might never taste it more.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII.
- THE YANKEE AND THE KING TRAVEL INCOGNITO
-
- ABOUT bedtime I took the king to my private
- quarters to cut his hair and help him get the
- hang of the lowly raiment he was to wear. The high
- classes wore their hair banged across the forehead but
- hanging to the shoulders the rest of the way around,
- whereas the lowest ranks of commoners were banged
- fore and aft both; the slaves were bangless, and
- allowed their hair free growth. So I inverted a bowl
- over his head and cut away all the locks that hung
- below it. I also trimmed his whiskers and mustache
- until they were only about a half-inch long; and tried
- to do it inartistically, and succeeded. It was a villainous
- disfigurement. When he got his lubberly sandals on,
- and his long robe of coarse brown linen cloth, which
- hung straight from his neck to his ankle-bones, he was
- no longer the comeliest man in his kingdom, but one
- of the unhandsomest and most commonplace and un-
- attractive. We were dressed and barbered alike, and
- could pass for small farmers, or farm bailiffs, or
- shepherds, or carters; yes, or for village artisans, if
- we chose, our costume being in effect universal among
- the poor, because of its strength and cheapness. I
- don't mean that it was really cheap to a very poor
- person, but I do mean that it was the cheapest material
- there was for male attire -- manufactured material, you
- understand.
-
- We slipped away an hour before dawn, and by broad
- sun-up had made eight or ten miles, and were in the
- midst of a sparsely settled country. I had a pretty
- heavy knapsack; it was laden with provisions -- pro-
- visions for the king to taper down on, till he could
- take to the coarse fare of the country without damage.
-
- I found a comfortable seat for the king by the road-
- side, and then gave him a morsel or two to stay his
- stomach with. Then I said I would find some water
- for him, and strolled away. Part of my project was to
- get out of sight and sit down and rest a little myself.
- It had always been my custom to stand when in his
- presence; even at the council board, except upon
- those rare occasions when the sitting was a very long
- one, extending over hours; then I had a trifling little
- backless thing which was like a reversed culvert and
- was as comfortable as the toothache. I didn't want to
- break him in suddenly, but do it by degrees. We
- should have to sit together now when in company, or
- people would notice; but it would not be good politics
- for me to be playing equality with him when there was
- no necessity for it.
-
- I found the water some three hundred yards away,
- and had been resting about twenty minutes, when I
- heard voices. That is all right, I thought -- peasants
- going to work; nobody else likely to be stirring this
- early. But the next moment these comers jingled into
- sight around a turn of the road -- smartly clad people
- of quality, with luggage-mules and servants in their
- train! I was off like a shot, through the bushes, by
- the shortest cut. For a while it did seem that these
- people would pass the king before I could get to him;
- but desperation gives you wings, you know, and I
- canted my body forward, inflated my breast, and held
- my breath and flew. I arrived. And in plenty good
- enough time, too.
-
- "Pardon, my king, but it's no time for ceremony --
- jump! Jump to your feet -- some quality are coming!"
-
- "Is that a marvel? Let them come."
-
- "But my liege! You must not be seen sitting.
- Rise! -- and stand in humble posture while they pass.
- You are a peasant, you know."
-
- "True -- I had forgot it, so lost was I in planning
- of a huge war with Gaul" -- he was up by this time,
- but a farm could have got up quicker, if there was
- any kind of a boom in real estate -- "and right-so a
- thought came randoming overthwart this majestic
- dream the which --"
-
- "A humbler attitude, my lord the king -- and
- quick! Duck your head! -- more! -- still more! --
- droop it!"
-
- He did his honest best, but lord, it was no great
- things. He looked as humble as the leaning tower at
- Pisa. It is the most you could say of it. Indeed, it
- was such a thundering poor success that it raised
- wondering scowls all along the line, and a gorgeous
- flunkey at the tail end of it raised his whip; but I
- jumped in time and was under it when it fell; and
- under cover of the volley of coarse laughter which fol-
- lowed, I spoke up sharply and warned the king to take
- no notice. He mastered himself for the moment, but
- it was a sore tax; he wanted to eat up the procession.
- I said:
-
- "It would end our adventures at the very start;
- and we, being without weapons, could do nothing with
- that armed gang. If we are going to succeed in our
- emprise, we must not only look the peasant but act
- the peasant."
-
- "It is wisdom; none can gainsay it. Let us go on,
- Sir Boss. I will take note and learn, and do the best
- I may."
-
- He kept his word. He did the best he could, but
- I've seen better. If you have ever seen an active,
- heedless, enterprising child going diligently out of
- one mischief and into another all day long, and an
- anxious mother at its heels all the while, and just
- saving it by a hair from drowning itself or breaking
- its neck with each new experiment, you've seen the
- king and me.
-
- If I could have foreseen what the thing was going to
- be like, I should have said, No, if anybody wants to
- make his living exhibiting a king as a peasant, let him
- take the layout; I can do better with a menagerie, and
- last longer. And yet, during the first three days I
- never allowed him to enter a hut or other dwelling. If
- he could pass muster anywhere during his early
- novitiate it would be in small inns and on the road;
- so to these places we confined ourselves. Yes, he
- certainly did the best he could, but what of that? He
- didn't improve a bit that I could see.
-
- He was always frightening me, always breaking out
- with fresh astonishers, in new and unexpected places.
- Toward evening on the second day, what does he do
- but blandly fetch out a dirk from inside his robe!
-
- "Great guns, my liege, where did you get that?"
-
- "From a smuggler at the inn, yester eve."
-
- "What in the world possessed you to buy it?"
-
- "We have escaped divers dangers by wit -- thy wit
- -- but I have bethought me that it were but prudence
- if I bore a weapon, too. Thine might fail thee in
- some pinch."
-
- "But people of our condition are not allowed to
- carry arms. What would a lord say -- yes, or any
- other person of whatever condition -- if he caught an
- upstart peasant with a dagger on his person?"
-
- It was a lucky thing for us that nobody came along
- just then. I persuaded him to throw the dirk away;
- and it was as easy as persuading a child to give up
- some bright fresh new way of killing itself. We walked
- along, silent and thinking. Finally the king said:
-
- "When ye know that I meditate a thing incon-
- venient, or that hath a peril in it, why do you not
- warn me to cease from that project?"
-
- It was a startling question, and a puzzler. I didn't
- quite know how to take hold of it, or what to say, and
- so, of course, I ended by saying the natural thing:
-
- "But, sire, how can I know what your thoughts
- are?"
-
- The king stopped dead in his tracks, and stared at
- me.
-
- "I believed thou wert greater than Merlin; and
- truly in magic thou art. But prophecy is greater than
- magic. Merlin is a prophet."
-
- I saw I had made a blunder. I must get back my
- lost ground. After a deep reflection and careful plan-
- ning, I said:
-
- "Sire, I have been misunderstood. I will explain.
- There are two kinds of prophecy. One is the gift to
- foretell things that are but a little way off, the other is
- the gift to foretell things that are whole ages and
- centuries away. Which is the mightier gift, do you
- think?"
-
- "Oh, the last, most surely!"
-
- "True. Does Merlin possess it?"
-
- "Partly, yes. He foretold mysteries about my birth
- and future kingship that were twenty years away."
-
- "Has he ever gone beyond that?"
-
- "He would not claim more, I think."
-
- "It is probably his limit. All prophets have their
- limit. The limit of some of the great prophets has
- been a hundred years."
-
- "These are few, I ween."
-
- "There have been two still greater ones, whose limit
- was four hundred and six hundred years, and one
- whose limit compassed even seven hundred and
- twenty."
-
- "Gramercy, it is marvelous!"
-
- "But what are these in comparison with me? They
- are nothing."
-
- "What? Canst thou truly look beyond even so
- vast a stretch of time as --"
-
- "Seven hundred years? My liege, as clear as the
- vision of an eagle does my prophetic eye penetrate and
- lay bare the future of this world for nearly thirteen
- centuries and a half!"
-
- My land, you should have seen the king's eyes
- spread slowly open, and lift the earth's entire atmos-
- phere as much as an inch! That settled Brer Merlin.
- One never had any occasion to prove his facts, with
- these people; all he had to do was to state them. It
- never occurred to anybody to doubt the statement.
-
- "Now, then," I continued, "I COULD work both
- kinds of prophecy -- the long and the short -- if I
- chose to take the trouble to keep in practice; but I
- seldom exercise any but the long kind, because the
- other is beneath my dignity. It is properer to Merlin's
- sort -- stump-tail prophets, as we call them in the pro-
- fession. Of course, I whet up now and then and flirt
- out a minor prophecy, but not often -- hardly ever, in
- fact. You will remember that there was great talk,
- when you reached the Valley of Holiness, about my
- having prophesied your coming and the very hour of
- your arrival, two or three days beforehand."
-
- "Indeed, yes, I mind it now."
-
- "Well, I could have done it as much as forty times
- easier, and piled on a thousand times more detail into
- the bargain, if it had been five hundred years away
- instead of two or three days."
-
- "How amazing that it should be so!"
-
- "Yes, a genuine expert can always foretell a thing
- that is five hundred years away easier than he can a
- thing that's only five hundred seconds off."
-
- "And yet in reason it should clearly be the other
- way; it should be five hundred times as easy to fore-
- tell the last as the first, for, indeed, it is so close by
- that one uninspired might almost see it. In truth, the
- law of prophecy doth contradict the likelihoods, most
- strangely making the difficult easy, and the easy
- difficult."
-
- It was a wise head. A peasant's cap was no safe
- disguise for it; you could know it for a king's under a
- diving-bell, if you could hear it work its intellect.
-
- I had a new trade now, and plenty of business in it.
- The king was as hungry to find out everything that was
- going to happen during the next thirteen centuries as
- if he were expecting to live in them. From that time
- out, I prophesied myself bald-headed trying to supply
- the demand. I have done some indiscreet things in
- my day, but this thing of playing myself for a prophet
- was the worst. Still, it had its ameliorations. A
- prophet doesn't have to have any brains. They are
- good to have, of course, for the ordinary exigencies of
- life, but they are no use in professional work. It is
- the restfulest vocation there is. When the spirit of
- prophecy comes upon you, you merely cake your
- intellect and lay it off in a cool place for a rest, and
- unship your jaw and leave it alone; it will work itself:
- the result is prophecy.
-
- Every day a knight-errant or so came along, and
- the sight of them fired the king's martial spirit every
- time. He would have forgotten himself, sure, and
- said something to them in a style a suspicious shade
- or so above his ostensible degree, and so I always got
- him well out of the road in time. Then he would stand
- and look with all his eyes; and a proud light would
- flash from them, and his nostrils would inflate like a
- war-horse's, and I knew he was longing for a brush
- with them. But about noon of the third day I had
- stopped in the road to take a precaution which had
- been suggested by the whip-stroke that had fallen to
- my share two days before; a precaution which I had
- afterward decided to leave untaken, I was so loath to
- institute it; but now I had just had a fresh reminder:
- while striding heedlessly along, with jaw spread and
- intellect at rest, for I was prophesying, I stubbed my
- toe and fell sprawling. I was so pale I couldn't think
- for a moment; then I got softly and carefully up and
- unstrapped my knapsack. I had that dynamite bomb
- in it, done up in wool in a box. It was a good thing
- to have along; the time would come when I could do
- a valuable miracle with it, maybe, but it was a nervous
- thing to have about me, and I didn't like to ask the
- king to carry it. Yet I must either throw it away or
- think up some safe way to get along with its society.
- I got it out and slipped it into my scrip, and just then
- here came a couple of knights. The king stood,
- stately as a statue, gazing toward them -- had for-
- gotten himself again, of course -- and before I could
- get a word of warning out, it was time for him to skip,
- and well that he did it, too. He supposed they would
- turn aside. Turn aside to avoid trampling peasant dirt
- under foot? When had he ever turned aside himself --
- or ever had the chance to do it, if a peasant saw him
- or any other noble knight in time to judiciously save
- him the trouble? The knights paid no attention to
- the king at all; it was his place to look out himself,
- and if he hadn't skipped he would have been placidly
- ridden down, and laughed at besides.
-
- The king was in a flaming fury, and launched out
- his challenge and epithets with a most royal vigor.
- The knights were some little distance by now. They
- halted, greatly surprised, and turned in their saddles
- and looked back, as if wondering if it might be worth
- while to bother with such scum as we. Then they
- wheeled and started for us. Not a moment must be
- lost. I started for THEM. I passed them at a rattling
- gait, and as I went by I flung out a hair-lifting soul-
- scorching thirteen-jointed insult which made the king's
- effort poor and cheap by comparison. I got it out of
- the nineteenth century where they know how. They
- had such headway that they were nearly to the king
- before they could check up; then, frantic with rage,
- they stood up their horses on their hind hoofs and
- whirled them around, and the next moment here they
- came, breast to breast. I was seventy yards off, then,
- and scrambling up a great bowlder at the roadside.
- When they were within thirty yards of me they let their
- long lances droop to a level, depressed their mailed
- heads, and so, with their horse-hair plumes streaming
- straight out behind, most gallant to see, this lightning
- express came tearing for me! When they were within
- fifteen yards, I sent that bomb with a sure aim, and it
- struck the ground just under the horses' noses.
-
- Yes, it was a neat thing, very neat and pretty to
- see. It resembled a steamboat explosion on the Mis-
- sissippi; and during the next fifteen minutes we stood
- under a steady drizzle of microscopic fragments of
- knights and hardware and horse-flesh. I say we, for
- the king joined the audience, of course, as soon as he
- had got his breath again. There was a hole there
- which would afford steady work for all the people in
- that region for some years to come -- in trying to ex-
- plain it, I mean; as for filling it up, that service would
- be comparatively prompt, and would fall to the lot of
- a select few -- peasants of that seignory; and they
- wouldn't get anything for it, either.
-
- But I explained it to the king myself. I said it was
- done with a dynamite bomb, This information did
- him no damage, because it left him as intelligent as he
- was before. However, it was a noble miracle, in his
- eyes, and was another settler for Merlin. I thought it
- well enough to explain that this was a miracle of so
- rare a sort that it couldn't be done except when the
- atmospheric conditions were just right. Otherwise he
- would be encoring it every time we had a good sub-
- ject, and that would be inconvenient, because I hadn't
- any more bombs along.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII.
- DRILLING THE KING
-
- ON the morning of the fourth day, when it was just
- sunrise, and we had been tramping an hour in
- the chill dawn, I came to a resolution: the king MUST
- be drilled; things could not go on so, he must be
- taken in hand and deliberately and conscientiously
- drilled, or we couldn't ever venture to enter a dwelling;
- the very cats would know this masquerader for a hum-
- bug and no peasant. So I called a halt and said:
-
- "Sire, as between clothes and countenance, you are
- all right, there is no discrepancy; but as between your
- clothes and your bearing, you are all wrong, there is a
- most noticeable discrepancy. Your soldierly stride,
- your lordly port -- these will not do. You stand too
- straight, your looks are too high, too confident. The
- cares of a kingdom do not stoop the shoulders, they do
- not droop the chin, they do not depress the high level
- of the eye-glance, they do not put doubt and fear in
- the heart and hang out the signs of them in slouching
- body and unsure step. It is the sordid cares of the
- lowly born that do these things. You must learn the
- trick; you must imitate the trademarks of poverty,
- misery, oppression, insult, and the other several and
- common inhumanities that sap the manliness out of a
- man and make him a loyal and proper and approved
- subject and a satisfaction to his masters, or the very
- infants will know you for better than your disguise,
- and we shall go to pieces at the first hut we stop at.
- Pray try to walk like this."
-
- The king took careful note, and then tried an
- imitation.
-
- "Pretty fair -- pretty fair. Chin a little lower,
- please -- there, very good. Eyes too high; pray don't
- look at the horizon, look at the ground, ten steps in
- front of you. Ah -- that is better, that is very good.
- Wait, please; you betray too much vigor, too much
- decision; you want more of a shamble. Look at me,
- please -- this is what I mean......Now you are get-
- ting it; that is the idea -- at least, it sort of approaches
- it......Yes, that is pretty fair. BUT! There is a
- great big something wanting, I don't quite know what
- it is. Please walk thirty yards, so that I can get
- a perspective on the thing......Now, then -- your
- head's right, speed's right, shoulders right, eyes right,
- chin right, gait, carriage, general style right -- every-
- thing's right! And yet the fact remains, the aggre-
- gate's wrong. The account don't balance. Do it
- again, please......NOW I think I begin to see what it
- is. Yes, I've struck it. You see, the genuine spirit-
- lessness is wanting; that's what's the trouble. It's all
- AMATUEUR -- mechanical details all right, almost to a
- hair; everything about the delusion perfect, except
- that it don't delude."
-
- "What, then, must one do, to prevail?"
-
- "Let me think......I can't seem to quite get at it.
- In fact, there isn't anything that can right the matter
- but practice. This is a good place for it: roots and
- stony ground to break up your stately gait, a region
- not liable to interruption, only one field and one hut in
- sight, and they so far away that nobody could see us
- from there. It will be well to move a little off the
- road and put in the whole day drilling you, sire."
-
- After the drill had gone on a little while, I said:
-
- "Now, sire, imagine that we are at the door of the
- hut yonder, and the family are before us. Proceed,
- please -- accost the head of the house."
-
- The king unconsciously straightened up like a monu-
- ment, and said, with frozen austerity:
-
- "Varlet, bring a seat; and serve to me what cheer
- ye have."
-
- "Ah, your grace, that is not well done."
-
- "In what lacketh it?"
-
- "These people do not call EACH OTHER varlets."
-
- "Nay, is that true?"
-
- "Yes; only those above them call them so."
-
- "Then must I try again. I will call him villein."
-
- "No-no; for he may be a freeman."
-
- "Ah -- so. Then peradventure I should call him
- goodman."
-
- "That would answer, your grace, but it would be
- still better if you said friend, or brother."
-
- "Brother! -- to dirt like that?"
-
- "Ah, but WE are pretending to be dirt like that,
- too."
-
- "It is even true. I will say it. Brother, bring a
- seat, and thereto what cheer ye have, withal. Now
- 'tis right."
-
- "Not quite, not wholly right. You have asked for
- one, not US -- for one, not both; food for one, a seat
- for one."
-
- The king looked puzzled -- he wasn't a very heavy
- weight, intellectually. His head was an hour-glass; it
- could stow an idea, but it had to do it a grain at a
- time, not the whole idea at once.
-
- "Would YOU have a seat also -- and sit?"
-
- "If I did not sit, the man would perceive that we
- were only pretending to be equals -- and playing the
- deception pretty poorly, too."
-
- "It is well and truly said! How wonderful is truth,
- come it in whatsoever unexpected form it may! Yes,
- he must bring out seats and food for both, and in
- serving us present not ewer and napkin with more
- show of respect to the one than to the other."
-
- "And there is even yet a detail that needs correct-
- ing. He must bring nothing outside; we will go in --
- in among the dirt, and possibly other repulsive things,
- -- and take the food with the household, and after the
- fashion of the house, and all on equal terms, except the
- man be of the serf class; and finally, there will be no
- ewer and no napkin, whether he be serf or free. Please
- walk again, my liege. There -- it is better -- it is the
- best yet; but not perfect. The shoulders have known
- no ignobler burden than iron mail, and they will not
- stoop."
-
- "Give me, then, the bag. I will learn the spirit
- that goeth with burdens that have not honor. It is
- the spirit that stoopeth the shoulders, I ween, and not
- the weight; for armor is heavy, yet it is a proud
- burden, and a man standeth straight in it......Nay,
- but me no buts, offer me no objections. I will have
- the thing. Strap it upon my back."
-
- He was complete now with that knapsack on, and
- looked as little like a king as any man I had ever seen.
- But it was an obstinate pair of shoulders; they could
- not seem to learn the trick of stooping with any sort of
- deceptive naturalness. The drill went on, I prompting
- and correcting:
-
- "Now, make believe you are in debt, and eaten up
- by relentless creditors; you are out of work -- which
- is horse-shoeing, let us say -- and can get none; and
- your wife is sick, your children are crying because
- they are hungry --"
-
- And so on, and so on. I drilled him as represent-
- ing in turn all sorts of people out of luck and suffering
- dire privations and misfortunes. But lord, it was only
- just words, words -- they meant nothing in the world
- to him, I might just as well have whistled. Words
- realize nothing, vivify nothing to you, unless you have
- suffered in your own person the thing which the words
- try to describe. There are wise people who talk ever
- so knowingly and complacently about "the working
- classes," and satisfy themselves that a day's hard in-
- tellectual work is very much harder than a day's hard
- manual toil, and is righteously entitled to much bigger
- pay. Why, they really think that, you know, because
- they know all about the one, but haven't tried the
- other. But I know all about both; and so far as I am
- concerned, there isn't money enough in the universe
- to hire me to swing a pickaxe thirty days, but I will do
- the hardest kind of intellectual work for just as near
- nothing as you can cipher it down -- and I will be
- satisfied, too.
-
- Intellectual "work" is misnamed; it is a pleasure,
- a dissipation, and is its own highest reward. The
- poorest paid architect, engineer, general, author,
- sculptor, painter, lecturer, advocate, legislator, actor,
- preacher, singer is constructively in heaven when he is
- at work; and as for the musician with the fiddle-bow
- in his hand who sits in the midst of a great orchestra
- with the ebbing and flowing tides of divine sound
- washing over him -- why, certainly, he is at work, if
- you wish to call it that, but lord, it's a sarcasm just
- the same. The law of work does seem utterly unfair
- -- but there it is, and nothing can change it: the
- higher the pay in enjoyment the worker gets out of it,
- the higher shall be his pay in cash, also. And it's
- also the very law of those transparent swindles, trans-
- missible nobility and kingship.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX.
- THE SMALLPOX HUT
-
- WHEN we arrived at that hut at mid-afternoon, we
- saw no signs of life about it. The field near by
- had been denuded of its crop some time before, and
- had a skinned look, so exhaustively had it been har-
- vested and gleaned. Fences, sheds, everything had a
- ruined look, and were eloquent of poverty. No animal
- was around anywhere, no living thing in sight. The
- stillness was awful, it was like the stillness of death.
- The cabin was a one-story one, whose thatch was
- black with age, and ragged from lack of repair.
-
- The door stood a trifle ajar. We approached it
- stealthily -- on tiptoe and at half-breath -- for that is
- the way one's feeling makes him do, at such a time.
- The king knocked. We waited. No answer. Knocked
- again. No answer. I pushed the door softly open
- and looked in. I made out some dim forms, and a
- woman started up from the ground and stared at me,
- as one does who is wakened from sleep. Presently
- she found her voice:
-
- "Have mercy!" she pleaded. "All is taken,
- nothing is left."
-
- "I have not come to take anything, poor woman."
-
- "You are not a priest?"
-
- "No."
-
- "Nor come not from the lord of the manor?"
-
- "No, I am a stranger."
-
- "Oh, then, for the fear of God, who visits with
- misery and death such as be harmless, tarry not here,
- but fly! This place is under his curse -- and his
- Church's."
-
- "Let me come in and help you -- you are sick and
- in trouble."
-
- I was better used to the dim light now. I could see
- her hollow eyes fixed upon me. I could see how
- emaciated she was.
-
- "I tell you the place is under the Church's ban.
- Save yourself -- and go, before some straggler see thee
- here, and report it."
-
- "Give yourself no trouble about me; I don't care
- anything for the Church's curse. Let me help you."
-
- "Now all good spirits -- if there be any such --
- bless thee for that word. Would God I had a sup of
- water! -- but hold, hold, forget I said it, and fly; for
- there is that here that even he that feareth not the
- Church must fear: this disease whereof we die. Leave
- us, thou brave, good stranger, and take with thee such
- whole and sincere blessing as them that be accursed
- can give."
-
- But before this I had picked up a wooden bowl and
- was rushing past the king on my way to the brook.
- It was ten yards away. When I got back and entered,
- the king was within, and was opening the shutter that
- closed the window-hole, to let in air and light. The
- place was full of a foul stench. I put the bowl to the
- woman's lips, and as she gripped it with her eager
- talons the shutter came open and a strong light flooded
- her face. Smallpox!
-
- I sprang to the king, and said in his ear:
-
- "Out of the door on the instant, sire! the woman
- is dying of that disease that wasted the skirts of
- Camelot two years ago."
-
- He did not budge.
-
- "Of a truth I shall remain -- and likewise help."
-
- I whispered again:
-
- "King, it must not be. You must go."
-
- "Ye mean well, and ye speak not unwisely. But it
- were shame that a king should know fear, and shame
- that belted knight should withhold his hand where be
- such as need succor. Peace, I will not go. It is you
- who must go. The Church's ban is not upon me, but
- it forbiddeth you to be here, and she will deal with
- you with a heavy hand an word come to her of your
- trespass."
-
- It was a desperate place for him to be in, and might
- cost him his life, but it was no use to argue with him.
- If he considered his knightly honor at stake here, that
- was the end of argument; he would stay, and nothing
- could prevent it; I was aware of that. And so I
- dropped the subject. The woman spoke:
-
- "Fair sir, of your kindness will ye climb the ladder
- there, and bring me news of what ye find? Be not
- afraid to report, for times can come when even a
- mother's heart is past breaking -- being already broke."
-
- "Abide," said the king, "and give the woman to
- eat. I will go." And he put down the knapsack.
-
- I turned to start, but the king had already started.
- He halted, and looked down upon a man who lay in a
- dim light, and had not noticed us thus far, or spoken.
-
- "Is it your husband?" the king asked.
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Is he asleep?"
-
- "God be thanked for that one charity, yes -- these
- three hours. Where shall I pay to the full, my grati-
- tude! for my heart is bursting with it for that sleep he
- sleepeth now."
-
- I said:
-
- "We will be careful. We will not wake him."
-
- "Ah, no, that ye will not, for he is dead."
-
- "Dead?"
-
- "Yes, what triumph it is to know it! None can
- harm him, none insult him more. He is in heaven
- now, and happy; or if not there, he bides in hell and
- is content; for in that place he will find neither abbot
- nor yet bishop. We were boy and girl together; we
- were man and wife these five and twenty years, and
- never separated till this day. Think how long that is
- to love and suffer together. This morning was he out
- of his mind, and in his fancy we were boy and girl
- again and wandering in the happy fields; and so in
- that innocent glad converse wandered he far and
- farther, still lightly gossiping, and entered into those
- other fields we know not of, and was shut away from
- mortal sight. And so there was no parting, for in his
- fancy I went with him; he knew not but I went with
- him, my hand in his -- my young soft hand, not this
- withered claw. Ah, yes, to go, and know it not; to
- separate and know it not; how could one go peace --
- fuller than that? It was his reward for a cruel life
- patiently borne."
-
- There was a slight noise from the direction of the
- dim corner where the ladder was. It was the king
- descending. I could see that he was bearing some-
- thing in one arm, and assisting himself with the other.
- He came forward into the light; upon his breast lay a
- slender girl of fifteen. She was but half conscious;
- she was dying of smallpox. Here was heroism at its
- last and loftiest possibility, its utmost summit; this
- was challenging death in the open field unarmed, with
- all the odds against the challenger, no reward set upon
- the contest, and no admiring world in silks and cloth
- of gold to gaze and applaud; and yet the king's bear-
- ing was as serenely brave as it had always been in those
- cheaper contests where knight meets knight in equal
- fight and clothed in protecting steel. He was great
- now; sublimely great. The rude statues of his ances-
- tors in his palace should have an addition -- I would
- see to that; and it would not be a mailed king killing
- a giant or a dragon, like the rest, it would be a king
- in commoner's garb bearing death in his arms that a
- peasant mother might look her last upon her child and
- be comforted.
-
- He laid the girl down by her mother, who poured
- out endearments and caresses from an overflowing
- heart, and one could detect a flickering faint light of
- response in the child's eyes, but that was all. The
- mother hung over her, kissing her, petting her, and
- imploring her to speak, but the lips only moved and
- no sound came. I snatched my liquor flask from my
- knapsack, but the woman forbade me, and said:
-
- "No -- she does not suffer; it is better so. It
- might bring her back to life. None that be so good
- and kind as ye are would do her that cruel hurt. For
- look you -- what is left to live for? Her brothers are
- gone, her father is gone, her mother goeth, the
- Church's curse is upon her, and none may shelter or
- befriend her even though she lay perishing in the road.
- She is desolate. I have not asked you, good heart, if
- her sister be still on live, here overhead; I had no
- need; ye had gone back, else, and not left the poor
- thing forsaken --"
-
- "She lieth at peace," interrupted the king, in a
- subdued voice.
-
- "I would not change it. How rich is this day in
- happiness! Ah, my Annis, thou shalt join thy sister
- soon -- thou'rt on thy way, and these be merciful
- friends that will not hinder."
-
- And so she fell to murmuring and cooing over the
- girl again, and softly stroking her face and hair, and
- kissing her and calling her by endearing names; but
- there was scarcely sign of response now in the glazing
- eyes. I saw tears well from the king's eyes, and
- trickle down his face. The woman noticed them, too,
- and said:
-
- "Ah, I know that sign: thou'st a wife at home,
- poor soul, and you and she have gone hungry to bed,
- many's the time, that the little ones might have your
- crust; you know what poverty is, and the daily insults
- of your betters, and the heavy hand of the Church and
- the king."
-
- The king winced under this accidental home-shot,
- but kept still; he was learning his part; and he was
- playing it well, too, for a pretty dull beginner. I
- struck up a diversion. I offered the woman food and
- liquor, but she refused both. She would allow noth-
- ing to come between her and the release of death.
- Then I slipped away and brought the dead child from
- aloft, and laid it by her. This broke her down again,
- and there was another scene that was full of heart-
- break. By and by I made another diversion, and
- beguiled her to sketch her story.
-
- "Ye know it well yourselves, having suffered it --
- for truly none of our condition in Britain escape it.
- It is the old, weary tale. We fought and struggled
- and succeeded; meaning by success, that we lived and
- did not die; more than that is not to be claimed. No
- troubles came that we could not outlive, till this year
- brought them; then came they all at once, as one
- might say, and overwhelmed us. Years ago the lord
- of the manor planted certain fruit trees on our farm;
- in the best part of it, too -- a grievous wrong and
- shame --"
-
- "But it was his right," interrupted the king.
-
- "None denieth that, indeed; an the law mean any-
- thing, what is the lord's is his, and what is mine is his
- also. Our farm was ours by lease, therefore 'twas
- likewise his, to do with it as he would. Some little
- time ago, three of those trees were found hewn down.
- Our three grown sons ran frightened to report the
- crime. Well, in his lordship's dungeon there they lie,
- who saith there shall they lie and rot till they confess.
- They have naught to confess, being innocent, where-
- fore there will they remain until they die. Ye know
- that right well, I ween. Think how this left us; a
- man, a woman and two children, to gather a crop that
- was planted by so much greater force, yes, and pro-
- tect it night and day from pigeons and prowling
- animals that be sacred and must not be hurt by any
- of our sort. When my lord's crop was nearly ready
- for the harvest, so also was ours; when his bell rang
- to call us to his fields to harvest his crop for nothing,
- he would not allow that I and my two girls should
- count for our three captive sons, but for only two of
- them; so, for the lacking one were we daily fined.
- All this time our own crop was perishing through neg-
- lect; and so both the priest and his lordship fined us
- because their shares of it were suffering through
- damage. In the end the fines ate up our crop -- and
- they took it all; they took it all and made us harvest
- it for them, without pay or food, and we starving.
- Then the worst came when I, being out of my mind
- with hunger and loss of my boys, and grief to see my
- husband and my little maids in rags and misery and
- despair, uttered a deep blasphemy -- oh! a thousand
- of them! -- against the Church and the Church's ways.
- It was ten days ago. I had fallen sick with this dis-
- ease, and it was to the priest I said the words, for he
- was come to chide me for lack of due humility under
- the chastening hand of God. He carried my trespass
- to his betters; I was stubborn; wherefore, presently
- upon my head and upon all heads that were dear to
- me, fell the curse of Rome.
-
- "Since that day we are avoided, shunned with horror.
- None has come near this hut to know whether we live
- or not. The rest of us were taken down. Then I
- roused me and got up, as wife and mother will. It
- was little they could have eaten in any case; it was
- less than little they had to eat. But there was water,
- and I gave them that. How they craved it! and how
- they blessed it! But the end came yesterday; my
- strength broke down. Yesterday was the last time I
- ever saw my husband and this youngest child alive. I
- have lain here all these hours -- these ages, ye may
- say -- listening, listening for any sound up there
- that --"
-
- She gave a sharp quick glance at her eldest daughter,
- then cried out, "Oh, my darling!" and feebly gath-
- ered the stiffening form to her sheltering arms. She
- had recognized the death-rattle.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXX.
- THE TRAGEDY OF THE MANOR-HOUSE
-
- AT midnight all was over, and we sat in the presence
- of four corpses. We covered them with such
- rags as we could find, and started away, fastening the
- door behind us. Their home must be these people's
- grave, for they could not have Christian burial, or be
- admitted to consecrated ground. They were as dogs,
- wild beasts, lepers, and no soul that valued its hope of
- eternal life would throw it away by meddling in any
- sort with these rebuked and smitten outcasts.
-
- We had not moved four steps when I caught a sound
- as of footsteps upon gravel. My heart flew to my
- throat. We must not be seen coming from that house.
- I plucked at the king's robe and we drew back and
- took shelter behind the corner of the cabin.
-
- "Now we are safe," I said, "but it was a close
- call -- so to speak. If the night had been lighter he
- might have seen us, no doubt, he seemed to be so
- near."
-
- "Mayhap it is but a beast and not a man at all."
-
- "True. But man or beast, it will be wise to stay
- here a minute and let it get by and out of the way."
-
- "Hark! It cometh hither."
-
- True again. The step was coming toward us --
- straight toward the hut. It must be a beast, then, and
- we might as well have saved our trepidation. I was
- going to step out, but the king laid his hand upon my
- arm. There was a moment of silence, then we heard
- a soft knock on the cabin door. It made me shiver.
- Presently the knock was repeated, and then we heard
- these words in a guarded voice:
-
- "Mother! Father! Open -- we have got free, and
- we bring news to pale your cheeks but glad your
- hearts; and we may not tarry, but must fly! And --
- but they answer not. Mother! father! --"
-
- I drew the king toward the other end of the hut and
- whispered:
-
- "Come -- now we can get to the road."
-
- The king hesitated, was going to demur; but just
- then we heard the door give way, and knew that those
- desolate men were in the presence of their dead.
-
- "Come, my liege! in a moment they will strike a
- light, and then will follow that which it would break
- your heart to hear."
-
- He did not hesitate this time. The moment we were
- in the road I ran; and after a moment he threw dig-
- nity aside and followed. I did not want to think of
- what was happening in the hut -- I couldn't bear it; I
- wanted to drive it out of my mind; so I struck into
- the first subject that lay under that one in my mind:
-
- "I have had the disease those people died of, and
- so have nothing to fear; but if you have not had it
- also --"
-
- He broke in upon me to say he was in trouble, and
- it was his conscience that was troubling him:
-
- "These young men have got free, they say -- but
- HOW? It is not likely that their lord hath set them
- free."
-
- "Oh, no, I make no doubt they escaped."
-
- "That is my trouble; I have a fear that this is so,
- and your suspicion doth confirm it, you having the
- same fear.
-
- "I should not call it by that name though. I do
- suspect that they escaped, but if they did, I am not
- sorry, certainly."
-
- "I am not sorry, I THINK -- but --"
-
- "What is it? What is there for one to be troubled
- about?"
-
- "IF they did escape, then are we bound in duty to
- lay hands upon them and deliver them again to their
- lord; for it is not seemly that one of his quality should
- suffer a so insolent and high-handed outrage from
- persons of their base degree."
-
- There it was again. He could see only one side of
- it. He was born so, educated so, his veins were full
- of ancestral blood that was rotten with this sort of
- unconscious brutality, brought down by inheritance
- from a long procession of hearts that had each done
- its share toward poisoning the stream. To imprison
- these men without proof, and starve their kindred, was
- no harm, for they were merely peasants and subject to
- the will and pleasure of their lord, no matter what
- fearful form it might take; but for these men to break
- out of unjust captivity was insult and outrage, and a
- thing not to be countenanced by any conscientious
- person who knew his duty to his sacred caste.
-
- I worked more than half an hour before I got him to
- change the subject -- and even then an outside matter
- did it for me. This was a something which caught our
- eyes as we struck the summit of a small hill -- a red
- glow, a good way off.
-
- "That's a fire," said I.
-
- Fires interested me considerably, because I was get-
- ting a good deal of an insurance business started, and
- was also training some horses and building some steam
- fire-engines, with an eye to a paid fire department by
- and by. The priests opposed both my fire and life in-
- surance, on the ground that it was an insolent attempt
- to hinder the decrees of God; and if you pointed out
- that they did not hinder the decrees in the least, but
- only modified the hard consequences of them if you
- took out policies and had luck, they retorted that that
- was gambling against the decrees of God, and was
- just as bad. So they managed to damage those in-
- dustries more or less, but I got even on my Accident
- business. As a rule, a knight is a lummox, and some
- times even a labrick, and hence open to pretty poor
- arguments when they come glibly from a supersti-
- tion-monger, but even HE could see the practical side
- of a thing once in a while; and so of late you couldn't
- clean up a tournament and pile the result without finding
- one of my accident-tickets in every helmet.
-
- We stood there awhile, in the thick darkness and
- stillness, looking toward the red blur in the distance,
- and trying to make out the meaning of a far-away
- murmur that rose and fell fitfully on the night. Some-
- times it swelled up and for a moment seemed less
- remote; but when we were hopefully expecting it to
- betray its cause and nature, it dulled and sank again,
- carrying its mystery with it. We started down the hill
- in its direction, and the winding road plunged us at
- once into almost solid darkness -- darkness that was
- packed and crammed in between two tall forest walls.
- We groped along down for half a mile, perhaps, that
- murmur growing more and more distinct all the time.
- the coming storm threatening more and more, with
- now and then a little shiver of wind, a faint show of
- lightning, and dull grumblings of distant thunder. I
- was in the lead. I ran against something -- a soft
- heavy something which gave, slightly, to the impulse
- of my weight; at the same moment the lightning glared
- out, and within a foot of my face was the writhing face
- of a man who was hanging from the limb of a tree!
- That is, it seemed to be writhing, but it was not. It
- was a grewsome sight. Straightway there was an ear-
- splitting explosion of thunder, and the bottom of
- heaven fell out; the rain poured down in a deluge.
- No matter, we must try to cut this man down, on the
- chance that there might be life in him yet, mustn't
- we? The lightning came quick and sharp now, and
- the place was alternately noonday and midnight. One
- moment the man would be hanging before me in an
- intense light, and the next he was blotted out again in
- the darkness. I told the king we must cut him down.
- The king at once objected.
-
- "If he hanged himself, he was willing to lose him
- property to his lord; so let him be. If others hanged
- him, belike they had the right -- let him hang."
-
- "But --"
-
- "But me no buts, but even leave him as he is. And
- for yet another reason. When the lightning cometh
- again -- there, look abroad."
-
- Two others hanging, within fifty yards of us!
-
- "It is not weather meet for doing useless courtesies
- unto dead folk. They are past thanking you. Come
- -- it is unprofitable to tarry here."
-
- There was reason in what he said, so we moved on.
- Within the next mile we counted six more hanging
- forms by the blaze of the lightning, and altogether it
- was a grisly excursion. That murmur was a murmur
- no longer, it was a roar; a roar of men's voices. A
- man came flying by now, dimly through the darkness,
- and other men chasing him. They disappeared. Pres-
- ently another case of the kind occurred, and then an-
- other and another. Then a sudden turn of the road
- brought us in sight of that fire -- it was a large manor-
- house, and little or nothing was left of it -- and every-
- where men were flying and other men raging after
- them in pursuit.
-
- I warned the king that this was not a safe place for
- strangers. We would better get away from the light,
- until matters should improve. We stepped back a
- little, and hid in the edge of the wood. From this
- hiding-place we saw both men and women hunted by
- the mob. The fearful work went on until nearly dawn.
- Then, the fire being out and the storm spent, the voices
- and flying footsteps presently ceased, and darkness and
- stillness reigned again.
-
- We ventured out, and hurried cautiously away; and
- although we were worn out and sleepy, we kept on
- until we had put this place some miles behind us.
- Then we asked hospitality at the hut of a charcoal
- burner, and got what was to be had. A woman was
- up and about, but the man was still asleep, on a straw
- shake-down, on the clay floor. The woman seemed
- uneasy until I explained that we were travelers and had
- lost our way and been wandering in the woods all
- night. She became talkative, then, and asked if we
- had heard of the terrible goings-on at the manor-house
- of Abblasoure. Yes, we had heard of them, but what
- we wanted now was rest and sleep. The king broke in:
-
- "Sell us the house and take yourselves away, for
- we be perilous company, being late come from people
- that died of the Spotted Death."
-
- It was good of him, but unnecessary. One of the
- commonest decorations of the nation was the waffle-
- iron face. I had early noticed that the woman and her
- husband were both so decorated. She made us entirely
- welcome, and had no fears; and plainly she was im-
- mensely impressed by the king's proposition; for, of
- course, it was a good deal of an event in her life to
- run across a person of the king's humble appearance
- who was ready to buy a man's house for the sake of a
- night's lodging. It gave her a large respect for us,
- and she strained the lean possibilities of her hovel to
- the utmost to make us comfortable.
-
- We slept till far into the afternoon, and then got up
- hungry enough to make cotter fare quite palatable to
- the king, the more particularly as it was scant in quan-
- tity. And also in variety; it consisted solely of onions,
- salt, and the national black breadQmade out of horse-
- feed. The woman told us about the affair of the even-
- ing before. At ten or eleven at night, when everybody
- was in bed, the manor-house burst into flames. The
- country-side swarmed to the rescue, and the family
- were saved, with one exception, the master. He did
- not appear. Everybody was frantic over this loss, and
- two brave yeomen sacrificed their lives in ransacking
- the burning house seeking that valuable personage.
- But after a while he was found -- what was left of
- him -- which was his corpse. It was in a copse three
- hundred yards away, bound, gagged, stabbed in a
- dozen places.
-
- Who had done this? Suspicion fell upon a humble
- family in the neighborhood who had been lately treated
- with peculiar harshness by the baron; and from these
- people the suspicion easily extended itself to their
- relatives and familiars. A suspicion was enough; my
- lord's liveried retainers proclaimed an instant crusade
- against these people, and were promptly joined by the
- community in general. The woman's husband had
- been active with the mob, and had not returned home
- until nearly dawn. He was gone now to find out
- what the general result had been. While we were still
- talking he came back from his quest. His report was
- revolting enough. Eighteen persons hanged or butch-
- ered, and two yeomen and thirteen prisoners lost in
- the fire.
-
- "And how many prisoners were there altogether in
- the vaults?"
-
- "Thirteen."
-
- "Then every one of them was lost?"
-
- "Yes, all."
-
- "But the people arrived in time to save the family;
- how is it they could save none of the prisoners?"
-
- The man looked puzzled, and said:
-
- "Would one unlock the vaults at such a time?
- Marry, some would have escaped."
-
- "Then you mean that nobody DID unlock them?"
-
- "None went near them, either to lock or unlock.
- It standeth to reason that the bolts were fast; where-
- fore it was only needful to establish a watch, so that if
- any broke the bonds he might not escape, but be
- taken. None were taken."
-
- "Natheless, three did escape," said the king, "and
- ye will do well to publish it and set justice upon their
- track, for these murthered the baron and fired the
- house."
-
- I was just expecting he would come out with that.
- For a moment the man and his wife showed an eager
- interest in this news and an impatience to go out and
- spread it; then a sudden something else betrayed itself
- in their faces, and they began to ask questions. I
- answered the questions myself, and narrowly watched
- the effects produced. I was soon satisfied that the
- knowledge of who these three prisoners were had some-
- how changed the atmosphere; that our hosts' con-
- tinued eagerness to go and spread the news was now
- only pretended and not real. The king did not notice
- the change, and I was glad of that. I worked the
- conversation around toward other details of the night's
- proceedings, and noted that these people were relieved
- to have it take that direction.
-
- The painful thing observable about all this business
- was the alacrity with which this oppressed community
- had turned their cruel hands against their own class in
- the interest of the common oppressor. This man and
- woman seemed to feel that in a quarrel between a
- person of their own class and his lord, it was the
- natural and proper and rightful thing for that poor
- devil's whole caste to side with the master and fight
- his battle for him, without ever stopping to inquire
- into the rights or wrongs of the matter. This man
- had been out helping to hang his neighbors, and had
- done his work with zeal, and yet was aware that there
- was nothing against them but a mere suspicion, with
- nothing back of it describable as evidence, still neither
- he nor his wife seemed to see anything horrible about it.
-
- This was depressing -- to a man with the dream of a
- republic in his head. It reminded me of a time thirteen
- centuries away, when the "poor whites" of our South
- who were always despised and frequently insulted by
- the slave-lords around them, and who owed their base
- condition simply to the presence of slavery in their
- midst, were yet pusillanimously ready to side with the
- slave-lords in all political moves for the upholding and
- perpetuating of slavery, and did also finally shoulder
- their muskets and pour out their lives in an effort to
- prevent the destruction of that very institution which
- degraded them. And there was only one redeeming
- feature connected with that pitiful piece of history;
- and that was, that secretly the "poor white" did de-
- test the slave-lord, and did feel his own shame. That
- feeling was not brought to the surface, but the fact
- that it was there and could have been brought out, under
- favoring circumstances, was something -- in fact, it
- was enough; for it showed that a man is at bottom a
- man, after all, even if it doesn't show on the outside.
-
- Well, as it turned out, this charcoal burner was just
- the twin of the Southern "poor white" of the far
- future. The king presently showed impatience, and
- said:
-
- "An ye prattle here all the day, justice will mis-
- carry. Think ye the criminals will abide in their
- father's house? They are fleeing, they are not wait-
- ing. You should look to it that a party of horse be
- set upon their track."
-
- The woman paled slightly, but quite perceptibly,
- and the man looked flustered and irresolute. I said:
-
- "Come, friend, I will walk a little way with you,
- and explain which direction I think they would try to
- take. If they were merely resisters of the gabelle or
- some kindred absurdity I would try to protect them
- from capture; but when men murder a person of high
- degree and likewise burn his house, that is another
- matter."
-
- The last remark was for the king -- to quiet him.
- On the road the man pulled his resolution together,
- and began the march with a steady gait, but there was
- no eagerness in it. By and by I said:
-
- "What relation were these men to you -- cousins?"
-
- He turned as white as his layer of charcoal would let
- him, and stopped, trembling.
-
- "Ah, my God, how know ye that?"
-
- "I didn't know it; it was a chance guess."
-
- "Poor lads, they are lost. And good lads they
- were, too."
-
- "Were you actually going yonder to tell on them?"
-
- He didn't quite know how to take that; but he said,
- hesitatingly:
-
- "Ye-s."
-
- "Then I think you are a damned scoundrel!"
-
- It made him as glad as if I had called him an angel.
-
- "Say the good words again, brother! for surely ye
- mean that ye would not betray me an I failed of my
- duty."
-
- "Duty? There is no duty in the matter, except the
- duty to keep still and let those men get away. They've
- done a righteous deed."
-
- He looked pleased; pleased, and touched with ap-
- prehension at the same time. He looked up and down
- the road to see that no one was coming, and then said
- in a cautious voice:
-
- "From what land come you, brother, that you speak
- such perilous words, and seem not to be afraid?"
-
- "They are not perilous words when spoken to one
- of my own caste, I take it. You would not tell any-
- body I said them?"
-
- "I? I would be drawn asunder by wild horses
- first."
-
- "Well, then, let me say my say. I have no fears
- of your repeating it. I think devil's work has been
- done last night upon those innocent poor people.
- That old baron got only what he deserved. If I had
- my way. all his kind should have the same luck."
-
- Fear and depression vanished from the man's manner,
- and gratefulness and a brave animation took their
- place:
-
- "Even though you be a spy, and your words a trap
- for my undoing, yet are they such refreshment that to
- hear them again and others like to them, I would go to
- the gallows happy, as having had one good feast at
- least in a starved life. And I will say my say now,
- and ye may report it if ye be so minded. I helped to
- hang my neighbors for that it were peril to my own
- life to show lack of zeal in the master's cause; the
- others helped for none other reason. All rejoice to-
- day that he is dead, but all do go about seemingly
- sorrowing, and shedding the hypocrite's tear, for in
- that lies safety. I have said the words, I have said the
- words! the only ones that have ever tasted good in
- my mouth, and the reward of that taste is sufficient.
- Lead on, an ye will, be it even to the scaffold, for I
- am ready."
-
- There it was, you see. A man is a man, at bottom.
- Whole ages of abuse and oppression cannot crush the
- manhood clear out of him. Whoever thinks it a mis-
- take is himself mistaken. Yes, there is plenty good
- enough material for a republic in the most degraded
- people that ever existed -- even the Russians; plenty
- of manhood in them -- even in the Germans -- if one
- could but force it out of its timid and suspicious
- privacy, to overthrow and trample in the mud any
- throne that ever was set up and any nobility that ever
- supported it. We should see certain things yet, let us
- hope and believe. First, a modified monarchy, till
- Arthur's days were done, then the destruction of the
- throne, nobility abolished, every member of it bound
- out to some useful trade, universal suffrage instituted,
- and the whole government placed in the hands of the
- men and women of the nation there to remain. Yes,
- there was no occasion to give up my dream yet a while.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXI.
- MARCO
-
- WE strolled along in a sufficiently indolent fashion
- now, and talked. We must dispose of about
- the amount of time it ought to take to go to the little
- hamlet of Abblasoure and put justice on the track of
- those murderers and get back home again. And mean-
- time I had an auxiliary interest which had never paled
- yet, never lost its novelty for me since I had been in
- Arthur's kingdom: the behavior -- born of nice and
- exact subdivisions of caste -- of chance passers-by
- toward each other. Toward the shaven monk who
- trudged along with his cowl tilted back and the sweat
- washing down his fat jowls, the coal-burner was deeply
- reverent; to the gentleman he was abject; with the
- small farmer and the free mechanic he was cordial and
- gossipy; and when a slave passed by with a counte-
- nance respectfully lowered, this chap's nose was in the
- air -- he couldn't even see him. Well, there are times
- when one would like to hang the whole human race
- and finish the farce.
-
- Presently we struck an incident. A small mob of
- half-naked boys and girls came tearing out of the
- woods, scared and shrieking. The eldest among them
- were not more than twelve or fourteen years old.
- They implored help, but they were so beside them-
- selves that we couldn't make out what the matter was.
- However, we plunged into the wood, they skurrying in
- the lead, and the trouble was quickly revealed: they
- had hanged a little fellow with a bark rope, and he was
- kicking and struggling, in the process of choking to
- death. We rescued him, and fetched him around. It
- was some more human nature; the admiring little folk
- imitating their elders; they were playing mob, and
- had achieved a success which promised to be a good
- deal more serious than they had bargained for.
-
- It was not a dull excursion for me. I managed to
- put in the time very well. I made various acquaintance-
- ships, and in my quality of stranger was able to ask as
- many questions as I wanted to. A thing which natur-
- ally interested me, as a statesman, was the matter of
- wages. I picked up what I could under that head
- during the afternoon. A man who hasn't had much
- experience, and doesn't think, is apt to measure a
- nation's prosperity or lack of prosperity by the mere
- size of the prevailing wages; if the wages be high, the
- nation is prosperous; if low, it isn't. Which is an
- error. It isn't what sum you get, it's how much you
- can buy with it, that's the important thing; and it's
- that that tells whether your wages are high in fact or
- only high in name. I could remember how it was in
- the time of our great civil war in the nineteenth cen-
- tury. In the North a carpenter got three dollars a
- day, gold valuation; in the South he got fifty -- pay-
- able in Confederate shinplasters worth a dollar a
- bushel. In the North a suit of overalls cost three
- dollars -- a day's wages; in the South it cost seventy-
- five -- which was two days' wages. Other things were
- in proportion. Consequently, wages were twice as
- high in the North as they were in the South, because
- the one wage had that much more purchasing power
- than the other had.
-
- Yes, I made various acquaintances in the hamlet
- and a thing that gratified me a good deal was to find
- our new coins in circulation -- lots of milrays, lots of
- mills, lots of cents, a good many nickels, and some
- silver; all this among the artisans and commonalty
- generally; yes, and even some gold -- but that was at
- the bank, that is to say, the goldsmith's. I dropped
- in there while Marco, the son of Marco, was haggling
- with a shopkeeper over a quarter of a pound of salt,
- and asked for change for a twenty-dollar gold piece.
- They furnished it -- that is, after they had chewed the
- piece, and rung it on the counter, and tried acid on it,
- and asked me where I got it, and who I was, and
- where I was from, and where I was going to, and
- when I expected to get there, and perhaps a couple of
- hundred more questions; and when they got aground,
- I went right on and furnished them a lot of informa-
- tion voluntarily; told them I owned a dog, and his
- name was Watch, and my first wife was a Free Will
- Baptist, and her grandfather was a Prohibitionist, and
- I used to know a man who had two thumbs on each
- hand and a wart on the inside of his upper lip, and
- died in the hope of a glorious resurrection, and so on,
- and so on, and so on, till even that hungry village
- questioner began to look satisfied, and also a shade
- put out; but he had to respect a man of my financial
- strength, and so he didn't give me any lip, but I
- noticed he took it out of his underlings, which was a
- perfectly natural thing to do. Yes, they changed my
- twenty, but I judged it strained the bank a little, which
- was a thing to be expected, for it was the same as
- walking into a paltry village store in the nineteenth
- century and requiring the boss of it to change a two
- thousand-dollar bill for you all of a sudden. He could
- do it, maybe; but at the same time he would wonder
- how a small farmer happened to be carrying so much
- money around in his pocket; which was probably this
- goldsmith's thought, too; for he followed me to
- the door and stood there gazing after me with reverent
- admiration.
-
- Our new money was not only handsomely circulating,
- but its language was already glibly in use; that is to
- say, people had dropped the names of the former
- moneys, and spoke of things as being worth so many
- dollars or cents or mills or milrays now. It was very
- gratifying. We were progressing, that was sure.
-
- I got to know several master mechanics, but about
- the most interesting fellow among them was the black-
- smith, Dowley. He was a live man and a brisk talker,
- and had two journeymen and three apprentices, and was
- doing a raging business. In fact, he was getting rich,
- hand over fist, and was vastly respected. Marco was
- very proud of having such a man for a friend. He
- had taken me there ostensibly to let me see the big
- establishment which bought so much of his charcoal,
- but really to let me see what easy and almost familiar
- terms he was on with this great man. Dowley and I
- fraternized at once; I had had just such picked men,
- splendid fellows, under me in the Colt Arms Factory.
- I was bound to see more of him, so I invited him to
- come out to Marco's Sunday, and dine with us.
- Marco was appalled, and held his breath; and when
- the grandee accepted, he was so grateful that he almost
- forgot to be astonished at the condescension.
-
- Marco's joy was exuberant -- but only for a mo-
- ment; then he grew thoughtful, then sad; and when
- he heard me tell Dowley I should have Dickon, the
- boss mason, and Smug, the boss wheelwright, out
- there, too, the coal-dust on his face turned to chalk,
- and he lost his grip. But I knew what was the matter
- with him; it was the expense. He saw ruin before
- him; he judged that his financial days were numbered.
- However, on our way to invite the others, I said:
-
- "You must allow me to have these friends come;
- and you must also allow me to pay the costs."
-
- His face cleared, and he said with spirit:
-
- "But not all of it, not all of it. Ye cannot well
- bear a burden like to this alone."
-
- I stopped him, and said:
-
- "Now let's understand each other on the spot, old
- friend. I am only a farm bailiff, it is true; but I am
- not poor, nevertheless. I have been very fortunate
- this year -- you would be astonished to know how I
- have thriven. I tell you the honest truth when I say
- I could squander away as many as a dozen feasts like
- this and never care THAT for the expense!" and I
- snapped my fingers. I could see myself rise a foot at
- a time in Marco's estimation, and when I fetched out
- those last words I was become a very tower for style
- and altitude. "So you see, you must let me have my
- way. You can't contribute a cent to this orgy, that's
- SETTLED."
-
- "It's grand and good of you --"
-
- "No, it isn't. You've opened your house to Jones
- and me in the most generous way; Jones was remark-
- ing upon it to-day, just before you came back from
- the village; for although he wouldn't be likely to say
- such a thing to you -- because Jones isn't a talker, and
- is diffident in society -- he has a good heart and a
- grateful, and knows how to appreciate it when he is
- well treated; yes, you and your wife have been very
- hospitable toward us --"
-
- "Ah, brother, 'tis nothing -- SUCH hospitality!"
-
- "But it IS something; the best a man has, freely
- given, is always something, and is as good as a prince
- can do, and ranks right along beside it -- for even a
- prince can but do his best. And so we'll shop around
- and get up this layout now, and don't you worry about
- the expense. I'm one of the worst spendthrifts that ever
- was born. Why, do you know, sometimes in a single
- week I spend -- but never mind about that -- you'd
- never believe it anyway."
-
- And so we went gadding along, dropping in here
- and there, pricing things, and gossiping with the shop-
- keepers about the riot, and now and then running
- across pathetic reminders of it, in the persons of
- shunned and tearful and houseless remnants of families
- whose homes had been taken from them and their
- parents butchered or hanged. The raiment of Marco
- and his wife was of coarse tow-linen and linsey-woolsey
- respectively, and resembled township maps, it being
- made up pretty exclusively of patches which had been
- added, township by township, in the course of five or
- six years, until hardly a hand's-breadth of the original
- garments was surviving and present. Now I wanted
- to fit these people out with new suits, on account of
- that swell company, and I didn't know just how to get
- at it -- with delicacy, until at last it struck me that as I
- had already been liberal in inventing wordy gratitude
- for the king, it would be just the thing to back it up
- with evidence of a substantial sort; so I said:
-
- "And Marco, there's another thing which you must
- permit -- out of kindness for Jones -- because you
- wouldn't want to offend him. He was very anxious
- to testify his appreciation in some way, but he is so
- diffident he couldn't venture it himself, and so he
- begged me to buy some little things and give them to
- you and Dame Phyllis and let him pay for them with-
- out your ever knowing they came from him -- you
- know how a delicate person feels about that sort of
- thing -- and so I said I would, and we would keep
- mum. Well, his idea was, a new outfit of clothes for
- you both --"
-
- "Oh, it is wastefulness! It may not be, brother, it
- may not be. Consider the vastness of the sum --"
-
- "Hang the vastness of the sum! Try to keep quiet
- for a moment, and see how it would seem; a body
- can't get in a word edgeways, you talk so much. You
- ought to cure that, Marco; it isn't good form, you
- know, and it will grow on you if you don't check it.
- Yes, we'll step in here now and price this man's stuff
- -- and don't forget to remember to not let on to Jones
- that you know he had anything to do with it. You
- can't think how curiously sensitive and proud he is.
- He's a farmer -- pretty fairly well-to-do farmer -- an
- I'm his bailiff; BUT -- the imagination of that man!
- Why, sometimes when he forgets himself and gets to
- blowing off, you'd think he was one of the swells of
- the earth; and you might listen to him a hundred
- years and never take him for a farmer -- especially if
- he talked agriculture. He THINKS he's a Sheol of a
- farmer; thinks he's old Grayback from Wayback; but
- between you and me privately he don't know as much
- about farming as he does about running a kingdom --
- still, whatever he talks about, you want to drop your
- underjaw and listen, the same as if you had never
- heard such incredible wisdom in all your life before,
- and were afraid you might die before you got enough
- of it. That will please Jones."
-
- It tickled Marco to the marrow to hear about such
- an odd character; but it also prepared him for acci-
- dents; and in my experience when you travel with a
- king who is letting on to be something else and can't
- remember it more than about half the time, you can't
- take too many precautions.
-
- This was the best store we had come across yet; it
- had everything in it, in small quantities, from anvils
- and drygoods all the way down to fish and pinchbeck
- jewelry. I concluded I would bunch my whole invoice
- right here, and not go pricing around any more. So
- I got rid of Marco, by sending him off to invite the
- mason and the wheelwright, which left the field free to
- me. For I never care to do a thing in a quiet way;
- it's got to be theatrical or I don't take any interest in
- it. I showed up money enough, in a careless way, to
- corral the shopkeeper's respect, and then I wrote down
- a list of the things I wanted, and handed it to him to
- see if he could read it. He could, and was proud to
- show that he could. He said he had been educated by
- a priest, and could both read and write. He ran it
- through, and remarked with satisfaction that it was a
- pretty heavy bill. Well, and so it was, for a little
- concern like that. I was not only providing a swell
- dinner, but some odds and ends of extras. I ordered
- that the things be carted out and delivered at the
- dwelling of Marco, the son of Marco, by Saturday
- evening, and send me the bill at dinner-time Sunday.
- He said I could depend upon his promptness and exacti-
- tude, it was the rule of the house. He also observed
- that he would throw in a couple of miller-guns for the
- Marcos gratis -- that everybody was using them now.
- He had a mighty opinion of that clever device. I said:
-
- "And please fill them up to the middle mark, too;
- and add that to the bill."
-
- He would, with pleasure. He filled them, and I
- took them with me. I couldn't venture to tell him
- that the miller-gun was a little invention of my own,
- and that I had officially ordered that every shopkeeper
- in the kingdom keep them on hand and sell them at
- government price -- which was the merest trifle, and
- the shopkeeper got that, not the government. We
- furnished them for nothing.
-
- The king had hardly missed us when we got back at
- nightfall. He had early dropped again into his dream
- of a grand invasion of Gaul with the whole strength of
- his kingdom at his back, and the afternoon had slipped
- away without his ever coming to himself again.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXII.
- DOWLEY'S HUMILIATION
-
- WELL, when that cargo arrived toward sunset, Sat-
- urday afternoon, I had my hands full to keep
- the Marcos from fainting. They were sure Jones and
- I were ruined past help, and they blamed themselves
- as accessories to this bankruptcy. You see, in addi-
- tion to the dinner-materials, which called for a suffi-
- ciently round sum, I had bought a lot of extras for the
- future comfort of the family: for instance, a big lot of
- wheat, a delicacy as rare to the tables of their class as
- was ice-cream to a hermit's; also a sizeable deal
- dinner-table; also two entire pounds of salt, which
- was another piece of extravagance in those people's
- eyes; also crockery, stools, the clothes, a small cask
- of beer, and so on. I instructed the Marcos to keep
- quiet about this sumptuousness, so as to give me a
- chance to surprise the guests and show off a little.
- Concerning the new clothes, the simple couple were
- like children; they were up and down, all night, to
- see if it wasn't nearly daylight, so that they could put
- them on, and they were into them at last as much as
- an hour before dawn was due. Then their pleasure --
- not to say delirium -- was so fresh and novel and in-
- spiring that the sight of it paid me well for the inter-
- ruptions which my sleep had suffered. The king had
- slept just as usual -- like the dead. The Marcos could
- not thank him for their clothes, that being forbidden;
- but they tried every way they could think of to make
- him see how grateful they were. Which all went for
- nothing: he didn't notice any change.
-
- It turned out to be one of those rich and rare fall
- days which is just a June day toned down to a degree
- where it is heaven to be out of doors. Toward noon
- the guests arrived, and we assembled under a great tree
- and were soon as sociable as old acquaintances. Even
- the king's reserve melted a little, though it was some
- little trouble to him to adjust himself to the name of
- Jones along at first. I had asked him to try to not
- forget that he was a farmer; but I had also considered
- it prudent to ask him to let the thing stand at that,
- and not elaborate it any. Because he was just the
- kind of person you could depend on to spoil a little
- thing like that if you didn't warn him, his tongue was
- so handy, and his spirit so willing, and his information
- so uncertain.
-
- Dowley was in fine feather, and I early got him
- started, and then adroitly worked him around onto his
- own history for a text and himself for a hero, and then
- it was good to sit there and hear him hum. Self-made
- man, you know. They know how to talk. They do
- deserve more credit than any other breed of men, yes,
- that is true; and they are among the very first to find
- it out, too. He told how he had begun life an orphan
- lad without money and without friends able to help
- him; how he had lived as the slaves of the meanest
- master lived; how his day's work was from sixteen to
- eighteen hours long, and yielded him only enough
- black bread to keep him in a half-fed condition; how
- his faithful endeavors finally attracted the attention of
- a good blacksmith, who came near knocking him dead
- with kindness by suddenly offering, when he was totally
- unprepared, to take him as his bound apprentice for
- nine years and give him board and clothes and teach
- him the trade -- or "mystery" as Dowley called it.
- That was his first great rise, his first gorgeous stroke
- of fortune; and you saw that he couldn't yet speak of
- it without a sort of eloquent wonder and delight that
- such a gilded promotion should have fallen to the lot
- of a common human being. He got no new clothing
- during his apprenticeship, but on his graduation day
- his master tricked him out in spang-new tow-linens
- and made him feel unspeakably rich and fine.
-
- "I remember me of that day!" the wheelwright
- sang out, with enthusiasm.
-
- "And I likewise!" cried the mason. "I would not
- believe they were thine own; in faith I could not."
-
- "Nor other!" shouted Dowley, with sparkling eyes.
- "I was like to lose my character, the neighbors wend-
- ing I had mayhap been stealing. It was a great day,
- a great day; one forgetteth not days like that."
-
- Yes, and his master was a fine man, and prosperous,
- and always had a great feast of meat twice in the year,
- and with it white bread, true wheaten bread; in fact,
- lived like a lord, so to speak. And in time Dowley
- succeeded to the business and married the daughter.
-
- "And now consider what is come to pass," said
- he, impressively. "Two times in every month there
- is fresh meat upon my table." He made a pause
- here, to let that fact sink home, then added -- "and
- eight times salt meat."
-
- "It is even true," said the wheelwright, with bated
- breath.
-
- "I know it of mine own knowledge," said the mason,
- in the same reverent fashion.
-
- "On my table appeareth white bread every Sunday
- in the year," added the master smith, with solemnity.
- "I leave it to your own consciences, friends, if this is
- not also true?"
-
- "By my head, yes," cried the mason.
-
- "I can testify it -- and I do," said the wheelwright.
-
- "And as to furniture, ye shall say yourselves what
- mine equipment is. " He waved his hand in fine
- gesture of granting frank and unhampered freedom
- of speech, and added: "Speak as ye are moved;
- speak as ye would speak; an I were not here."
-
- "Ye have five stools, and of the sweetest workman-
- ship at that, albeit your family is but three," said the
- wheelwright, with deep respect.
-
- "And six wooden goblets, and six platters of wood
- and two of pewter to cat and drink from withal," said
- the mason, impressively. "And I say it as knowing
- God is my judge, and we tarry not here alway, but
- must answer at the last day for the things said in the
- body, be they false or be they sooth."
-
- "Now ye know what manner of man I am, brother
- Jones," said the smith, with a fine and friendly conde-
- scension, "and doubtless ye would look to find me a
- man jealous of his due of respect and but sparing of
- outgo to strangers till their rating and quality be
- assured, but trouble yourself not, as concerning that;
- wit ye well ye shall find me a man that regardeth not
- these matters but is willing to receive any he as his
- fellow and equal that carrieth a right heart in his body,
- be his worldly estate howsoever modest. And in token
- of it, here is my hand; and I say with my own mouth
- we are equals -- equals "-- and he smiled around on
- the company with the satisfaction of a god who is
- doing the handsome and gracious thing and is quite
- well aware of it.
-
- The king took the hand with a poorly disguised
- reluctance, and let go of it as willingly as a lady lets
- go of a fish; all of which had a good effect, for it was
- mistaken for an embarrassment natural to one who was
- being called upon by greatness.
-
- The dame brought out the table now, and set it
- under the tree. It caused a visible stir of surprise, it
- being brand new and a sumptuous article of deal. But
- the surprise rose higher still when the dame, with a
- body oozing easy indifference at every pore, but eyes
- that gave it all away by absolutely flaming with vanity,
- slowly unfolded an actual simon-pure tablecloth and
- spread it. That was a notch above even the black-
- smith's domestic grandeurs, and it hit him hard; you
- could see it. But Marco was in Paradise; you could
- see that, too. Then the dame brought two fine new
- stools -- whew! that was a sensation; it was visible in
- the eyes of every guest. Then she brought two more
- -- as calmly as she could. Sensation again -- with
- awed murmurs. Again she brought two -- walking on
- air, she was so proud. The guests were petrified, and
- the mason muttered:
-
- "There is that about earthly pomps which doth
- ever move to reverence."
-
- As the dame turned away, Marco couldn't help
- slapping on the climax while the thing was hot; so he
- said with what was meant for a languid composure but
- was a poor imitation of it:
-
- "These suffice; leave the rest."
-
- So there were more yet! It was a fine effect. I
- couldn't have played the hand better myself.
-
- From this out, the madam piled up the surprises
- with a rush that fired the general astonishment up to a
- hundred and fifty in the shade, and at the same time
- paralyzed expression of it down to gasped "Oh's"
- and "Ah's," and mute upliftings of hands and eyes.
- She fetched crockery -- new, and plenty of it; new
- wooden goblets and other table furniture; and beer,
- fish, chicken, a goose, eggs, roast beef, roast mutton,
- a ham, a small roast pig, and a wealth of genuine white
- wheaten bread. Take it by and large, that spread laid
- everything far and away in the shade that ever that
- crowd had seen before. And while they sat there just
- simply stupefied with wonder and awe, I sort of waved
- my hand as if by accident, and the storekeeper's son
- emerged from space and said he had come to collect.
-
- "That's all right," I said, indifferently. "What is
- the amount? give us the items."
-
- Then he read off this bill, while those three amazed
- men listened, and serene waves of satisfaction rolled
- over my soul and alternate waves of terror and admira-
- tion surged over Marco's:
-
- 2 pounds salt . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 200
- 8 dozen pints beer, in the wood . . . . . 800
- 3 bushels wheat . . . . . . . . . . . . . 2,700
- 2 pounds fish . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 100
- 3 hens . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 400
- 1 goose . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 400
- 3 dozen eggs . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 150
- 1 roast of beef . . . . . . . . . . . . . 450
- 1 roast of mutton . . . . . . . . . . . . 400
- 1 ham . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 800
- 1 sucking pig . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 500
- 2 crockery dinner sets . . . . . . . . . 6,000
- 2 men's suits and underwear . . . . . . . 2,800
- 1 stuff and 1 linsey-woolsey gown
- and underwear . . . . . . . . . . . . . 1,600
- 8 wooden goblets . . . . . . . . . . . . 800
- Various table furniture . . . . . . . . .10,000
- 1 deal table . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 3,000
- 8 stools . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . . 4,000
- 2 miller guns, loaded . . . . . . . . . . 3,000
-
- He ceased. There was a pale and awful silence.
- Not a limb stirred. Not a nostril betrayed the passage
- of breath.
-
- "Is that all?" I asked, in a voice of the most per-
- fect calmness.
-
- "All, fair sir, save that certain matters of light mo-
- ment are placed together under a head hight sundries.
- If it would like you, I will sepa --"
-
- "It is of no consequence," I said, accompanying
- the words with a gesture of the most utter indifference;
- "give me the grand total, please."
-
- The clerk leaned against the tree to stay himself, and
- said:
-
- "Thirty-nine thousand one hundred and fifty mil-
- rays!"
-
- The wheelwright fell off his stool, the others grabbed
- the table to save themselves, and there was a deep and
- general ejaculation of:
-
- "God be with us in the day of disaster!"
-
- The clerk hastened to say:
-
- "My father chargeth me to say he cannot honorably
- require you to pay it all at this time, and therefore
- only prayeth you --"
-
- I paid no more heed than if it were the idle breeze,
- but, with an air of indifference amounting almost to
- weariness, got out my money and tossed four dollars
- on to the table. Ah, you should have seen them stare!
-
- The clerk was astonished and charmed. He asked
- me to retain one of the dollars as security, until he
- could go to town and -- I interrupted:
-
- "What, and fetch back nine cents? Nonsense!
- Take the whole. Keep the change."
-
- There was an amazed murmur to this effect:
-
- "Verily this being is MADE of money! He throweth
- it away even as if it were dirt."
-
- The blacksmith was a crushed man.
-
- The clerk took his money and reeled away drunk
- with fortune. I said to Marco and his wife:
-
- "Good folk, here is a little trifle for you" -- hand-
- ing the miller-guns as if it were a matter of no conse-
- quence, though each of them contained fifteen cents in
- solid cash; and while the poor creatures went to pieces
- with astonishment and gratitude, I turned to the others
- and said as calmly as one would ask the time of day:
-
- "Well, if we are all ready, I judge the dinner is.
- Come, fall to."
-
- Ah, well, it was immense; yes, it was a daisy. I
- don't know that I ever put a situation together better,
- or got happier spectacular effects out of the materials
- available. The blacksmith -- well, he was simply
- mashed. Land! I wouldn't have felt what that man
- was feeling, for anything in the world. Here he had
- been blowing and bragging about his grand meat-feast
- twice a year, and his fresh meat twice a month, and
- his salt meat twice a week, and his white bread every
- Sunday the year round -- all for a family of three; the
- entire cost for the year not above 69.2.6 (sixty-nine
- cents, two mills and six milrays), and all of a sudden
- here comes along a man who slashes out nearly four
- dollars on a single blow-out; and not only that, but
- acts as if it made him tired to handle such small sums.
- Yes, Dowley was a good deal wilted, and shrunk-up
- and collapsed; he had the aspect of a bladder-balloon
- that's been stepped on by a cow.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIII.
- SIXTH CENTURY POLITICAL ECONOMY
-
- HOWEVER, I made a dead set at him, and before
- the first third of the dinner was reached, I had
- him happy again. It was easy to do -- in a country
- of ranks and castes. You see, in a country where
- they have ranks and castes, a man isn't ever a man,
- he is only part of a man, he can't ever get his full
- growth. You prove your superiority over him in
- station, or rank, or fortune, and that's the end of it --
- he knuckles down. You can't insult him after that.
- No, I don't mean quite that; of course you CAN insult
- him, I only mean it's difficult; and so, unless you've
- got a lot of useless time on your hands it doesn't pay
- to try. I had the smith's reverence now, because I
- was apparently immensely prosperous and rich; I
- could have had his adoration if I had had some
- little gimcrack title of nobility. And not only his, but
- any commoner's in the land, though he were the
- mightiest production of all the ages, in intellect, worth,
- and character, and I bankrupt in all three. This was
- to remain so, as long as England should exist in the
- earth. With the spirit of prophecy upon me, I could
- look into the future and see her erect statues and
- monuments to her unspeakable Georges and other
- royal and noble clothes-horses, and leave unhonored
- the creators of this world -- after God -- Gutenburg,
- Watt, Arkwright, Whitney, Morse, Stephenson, Bell.
-
- The king got his cargo aboard, and then, the talk
- not turning upon battle, conquest, or iron-clad duel,
- he dulled down to drowsiness and went off to take a
- nap. Mrs. Marco cleared the table, placed the beer
- keg handy, and went away to eat her dinner of leavings
- in humble privacy, and the rest of us soon drifted into
- matters near and dear to the hearts of our sort -- busi-
- ness and wages, of course. At a first glance, things
- appeared to be exceeding prosperous in this little
- tributary kingdom -- whose lord was King Bagdemagus
- -- as compared with the state of things in my own
- region. They had the "protection" system in full
- force here, whereas we were working along down
- toward free-trade, by easy stages, and were now about
- half way. Before long, Dowley and I were doing all
- the talking, the others hungrily listening. Dowley
- warmed to his work, snuffed an advantage in the air,
- and began to put questions which he considered pretty
- awkward ones for me, and they did have something of
- that look:
-
- "In your country, brother, what is the wage of a
- master bailiff, master hind, carter, shepherd, swine-
- herd?"
-
- "Twenty-five milrays a day; that is to say, a quarter
- of a cent.
-
- The smith's face beamed with joy. He said:
-
- "With us they are allowed the double of it! And
- what may a mechanic get -- carpenter, dauber, mason,
- painter, blacksmith, wheelwright, and the like?"
-
- "On the average, fifty milrays; half a cent a day."
-
- "Ho-ho! With us they are allowed a hundred!
- With us any good mechanic is allowed a cent a day!
- I count out the tailor, but not the others -- they are
- all allowed a cent a day, and in driving times they get
- more -- yes, up to a hundred and ten and even fifteen
- milrays a day. I've paid a hundred and fifteen my-
- self, within the week. 'Rah for protection -- to Sheol
- with free-trade!"
-
- And his face shone upon the company like a sun-
- burst. But I didn't scare at all. I rigged up my
- pile-driver, and allowed myself fifteen minutes to drive
- him into the earth -- drive him ALL in -- drive him in
- till not even the curve of his skull should show above
- ground. Here is the way I started in on him. I asked:
-
- "What do you pay a pound for salt?"
-
- "A hundred milrays."
-
- "We pay forty. What do you pay for beef and
- mutton -- when you buy it?" That was a neat hit; it
- made the color come.
-
- "It varieth somewhat, but not much; one may say
- 75 milrays the pound."
-
- "WE pay 33. What do you pay for eggs?"
-
- "Fifty milrays the dozen."
-
- "We pay 20. What do you pay for beer?"
-
- "It costeth us 8 1/2 milrays the pint."
-
- "We get it for 4; 25 bottles for a cent. What do
- you pay for wheat?"
-
- "At the rate of 900 milrays the bushel."
-
- "We pay 400. What do you pay for a man's tow-
- linen suit?"
-
- "Thirteen cents."
-
- "We pay 6. What do you pay for a stuff gown
- for the wife of the laborer or the mechanic?"
-
- "We pay 8.4.0."
-
- "Well, observe the difference: you pay eight cents
- and four mills, we pay only four cents." I prepared
- now to sock it to him. l said: "Look here, dear
- friend, WHAT'S BECOME OF YOUR HIGH WAGES YOU WERE
- BRAGGING SO ABOUT A FEW MINUTES AGO?" -- and I looked
- around on the company with placid satisfaction, for I
- had slipped up on him gradually and tied him hand
- and foot, you see, without his ever noticing that he
- was being tied at all. "What's become of those noble
- high wages of yours? -- I seem to have knocked the
- stuffing all out of them, it appears to me."
-
- But if you will believe me, he merely looked sur-
- prised, that is all! he didn't grasp the situation at all,
- didn't know he had walked into a trap, didn't discover
- that he was IN a trap. I could have shot him, from
- sheer vexation. With cloudy eye and a struggling in-
- tellect he fetched this out:
-
- "Marry, I seem not to understand. It is PROVED
- that our wages be double thine; how then may it be
- that thou'st knocked therefrom the stuffing? -- an
- miscall not the wonderly word, this being the first time
- under grace and providence of God it hath been
- granted me to hear it."
-
- Well, I was stunned; partly with this unlooked-for
- stupidity on his part, and partly because his fellows so
- manifestly sided with him and were of his mind -- if
- you might call it mind. My position was simple
- enough, plain enough; how could it ever be simplified
- more? However, I must try:
-
- "Why, look here, brother Dowley, don't you see?
- Your wages are merely higher than ours in NAME, not
- in FACT."
-
- "Hear him! They are the DOUBLE -- ye have con-
- fessed it yourself."
-
- "Yes-yes, I don't deny that at all. But that's got
- nothing to do with it; the AMOUNT of the wages in
- mere coins, with meaningless names attached to them
- to know them by, has got nothing to do with it. The
- thing is, how much can you BUY with your wages? --
- that's the idea. While it is true that with you a good
- mechanic is allowed about three dollars and a half a year,
- and with us only about a dollar and seventy-five --"
-
- "There -- ye're confessing it again, ye're confess-
- ing it again!"
-
- "Confound it, I've never denied it, I tell you!
- What I say is this. With us HALF a dollar buys more
- than a DOLLAR buys with you -- and THEREFORE it stands
- to reason and the commonest kind of common-sense,
- that our wages are HIGHER than yours."
-
- He looked dazed, and said, despairingly:
-
- "Verily, I cannot make it out. Ye've just said ours
- are the higher, and with the same breath ye take it
- back."
-
- "Oh, great Scott, isn't it possible to get such a
- simple thing through your head? Now look here --
- let me illustrate. We pay four cents for a woman's
- stuff gown, you pay 8.4.0, which is four mills more
- than DOUBLE. What do you allow a laboring woman
- who works on a farm?"
-
- "Two mills a day."
-
- "Very good; we allow but half as much; we pay
- her only a tenth of a cent a day; and --"
-
- "Again ye're conf --"
-
- "Wait! Now, you see, the thing is very simple;
- this time you'll understand it. For instance, it takes
- your woman 42 days to earn her gown, at 2 mills a
- day -- 7 weeks' work; but ours earns hers in forty
- days -- two days SHORT of 7 weeks. Your woman has
- a gown, and her whole seven weeks wages are gone;
- ours has a gown, and two days' wages left, to buy
- something else with. There -- NOW you understand
- it!"
-
- He looked -- well, he merely looked dubious, it's
- the most I can say; so did the others. I waited -- to
- let the thing work. Dowley spoke at last -- and be-
- trayed the fact that he actually hadn't gotten away
- from his rooted and grounded superstitions yet. He
- said, with a trifle of hesitancy:
-
- "But -- but -- ye cannot fail to grant that two mills
- a day is better than one."
-
- Shucks! Well, of course, I hated to give it up. So
- I chanced another flyer:
-
- "Let us suppose a case. Suppose one of your jour-
- neymen goes out and buys the following articles:
-
- "1 pound of salt;
- 1 dozen eggs;
- 1 dozen pints of beer;
- 1 bushel of wheat;
- 1 tow-linen suit;
- 5 pounds of beef;
- 5 pounds of mutton.
-
- "The lot will cost him 32 cents. It takes him 32
- working days to earn the money -- 5 weeks and 2
- days. Let him come to us and work 32 days at HALF
- the wages; he can buy all those things for a shade
- under 14 1/2 cents; they will cost him a shade under 29
- days' work, and he will have about half a week's
- wages over. Carry it through the year; he would
- save nearly a week's wages every two months, YOUR
- man nothing; thus saving five or six weeks' wages in
- a year, your man not a cent. NOW I reckon you
- understand that 'high wages' and 'low wages' are
- phrases that don't mean anything in the world until
- you find out which of them will BUY the most!"
-
- It was a crusher.
-
- But, alas! it didn't crush. No, I had to give it up.
- What those people valued was HIGH WAGES; it didn't
- seem to be a matter of any consequence to them
- whether the high wages would buy anything or not.
- They stood for "protection," and swore by it, which
- was reasonable enough, because interested parties had
- gulled them into the notion that it was protection which
- had created their high wages. I proved to them that
- in a quarter of a century their wages had advanced but
- 30 per cent., while the cost of living had gone up 100;
- and that with us, in a shorter time, wages had ad-
- vanced 40 per cent. while the cost of living had gone
- steadily down. But it didn't do any good. Nothing
- could unseat their strange beliefs.
-
- Well, I was smarting under a sense of defeat. Un-
- deserved defeat, but what of that? That didn't soften
- the smart any. And to think of the circumstances!
- the first statesman of the age, the capablest man, the
- best-informed man in the entire world, the loftiest un-
- crowned head that had moved through the clouds of
- any political firmament for centuries, sitting here ap-
- parently defeated in argument by an ignorant country
- blacksmith! And I could see that those others were
- sorry for me -- which made me blush till I could smell
- my whiskers scorching. Put yourself in my place;
- feel as mean as I did, as ashamed as I felt -- wouldn't
- YOU have struck below the belt to get even? Yes, you
- would; it is simply human nature. Well, that is what
- I did. I am not trying to justify it; I'm only saying
- that I was mad, and ANYBODY would have done it.
-
- Well, when I make up my mind to hit a man, I
- don't plan out a love-tap; no, that isn't my way; as
- long as I'm going to hit him at all, I'm going to hit
- him a lifter. And I don't jump at him all of a sudden,
- and risk making a blundering half-way business of it;
- no, I get away off yonder to one side, and work up on
- him gradually, so that he never suspects that I'm going
- to hit him at all; and by and by, all in a flash, he's
- flat on his back, and he can't tell for the life of him
- how it all happened. That is the way I went for
- brother Dowley. I started to talking lazy and com-
- fortable, as if I was just talking to pass the time; and
- the oldest man in the world couldn't have taken the
- bearings of my starting place and guessed where I was
- going to fetch up:
-
- "Boys, there's a good many curious things about
- law, and custom, and usage, and all that sort of thing,
- when you come to look at it; yes, and about the drift
- and progress of human opinion and movement, too.
- There are written laws -- they perish; but there are
- also unwritten laws -- THEY are eternal. Take the un-
- written law of wages: it says they've got to advance,
- little by little, straight through the centuries. And
- notice how it works. We know what wages are now,
- here and there and yonder; we strike an average, and say
- that's the wages of to-day. We know what the wages
- were a hundred years ago, and what they were two
- hundred years ago; that's as far back as we can get,
- but it suffices to give us the law of progress, the
- measure and rate of the periodical augmentation; and
- so, without a document to help us, we can come pretty
- close to determining what the wages were three and
- four and five hundred years ago. Good, so far. Do
- we stop there? No. We stop looking backward; we
- face around and apply the law to the future. My
- friends, I can tell you what people's wages are going
- to be at any date in the future you want to know, for
- hundreds and hundreds of years."
-
- "What, goodman, what!"
-
- "Yes. In seven hundred years wages will have
- risen to six times what they are now, here in your
- region, and farm hands will be allowed 3 cents a day,
- and mechanics 6."
-
- "I would't I might die now and live then!" inter-
- rupted Smug, the wheelwright, with a fine avaricious
- glow in his eye.
-
- "And that isn't all; they'll get their board besides --
- such as it is: it won't bloat them. Two hundred and
- fifty years later -- pay attention now -- a mechanic's
- wages will be -- mind you, this is law, not guesswork;
- a mechanic's wages will then be TWENTY cents a day!"
-
- There was a general gasp of awed astonishment,
- Dickon the mason murmured, with raised eyes and
- hands:
-
- "More than three weeks' pay for one day's work!"
-
- "Riches! -- of a truth, yes, riches!" muttered
- Marco, his breath coming quick and short, with ex-
- citement.
-
- "Wages will keep on rising, little by little, little by
- little, as steadily as a tree grows, and at the end of
- three hundred and forty years more there'll be at least
- ONE country where the mechanic's average wage will be
- TWO HUNDRED cents a day!"
-
- It knocked them absolutely dumb! Not a man of
- them could get his breath for upwards of two minutes.
- Then the coal-burner said prayerfully:
-
- "Might I but live to see it!"
-
- "It is the income of an earl!" said Smug.
-
- "An earl, say ye?" said Dowley; "ye could say
- more than that and speak no lie; there's no earl in the
- realm of Bagdemagus that hath an income like to
- that. Income of an earl -- mf! it's the income of an
- angel!"
-
- "Now, then, that is what is going to happen as re-
- gards wages. In that remote day, that man will earn,
- with ONE week's work, that bill of goods which it takes
- you upwards of FIFTY weeks to earn now. Some other
- pretty surprising things are going to happen, too.
- Brother Dowley, who is it that determines, every
- spring, what the particular wage of each kind of
- mechanic, laborer, and servant shall be for that year?"
-
- "Sometimes the courts, sometimes the town coun-
- cil; but most of all, the magistrate. Ye may say, in
- general terms, it is the magistrate that fixes the wages."
-
- "Doesn't ask any of those poor devils to HELP him
- fix their wages for them, does he?"
-
- "Hm! That WERE an idea! The master that's to
- pay him the money is the one that's rightly concerned
- in that matter, ye will notice "
-
- "Yes -- but I thought the other man might have
- some little trifle at stake in it, too; and even his wife
- and children, poor creatures. The masters are these:
- nobles, rich men, the prosperous generally. These
- few, who do no work, determine what pay the vast
- hive shall have who DO work. You see? They're a
- 'combine' -- a trade union, to coin a new phrase --
- who band themselves together to force their lowly
- brother to take what they choose to give. Thirteen
- hundred years hence -- so says the unwritten law -- the
- 'combine' will be the other way, and then how these
- fine people's posterity will fume and fret and grit their
- teeth over the insolent tyranny of trade unions! Yes,
- indeed! the magistrate will tranquilly arrange the
- wages from now clear away down into the nineteenth
- century; and then all of a sudden the wage-earner will
- consider that a couple of thousand years or so is
- enough of this one-sided sort of thing; and he will
- rise up and take a hand in fixing his wages himself.
- Ah, he will have a long and bitter account of wrong
- and humiliation to settle."
-
- "Do ye believe -- "
-
- "That he actually will help to fix his own wages?
- Yes, indeed. And he will be strong and able, then."
-
- "Brave times, brave times, of a truth!" sneered
- the prosperous smith.
-
- "Oh, -- and there's another detail. In that day, a
- master may hire a man for only just one day, or one
- week, or one month at a time, if he wants to."
-
- "What?"
-
- "It's true. Moreover, a magistrate won't be able
- to force a man to work for a master a whole year on a
- stretch whether the man wants to or not."
-
- "Will there be NO law or sense in that day?"
-
- "Both of them, Dowley. In that day a man will
- be his own property, not the property of magistrate
- and master. And he can leave town whenever he
- wants to, if the wages don't suit him! -- and they
- can't put him in the pillory for it."
-
- "Perdition catch such an age!" shouted Dowley,
- in strong indignation. "An age of dogs, an age barren
- of reverence for superiors and respect for authority!
- The pillory --"
-
- "Oh, wait, brother; say no good word for that in-
- stitution. I think the pillory ought to be abolished."
-
- "A most strange idea. Why?"
-
- "Well, I'll tell you why. Is a man ever put in the
- pillory for a capital crime?"
-
- "No."
-
- "Is it right to condemn a man to a slight punish-
- ment for a small offense and then kill him?"
-
- There was no answer. I had scored my first point!
- For the first time, the smith wasn't up and ready.
- The company noticed it. Good effect.
-
- "You don't answer, brother. You were about to
- glorify the pillory a while ago, and shed some pity on
- a future age that isn't going to use it. I think the
- pillory ought to be abolished. What usually happens
- when a poor fellow is put in the pillory for some little
- offense that didn't amount to anything in the world?
- The mob try to have some fun with him, don't they?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "They begin by clodding him; and they laugh
- themselves to pieces to see him try to dodge one clod
- and get hit with another?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Then they throw dead cats at him, don't they?"
-
- "Yes."
-
- "Well, then, suppose he has a few personal enemies
- in that mob and here and there a man or a woman
- with a secret grudge against him -- and suppose
- especially that he is unpopular in the community, for
- his pride, or his prosperity, or one thing or another --
- stones and bricks take the place of clods and cats
- presently, don't they?"
-
- "There is no doubt of it."
-
- "As a rule he is crippled for life, isn't he? -- jaws
- broken, teeth smashed out? -- or legs mutilated, gan-
- grened, presently cut off? -- or an eye knocked out,
- maybe both eyes?"
-
- "It is true, God knoweth it."
-
- "And if he is unpopular he can depend on DYING,
- right there in the stocks, can't he?"
-
- "He surely can! One may not deny it."
-
- "I take it none of YOU are unpopular -- by reason
- of pride or insolence, or conspicuous prosperity, or
- any of those things that excite envy and malice among
- the base scum of a village? YOU wouldn't think it
- much of a risk to take a chance in the stocks?"
-
- Dowley winced, visibly. I judged he was hit. But
- he didn't betray it by any spoken word. As for the
- others, they spoke out plainly, and with strong feeling.
- They said they had seen enough of the stocks to know
- what a man's chance in them was, and they would
- never consent to enter them if they could compromise
- on a quick death by hanging.
-
- "Well, to change the subject -- for I think I've
- established my point that the stocks ought to be abol-
- ished. I think some of our laws are pretty unfair.
- For instance, if I do a thing which ought to deliver
- me to the stocks, and you know I did it and yet keep
- still and don't report me, YOU will get the stocks if
- anybody informs on you."
-
- "Ah, but that would serve you but right," said
- Dowley, "for you MUST inform. So saith the law."
-
- The others coincided.
-
- "Well, all right, let it go, since you vote me down.
- But there's one thing which certainly isn't fair. The
- magistrate fixes a mechanic's wage at 1 cent a day,
- for instance. The law says that if any master shall
- venture, even under utmost press of business, to pay
- anything OVER that cent a day, even for a single day,
- he shall be both fined and pilloried for it; and who-
- ever knows he did it and doesn't inform, they also shall
- be fined and pilloried. Now it seems to me unfair,
- Dowley, and a deadly peril to all of us, that because
- you thoughtlessly confessed, a while ago, that within a
- week you have paid a cent and fifteen mil --"
-
- Oh, I tell YOU it was a smasher! You ought to have
- seen them to go to pieces, the whole gang. I had just
- slipped up on poor smiling and complacent Dowley so
- nice and easy and softly, that he never suspected any-
- thing was going to happen till the blow came crashing
- down and knocked him all to rags.
-
- A fine effect. In fact, as fine as any I ever pro-
- duced, with so little time to work it up in.
-
- But I saw in a moment that I had overdone the
- thing a little. I was expecting to scare them, but I
- wasn't expecting to scare them to death. They were
- mighty near it, though. You see they had been a
- whole lifetime learning to appreciate the pillory; and
- to have that thing staring them in the face, and every
- one of them distinctly at the mercy of me, a stranger,
- if I chose to go and report -- well, it was awful, and
- they couldn't seem to recover from the shock, they
- couldn't seem to pull themselves together. Pale,
- shaky, dumb, pitiful? Why, they weren't any better
- than so many dead men. It was very uncomfortable.
- Of course, I thought they would appeal to me to keep
- mum, and then we would shake hands, and take a
- drink all round, and laugh it off, and there an end.
- But no; you see I was an unknown person, among a
- cruelly oppressed and suspicious people, a people
- always accustomed to having advantage taken of their
- helplessness, and never expecting just or kind treat-
- ment from any but their own families and very closest
- intimates. Appeal to ME to be gentle, to be fair, to
- be generous? Of course, they wanted to, but they
- couldn't dare.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIV.
- THE YANKEE AND THE KING SOLD AS SLAVES
-
- WELL, what had I better do? Nothing in a hurry,
- sure. I must get up a diversion; anything to
- employ me while I could think, and while these poor
- fellows could have a chance to come to life again.
- There sat Marco, petrified in the act of trying to get
- the hang of his miller-gun -- turned to stone, just in
- the attitude he was in when my pile-driver fell, the toy
- still gripped in his unconscious fingers. So I took it
- from him and proposed to explain its mystery.
- Mystery! a simple little thing like that; and yet it
- was mysterious enough, for that race and that age.
-
- I never saw such an awkward people, with machin-
- ery; you see, they were totally unused to it. The
- miller-gun was a little double-barreled tube of tough-
- ened glass, with a neat little trick of a spring to it,
- which upon pressure would let a shot escape. But the
- shot wouldn't hurt anybody, it would only drop into
- your hand. In the gun were two sizes -- wee mustard-
- seed shot, and another sort that were several times
- larger. They were money. The mustard-seed shot
- represented milrays, the larger ones mills. So the
- gun was a purse; and very handy, too; you could
- pay out money in the dark with it, with accuracy; and
- you could carry it in your mouth; or in your vest
- pocket, if you had one. I made them of several sizes
- -- one size so large that it would carry the equivalent
- of a dollar. Using shot for money was a good thing
- for the government; the metal cost nothing, and the
- money couldn't be counterfeited, for I was the only
- person in the kingdom who knew how to manage a
- shot tower. "Paying the shot" soon came to be a
- common phrase. Yes, and I knew it would still be
- passing men's lips, away down in the nineteenth cen-
- tury, yet none would suspect how and when it origi-
- nated.
-
- The king joined us, about this time, mightily re-
- freshed by his nap, and feeling good. Anything could
- make me nervous now, I was so uneasy -- for our lives
- were in danger; and so it worried me to detect a com-
- placent something in the king's eye which seemed to
- indicate that he had been loading himself up for a
- performance of some kind or other; confound it, why
- must he go and choose such a time as this?
-
- I was right. He began, straight off, in the most
- innocently artful, and transparent, and lubberly way,
- to lead up to the subject of agriculture. The cold
- sweat broke out all over me. I wanted to whisper in
- his ear, "Man, we are in awful danger! every moment
- is worth a principality till we get back these men's
- confidence; DON'T waste any of this golden time."
- But of course I couldn't do it. Whisper to him? It
- would look as if we were conspiring. So I had to sit
- there and look calm and pleasant while the king stood
- over that dynamite mine and mooned along about his
- damned onions and things. At first the tumult of my
- own thoughts, summoned by the danger-signal and
- swarming to the rescue from every quarter of my
- skull, kept up such a hurrah and confusion and fifing
- and drumming that I couldn't take in a word; but
- presently when my mob of gathering plans began to
- crystallize and fall into position and form line of battle,
- a sort of order and quiet ensued and I caught the boom
- of the king's batteries, as if out of remote distance:
-
- "-- were not the best way, methinks, albeit it is not
- to be denied that authorities differ as concerning this
- point, some contending that the onion is but an un-
- wholesome berry when stricken early from the tree --"
-
- The audience showed signs of life, and sought each
- other's eyes in a surprised and troubled way.
-
- "-- whileas others do yet maintain, with much show
- of reason, that this is not of necessity the case, instanc-
- ing that plums and other like cereals do be always dug
- in the unripe state --"
-
- The audience exhibited distinct distress; yes, and
- also fear.
-
- "-- yet are they clearly wholesome, the more espe-
- cially when one doth assuage the asperities of their
- nature by admixture of the tranquilizing juice of the
- wayward cabbage --"
-
- The wild light of terror began to glow in these men's
- eyes, and one of them muttered, "These be errors,
- every one -- God hath surely smitten the mind of this
- farmer." I was in miserable apprehension; I sat upon
- thorns.
-
- "-- and further instancing the known truth that in
- the case of animals, the young, which may be called
- the green fruit of the creature, is the better, all con-
- fessing that when a goat is ripe, his fur doth heat and
- sore engame his flesh, the which defect, taken in con-
- nection with his several rancid habits, and fulsome
- appetites, and godless attitudes of mind, and bilious
- quality of morals --"
-
- They rose and went for him! With a fierce shout,
- "The one would betray us, the other is mad! Kill
- them! Kill them!" they flung themselves upon us.
- What joy flamed up in the king's eye! He might be
- lame in agriculture, but this kind of thing was just in
- his line. He had been fasting long, he was hungry
- for a fight. He hit the blacksmith a crack under the
- jaw that lifted him clear off his feet and stretched him
- flat on his back. "St. George for Britain!" and he
- downed the wheelwright. The mason was big, but I
- laid him out like nothing. The three gathered them-
- selves up and came again; went down again; came
- again; and kept on repeating this, with native British
- pluck, until they were battered to jelly, reeling with
- exhaustion, and so blind that they couldn't tell us
- from each other; and yet they kept right on, hammer-
- ing away with what might was left in them. Ham-
- mering each other -- for we stepped aside and looked
- on while they rolled, and struggled, and gouged, and
- pounded, and bit, with the strict and wordless attention
- to business of so many bulldogs. We looked on with-
- out apprehension, for they were fast getting past
- ability to go for help against us, and the arena was
- far enough from the public road to be safe from
- intrusion.
-
- Well, while they were gradually playing out, it sud-
- denly occurred to me to wonder what had become of
- Marco. I looked around; he was nowhere to be seen.
- Oh, but this was ominous! I pulled the king's sleeve,
- and we glided away and rushed for the hut. No Marco
- there, no Phyllis there! They had gone to the road
- for help, sure. I told the king to give his heels wings,
- and I would explain later. We made good time across
- the open ground, and as we darted into the shelter of
- the wood I glanced back and saw a mob of excited
- peasants swarm into view, with Marco and his wife at
- their head. They were making a world of noise, but
- that couldn't hurt anybody; the wood was dense, and
- as soon as we were well into its depths we would take
- to a tree and let them whistle. Ah, but then came
- another sound -- dogs! Yes, that was quite another
- matter. It magnified our contract -- we must find
- running water.
-
- We tore along at a good gait, and soon left the
- sounds far behind and modified to a murmur. We
- struck a stream and darted into it. We waded swiftly
- down it, in the dim forest light, for as much as three
- hundred yards, and then came across an oak with a
- great bough sticking out over the water. We climbed
- up on this bough, and began to work our way along it
- to the body of the tree; now we began to hear those
- sounds more plainly; so the mob had struck our trail.
- For a while the sounds approached pretty fast. And
- then for another while they didn't. No doubt the
- dogs had found the place where we had entered the
- stream, and were now waltzing up and down the shores
- trying to pick up the trail again.
-
- When we were snugly lodged in the tree and cur-
- tained with foliage, the king was satisfied, but I was
- doubtful. I believed we could crawl along a branch
- and get into the next tree, and I judged it worth while
- to try. We tried it, and made a success of it, though
- the king slipped, at the junction, and came near failing
- to connect. We got comfortable lodgment and satis-
- factory concealment among the foliage, and then we
- had nothing to do but listen to the hunt.
-
- Presently we heard it coming -- and coming on the
- jump, too; yes, and down both sides of the stream.
- Louder -- louder -- next minute it swelled swiftly up
- into a roar of shoutings, barkings, tramplings, and
- swept by like a cyclone.
-
- "I was afraid that the overhanging branch would
- suggest something to them," said I, "but I don't
- mind the disappointment. Come, my liege, it were
- well that we make good use of our time. We've
- flanked them. Dark is coming on, presently. If we
- can cross the stream and get a good start, and borrow
- a couple of horses from somebody's pasture to use for
- a few hours, we shall be safe enough."
-
- We started down, and got nearly to the lowest limb,
- when we seemed to hear the hunt returning. We
- stopped to listen.
-
- "Yes," said I, "they're baffled, they've given it
- up, they're on their way home. We will climb back
- to our roost again, and let them go by."
-
- So we climbed back. The king listened a moment
- and said:
-
- "They still search -- I wit the sign. We did best to
- abide."
-
- He was right. He knew more about hunting than I
- did. The noise approached steadily, but not with a
- rush. The king said:
-
- "They reason that we were advantaged by no par-
- lous start of them, and being on foot are as yet no
- mighty way from where we took the water."
-
- "Yes, sire, that is about it, I am afraid, though I
- was hoping better things."
-
- The noise drew nearer and nearer, and soon the van
- was drifting under us, on both sides of the water. A
- voice called a halt from the other bank, and said:
-
- "An they were so minded, they could get to yon
- tree by this branch that overhangs, and yet not touch
- ground. Ye will do well to send a man up it."
-
- "Marry, that we will do!"
-
- I was obliged to admire my cuteness in foreseeing
- this very thing and swapping trees to beat it. But,
- don't you know, there are some things that can beat
- smartness and foresight? Awkwardness and stupidity
- can. The best swordsman in the world doesn't need
- to fear the second best swordsman in the world; no,
- the person for him to be afraid of is some ignorant
- antagonist who has never had a sword in his hand be-
- fore; he doesn't do the thing he ought to do, and so
- the expert isn't prepared for him; he does the thing
- he ought not to do; and often it catches the expert
- out and ends him on the spot. Well, how could I,
- with all my gifts, make any valuable preparation against
- a near-sighted, cross-eyed, pudding-headed clown who
- would aim himself at the wrong tree and hit the right
- one? And that is what he did. He went for the
- wrong tree, which was, of course, the right one by
- mistake, and up he started.
-
- Matters were serious now. We remained still, and
- awaited developments. The peasant toiled his difficult
- way up. The king raised himself up and stood; he
- made a leg ready, and when the comer's head arrived
- in reach of it there was a dull thud, and down went
- the man floundering to the ground. There was a wild
- outbreak of anger below, and the mob swarmed in
- from all around, and there we were treed, and prison-
- ers. Another man started up; the bridging bough
- was detected, and a volunteer started up the tree that
- furnished the bridge. The king ordered me to play
- Horatius and keep the bridge. For a while the enemy
- came thick and fast; but no matter, the head man of
- each procession always got a buffet that dislodged him
- as soon as he came in reach. The king's spirits rose,
- his joy was limitless. He said that if nothing occurred
- to mar the prospect we should have a beautiful night,
- for on this line of tactics we could hold the tree against
- the whole country-side.
-
- However, the mob soon came to that conclusion
- themselves; wherefore they called off the assault and
- began to debate other plans. They had no weapons,
- but there were plenty of stones, and stones might
- answer. We had no objections. A stone might pos-
- sibly penetrate to us once in a while, but it wasn't
- very likely; we were well protected by boughs and
- foliage, and were not visible from any good aiming
- point. If they would but waste half an hour in stone-
- throwing, the dark would come to our help. We were
- feeling very well satisfied. We could smile; almost
- laugh.
-
- But we didn't; which was just as well, for we should
- have been interrupted. Before the stones had been
- raging through the leaves and bouncing from the
- boughs fifteen minutes, we began to notice a smell.
- A couple of sniffs of it was enough of an explanation --
- it was smoke! Our game was up at last. We recog-
- nized that. When smoke invites you, you have to
- come. They raised their pile of dry brush and damp
- weeds higher and higher, and when they saw the thick
- cloud begin to roll up and smother the tree, they broke
- out in a storm of joy-clamors. I got enough breath to
- say:
-
- "Proceed, my liege; after you is manners."
-
- The king gasped:
-
- "Follow me down, and then back thyself against
- one side of the trunk, and leave me the other. Then
- will we fight. Let each pile his dead according to his
- own fashion and taste."
-
- Then he descended, barking and coughing, and I
- followed. I struck the ground an instant after him;
- we sprang to our appointed places, and began to give
- and take with all our might. The powwow and racket
- were prodigious; it was a tempest of riot and con-
- fusion and thick-falling blows. Suddenly some horse-
- men tore into the midst of the crowd, and a voice
- shouted:
-
- "Hold -- or ye are dead men!"
-
- How good it sounded! The owner of the voice
- bore all the marks of a gentleman: picturesque and
- costly raiment, the aspect of command, a hard coun-
- tenance, with complexion and features marred by dis-
- sipation. The mob fell humbly back, like so many
- spaniels. The gentleman inspected us critically, then
- said sharply to the peasants:
-
- "What are ye doing to these people?"
-
- "They be madmen, worshipful sir, that have come
- wandering we know not whence, and --"
-
- "Ye know not whence? Do ye pretend ye know
- them not?"
-
- "Most honored sir, we speak but the truth. They
- are strangers and unknown to any in this region; and
- they be the most violent and bloodthirsty madmen that
- ever --"
-
- "Peace! Ye know not what ye say. They are not
- mad. Who are ye? And whence are ye? Explain."
-
- "We are but peaceful strangers, sir," I said, "and
- traveling upon our own concerns. We are from a far
- country, and unacquainted here. We have purposed
- no harm; and yet but for your brave interference and
- protection these people would have killed us. As you
- have divined, sir, we are not mad; neither are we
- violent or bloodthirsty."
-
- The gentleman turned to his retinue and said calmly:
- "Lash me these animals to their kennels!"
-
- The mob vanished in an instant; and after them
- plunged the horsemen, laying about them with their
- whips and pitilessly riding down such as were witless
- enough to keep the road instead of taking to the bush.
- The shrieks and supplications presently died away in
- the distance, and soon the horsemen began to straggle
- back. Meantime the gentleman had been questioning
- us more closely, but had dug no particulars out of us.
- We were lavish of recognition of the service he was
- doing us, but we revealed nothing more than that we
- were friendless strangers from a far country. When
- the escort were all returned, the gentleman said to one
- of his servants:
-
- "Bring the led-horses and mount these people."
-
- "Yes, my lord."
-
- We were placed toward the rear, among the servants.
- We traveled pretty fast, and finally drew rein some
- time after dark at a roadside inn some ten or twelve
- miles from the scene of our troubles. My lord went
- immediately to his room, after ordering his supper,
- and we saw no more of him. At dawn in the morning
- we breakfasted and made ready to start.
-
- My lord's chief attendant sauntered forward at that
- moment with indolent grace, and said:
-
- "Ye have said ye should continue upon this road,
- which is our direction likewise; wherefore my lord,
- the earl Grip, hath given commandment that ye retain
- the horses and ride, and that certain of us ride with
- ye a twenty mile to a fair town that hight Cambenet,
- whenso ye shall be out of peril."
-
- We could do nothing less than express our thanks
- and accept the offer. We jogged along, six in the
- party, at a moderate and comfortable gait, and in con-
- versation learned that my lord Grip was a very great
- personage in his own region, which lay a day's journey
- beyond Cambenet. We loitered to such a degree that
- it was near the middle of the forenoon when we entered
- the market square of the town. We dismounted, and
- left our thanks once more for my lord, and then ap-
- proached a crowd assembled in the center of the
- square, to see what might be the object of interest.
- It was the remnant of that old peregrinating band of
- slaves! So they had been dragging their chains about,
- all this weary time. That poor husband was gone, and
- also many others; and some few purchases had been
- added to the gang. The king was not interested, and
- wanted to move along, but I was absorbed, and full of
- pity. I could not take my eyes away from these worn
- and wasted wrecks of humanity. There they sat,
- grounded upon the ground, silent, uncomplaining, with
- bowed heads, a pathetic sight. And by hideous con-
- trast, a redundant orator was making a speech to
- another gathering not thirty steps away, in fulsome
- laudation of "our glorious British liberties!"
-
- I was boiling. I had forgotten I was a plebeian, I
- was remembering I was a man. Cost what it might, I
- would mount that rostrum and --
-
- Click! the king and I were handcuffed together!
- Our companions, those servants, had done it; my lord
- Grip stood looking on. The king burst out in a fury,
- and said:
-
- "What meaneth this ill-mannered jest?"
-
- My lord merely said to his head miscreant, coolly:
-
- "Put up the slaves and sell them!"
-
- SLAVES! The word had a new sound -- and how
- unspeakably awful! The king lifted his manacles and
- brought them down with a deadly force; but my lord
- was out of the way when they arrived. A dozen of
- the rascal's servants sprang forward, and in a moment
- we were helpless, with our hands bound behind us.
- We so loudly and so earnestly proclaimed ourselves
- freemen, that we got the interested attention of that
- liberty-mouthing orator and his patriotic crowd, and
- they gathered about us and assumed a very determined
- attitude. The orator said:
-
- "If, indeed, ye are freemen, ye have nought to
- fear -- the God-given liberties of Britain are about ye
- for your shield and shelter! (Applause.) Ye shall
- soon see. Bring forth your proofs."
-
- "What proofs?"
-
- "Proof that ye are freemen."
-
- Ah -- I remembered! I came to myself; I said
- nothing. But the king stormed out:
-
- "Thou'rt insane, man. It were better, and more
- in reason, that this thief and scoundrel here prove that
- we are NOT freemen."
-
- You see, he knew his own laws just as other people
- so often know the laws; by words, not by effects.
- They take a MEANING, and get to be very vivid, when
- you come to apply them to yourself.
-
- All hands shook their heads and looked disap-
- pointed; some turned away, no longer interested. The
- orator said -- and this time in the tones of business,
- not of sentiment:
-
- "An ye do not know your country's laws, it were
- time ye learned them. Ye are strangers to us; ye will
- not deny that. Ye may be freemen, we do not deny
- that; but also ye may be slaves. The law is clear: it
- doth not require the claimant to prove ye are slaves, it
- requireth you to prove ye are not."
-
- I said:
-
- "Dear sir, give us only time to send to Astolat; or
- give us only time to send to the Valley of Holiness --"
-
- "Peace, good man, these are extraordinary requests,
- and you may not hope to have them granted. It would
- cost much time, and would unwarrantably inconveni-
- ence your master --"
-
- "MASTER, idiot!" stormed the king. "I have no
- master, I myself am the m--"
-
- "Silence, for God's sake!"
-
- I got the words out in time to stop the king. We
- were in trouble enough already; it could not help us
- any to give these people the notion that we were
- lunatics.
-
- There is no use in stringing out the details. The
- earl put us up and sold us at auction. This same in-
- fernal law had existed in our own South in my own
- time, more than thirteen hundred years later, and
- under it hundreds of freemen who could not prove that
- they were freemen had been sold into lifelong slavery
- without the circumstance making any particular im-
- pression upon me; but the minute law and the auction
- block came into my personal experience, a thing
- which had been merely improper before became sud-
- denly hellish. Well, that's the way we are made.
-
- Yes, we were sold at auction, like swine. In a big
- town and an active market we should have brought a
- good price; but this place was utterly stagnant and so
- we sold at a figure which makes me ashamed, every
- time I think of it. The King of England brought
- seven dollars, and his prime minister nine; whereas
- the king was easily worth twelve dollars and I as easily
- worth fifteen. But that is the way things always go;
- if you force a sale on a dull market, I don't care what
- the property is, you are going to make a poor business
- of it, and you can make up your mind to it. If the
- earl had had wit enough to --
-
- However, there is no occasion for my working my
- sympathies up on his account. Let him go, for the
- present; I took his number, so to speak.
-
- The slave-dealer bought us both, and hitched us
- onto that long chain of his, and we constituted the rear
- of his procession. We took up our line of march and
- passed out of Cambenet at noon; and it seemed to me
- unaccountably strange and odd that the King of Eng-
- land and his chief minister, marching manacled and
- fettered and yoked, in a slave convoy, could move by
- all manner of idle men and women, and under windows
- where sat the sweet and the lovely, and yet never
- attract a curious eye, never provoke a single remark.
- Dear, dear, it only shows that there is nothing diviner
- about a king than there is about a tramp, after all.
- He is just a cheap and hollow artificiality when you
- don't know he is a king. But reveal his quality, and
- dear me it takes your very breath away to look at him.
- I reckon we are all fools. Born so, no doubt.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXV.
- A PITIFUL INCIDENT
-
- IT'S a world of surprises. The king brooded; this
- was natural. What would he brood about, should
- you say? Why, about the prodigious nature of his
- fall, of course -- from the loftiest place in the world to
- the lowest; from the most illustrious station in the
- world to the obscurest; from the grandest vocation
- among men to the basest. No, I take my oath that
- the thing that graveled him most, to start with, was
- not this, but the price he had fetched! He couldn't
- seem to get over that seven dollars. Well, it stunned
- me so, when I first found it out, that I couldn't believe
- it; it didn't seem natural. But as soon as my mental
- sight cleared and I got a right focus on it, I saw I was
- mistaken; it WAS natural. For this reason: a king is
- a mere artificiality, and so a king's feelings, like the
- impulses of an automatic doll, are mere artificialities;
- but as a man, he is a reality, and his feelings, as a
- man, are real, not phantoms. It shames the average
- man to be valued below his own estimate of his worth,
- and the king certainly wasn't anything more than an
- average man, if he was up that high.
-
- Confound him, he wearied me with arguments to
- show that in anything like a fair market he would have
- fetched twenty-five dollars, sure -- a thing which was
- plainly nonsense, and full or the baldest conceit; I
- wasn't worth it myself. But it was tender ground for
- me to argue on. In fact, I had to simply shirk argu-
- ment and do the diplomatic instead. I had to throw
- conscience aside, and brazenly concede that he ought
- to have brought twenty-five dollars; whereas I was
- quite well aware that in all the ages, the world had
- never seen a king that was worth half the money, and
- during the next thirteen centuries wouldn't see one
- that was worth the fourth of it. Yes, he tired me. If
- he began to talk about the crops; or about the recent
- weather; or about the condition of politics; or about
- dogs, or cats, or morals, or theology -- no matter
- what -- I sighed, for I knew what was coming; he
- was going to get out of it a palliation of that tiresome
- seven-dollar sale. Wherever we halted where there
- was a crowd, he would give me a look which said
- plainly: "if that thing could be tried over again now,
- with this kind of folk, you would see a different re-
- sult." Well, when he was first sold, it secretly tickled
- me to see him go for seven dollars; but before he was
- done with his sweating and worrying I wished he had
- fetched a hundred. The thing never got a chance to
- die, for every day, at one place or another, possible
- purchasers looked us over, and, as often as any other
- way, their comment on the king was something like
- this:
-
- "Here's a two-dollar-and-a-half chump with a thirty-
- dollar style. Pity but style was marketable."
-
- At last this sort of remark produced an evil result.
- Our owner was a practical person and he perceived
- that this defect must be mended if he hoped to find a
- purchaser for the king. So he went to work to take
- the style out of his sacred majesty. I could have
- given the man some valuable advice, but I didn't; you
- mustn't volunteer advice to a slave-driver unless you
- want to damage the cause you are arguing for. I had
- found it a sufficiently difficult job to reduce the king's
- style to a peasant's style, even when he was a willing
- and anxious pupil; now then, to undertake to reduce
- the king's style to a slave's style -- and by force -- go
- to! it was a stately contract. Never mind the details
- -- it will save me trouble to let you imagine them. I
- will only remark that at the end of a week there was
- plenty of evidence that lash and club and fist had done
- their work well; the king's body was a sight to see --
- and to weep over; but his spirit? -- why, it wasn't
- even phased. Even that dull clod of a slave-driver
- was able to see that there can be such a thing as a
- slave who will remain a man till he dies; whose bones
- you can break, but whose manhood you can't. This
- man found that from his first effort down to his latest,
- he couldn't ever come within reach of the king, but the
- king was ready to plunge for him, and did it. So he
- gave up at last, and left the king in possession of his
- style unimpaired. The fact is, the king was a good
- deal more than a king, he was a man; and when a
- man is a man, you can't knock it out of him.
-
- We had a rough time for a month, tramping to and
- fro in the earth, and suffering. And what Englishman
- was the most interested in the slavery question by that
- time? His grace the king! Yes; from being the
- most indifferent, he was become the most interested.
- He was become the bitterest hater of the institution I
- had ever heard talk. And so I ventured to ask once
- more a question which I had asked years before and
- had gotten such a sharp answer that I had not thought
- it prudent to meddle in the matter further. Would he
- abolish slavery?
-
- His answer was as sharp as before, but it was music
- this time; I shouldn't ever wish to hear pleasanter,
- though the profanity was not good, being awkwardly
- put together, and with the crash-word almost in the
- middle instead of at the end, where, of course, it ought
- to have been.
-
- I was ready and willing to get free now; I hadn't
- wanted to get free any sooner. No, I cannot quite
- say that. I had wanted to, but I had not been willing
- to take desperate chances, and had always dissuaded
- the king from them. But now -- ah, it was a new
- atmosphere! Liberty would be worth any cost that
- might be put upon it now. I set about a plan, and
- was straightway charmed with it. It would require
- time, yes, and patience, too, a great deal of both.
- One could invent quicker ways, and fully as sure ones;
- but none that would be as picturesque as this; none
- that could be made so dramatic. And so I was not
- going to give this one up. It might delay us months,
- but no matter, I would carry it out or break some-
- thing.
-
- Now and then we had an adventure. One night we
- were overtaken by a snow-storm while still a mile from
- the village we were making for. Almost instantly we
- were shut up as in a fog, the driving snow was so
- thick. You couldn't see a thing, and we were soon
- lost. The slave-driver lashed us desperately, for he
- saw ruin before him, but his lashings only made mat-
- ters worse, for they drove us further from the road and
- from likelihood of succor. So we had to stop at last
- and slump down in the snow where we were. The
- storm continued until toward midnight, then ceased.
- By this time two of our feebler men and three of our
- women were dead, and others past moving and threat-
- ened with death. Our master was nearly beside him-
- self. He stirred up the living, and made us stand,
- jump, slap ourselves, to restore our circulation, and he
- helped as well as he could with his whip.
-
- Now came a diversion. We heard shrieks and yells,
- and soon a woman came running and crying; and see-
- ing our group, she flung herself into our midst and
- begged for protection. A mob of people came tearing
- after her, some with torches, and they said she was a
- witch who had caused several cows to die by a strange
- disease, and practiced her arts by help of a devil in
- the form of a black cat. This poor woman had been
- stoned until she hardly looked human, she was so
- battered and bloody. The mob wanted to burn her.
-
- Well, now, what do you suppose our master did?
- When we closed around this poor creature to shelter
- her, he saw his chance. He said, burn her here, or
- they shouldn't have her at all. Imagine that! They
- were willing. They fastened her to a post; they
- brought wood and piled it about her; they applied
- the torch while she shrieked and pleaded and strained
- her two young daughters to her breast; and our brute,
- with a heart solely for business, lashed us into position
- about the stake and warmed us into life and commer-
- cial value by the same fire which took away the inno-
- cent life of that poor harmless mother. That was the
- sort of master we had. I took HIS number. That
- snow-storm cost him nine of his flock; and he was
- more brutal to us than ever, after that, for many days
- together, he was so enraged over his loss.
-
- We had adventures all along. One day we ran into
- a procession. And such a procession! All the riffraff
- of the kingdom seemed to be comprehended in it; and
- all drunk at that. In the van was a cart with a coffin
- in it, and on the coffin sat a comely young girl of
- about eighteen suckling a baby, which she squeezed to
- her breast in a passion of love every little while, and
- every little while wiped from its face the tears which
- her eyes rained down upon it; and always the foolish
- little thing smiled up at her, happy and content, knead-
- ing her breast with its dimpled fat hand, which she
- patted and fondled right over her breaking heart.
-
- Men and women, boys and girls, trotted along beside
- or after the cart, hooting, shouting profane and ribald
- remarks, singing snatches of foul song, skipping,
- dancing -- a very holiday of hellions, a sickening sight.
- We had struck a suburb of London, outside the walls,
- and this was a sample of one sort of London society.
- Our master secured a good place for us near the
- gallows. A priest was in attendance, and he helped
- the girl climb up, and said comforting words to her,
- and made the under-sheriff provide a stool for her.
- Then he stood there by her on the gallows, and for a
- moment looked down upon the mass of upturned faces
- at his feet, then out over the solid pavement of heads
- that stretched away on every side occupying the
- vacancies far and near, and then began to tell the
- story of the case. And there was pity in his voice --
- how seldom a sound that was in that ignorant and
- savage land! I remember every detail of what he said,
- except the words he said it in; and so I change it into
- my own words:
-
- "Law is intended to mete out justice. Sometimes
- it fails. This cannot be helped. We can only grieve,
- and be resigned, and pray for the soul of him who
- falls unfairly by the arm of the law, and that his fel-
- lows may be few. A law sends this poor young thing
- to death -- and it is right. But another law had placed
- her where she must commit her crime or starve with
- her child -- and before God that law is responsible for
- both her crime and her ignominious death!
-
- "A little while ago this young thing, this child of
- eighteen years, was as happy a wife and mother as
- any in England; and her lips were blithe with song,
- which is the native speech of glad and innocent hearts.
- Her young husband was as happy as she; for he was
- doing his whole duty, he worked early and late at his
- handicraft, his bread was honest bread well and fairly
- earned, he was prospering, he was furnishing shelter
- and sustenance to his family, he was adding his mite
- to the wealth of the nation. By consent of a treacher-
- ous law, instant destruction fell upon this holy home
- and swept it away! That young husband was waylaid
- and impressed, and sent to sea. The wife knew
- nothing of it. She sought him everywhere, she moved
- the hardest hearts with the supplications of her tears,
- the broken eloquence of her despair. Weeks dragged
- by, she watching, waiting, hoping, her mind going
- slowly to wreck under the burden of her misery.
- Little by little all her small possessions went for food.
- When she could no longer pay her rent, they turned
- her out of doors. She begged, while she had strength;
- when she was starving at last, and her milk failing, she
- stole a piece of linen cloth of the value of a fourth part
- of a cent, thinking to sell it and save her child. But
- she was seen by the owner of the cloth. She was put
- in jail and brought to trial. The man testified to the
- facts. A plea was made for her, and her sorrowful
- story was told in her behalf. She spoke, too, by per-
- mission, and said she did steal the cloth, but that her
- mind was so disordered of late by trouble that when
- she was overborne with hunger all acts, criminal or
- other, swam meaningless through her brain and she
- knew nothing rightly, except that she was so hungry!
- For a moment all were touched, and there was disposi-
- tion to deal mercifully with her, seeing that she was so
- young and friendless, and her case so piteous, and the
- law that robbed her of her support to blame as being
- the first and only cause of her transgression; but the
- prosecuting officer replied that whereas these things
- were all true, and most pitiful as well, still there was
- much small theft in these days, and mistimed mercy
- here would be a danger to property -- oh, my God, is
- there no property in ruined homes, and orphaned
- babes, and broken hearts that British law holds
- precious! -- and so he must require sentence.
-
- "When the judge put on his black cap, the owner
- of the stolen linen rose trembling up, his lip quivering,
- his face as gray as ashes; and when the awful words
- came, he cried out, 'Oh, poor child, poor child, I did
- not know it was death!' and fell as a tree falls. When
- they lifted him up his reason was gone; before the
- sun was set, he had taken his own life. A kindly
- man; a man whose heart was right, at bottom; add
- his murder to this that is to be now done here; and
- charge them both where they belong -- to the rulers
- and the bitter laws of Britain. The time is come, my
- child; let me pray over thee -- not FOR thee, dear
- abused poor heart and innocent, but for them that be
- guilty of thy ruin and death, who need it more."
-
- After his prayer they put the noose around the
- young girl's neck, and they had great trouble to adjust
- the knot under her ear, because she was devouring the
- baby all the time, wildly kissing it, and snatching it to
- her face and her breast, and drenching it with tears,
- and half moaning, half shrieking all the while, and the
- baby crowing, and laughing, and kicking its feet with
- delight over what it took for romp and play. Even
- the hangman couldn't stand it, but turned away.
- When all was ready the priest gently pulled and tugged
- and forced the child out of the mother's arms, and
- stepped quickly out of her reach; but she clasped her
- hands, and made a wild spring toward him, with a
- shriek; but the rope -- and the under-sheriff -- held
- her short. Then she went on her knees and stretched
- out her hands and cried:
-
- "One more kiss -- oh, my God, one more, one
- more, -- it is the dying that begs it!"
-
- She got it; she almost smothered the little thing.
- And when they got it away again, she cried out:
-
- "Oh, my child, my darling, it will die! It has no
- home, it has no father, no friend, no mother --"
-
- "It has them all!" said that good priest. "All
- these will I be to it till I die."
-
- You should have seen her face then! Gratitude?
- Lord, what do you want with words to express that?
- Words are only painted fire; a look is the fire itself.
- She gave that look, and carried it away to the treasury
- of heaven, where all things that are divine belong.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVI.
- AN ENCOUNTER IN THE DARK
-
- LONDON -- to a slave -- was a sufficiently interest-
- ing place. It was merely a great big village;
- and mainly mud and thatch. The streets were muddy,
- crooked, unpaved. The populace was an ever flocking
- and drifting swarm of rags, and splendors, of nodding
- plumes and shining armor. The king had a palace
- there; he saw the outside of it. It made him sigh;
- yes, and swear a little, in a poor juvenile sixth century
- way. We saw knights and grandees whom we knew,
- but they didn't know us in our rags and dirt and raw
- welts and bruises, and wouldn't have recognized us if
- we had hailed them, nor stopped to answer, either, it
- being unlawful to speak with slaves on a chain. Sandy
- passed within ten yards of me on a mule -- hunting
- for me, I imagined. But the thing which clean broke
- my heart was something which happened in front of
- our old barrack in a square, while we were enduring
- the spectacle of a man being boiled to death in oil for
- counterfeiting pennies. It was the sight of a newsboy
- -- and I couldn't get at him! Still, I had one com-
- fort -- here was proof that Clarence was still alive and
- banging away. I meant to be with him before long;
- the thought was full of cheer.
-
- I had one little glimpse of another thing, one day,
- which gave me a great uplift. It was a wire stretching
- from housetop to housetop. Telegraph or telephone,
- sure. I did very much wish I had a little piece of it.
- It was just what I needed, in order to carry out my
- project of escape. My idea was to get loose some
- night, along with the king, then gag and bind our
- master, change clothes with him, batter him into the
- aspect of a stranger, hitch him to the slave-chain,
- assume possession of the property, march to Camelot,
- and --
-
- But you get my idea; you see what a stunning
- dramatic surprise I would wind up with at the palace.
- It was all feasible, if I could only get hold of a slender
- piece of iron which I could shape into a lock-pick. I
- could then undo the lumbering padlocks with which
- our chains were fastened, whenever I might choose.
- But I never had any luck; no such thing ever hap-
- pened to fall in my way. However, my chance came
- at last. A gentleman who had come twice before to
- dicker for me, without result, or indeed any approach
- to a result, came again. I was far from expecting
- ever to belong to him, for the price asked for me from
- the time I was first enslaved was exorbitant, and always
- provoked either anger or derision, yet my master stuck
- stubbornly to it -- twenty-two dollars. He wouldn't
- bate a cent. The king was greatly admired, because
- of his grand physique, but his kingly style was against
- him, and he wasn't salable; nobody wanted that kind
- of a slave. I considered myself safe from parting
- from him because of my extravagant price. No, I
- was not expecting to ever belong to this gentleman
- whom I have spoken of, but he had something which
- I expected would belong to me eventually, if he would
- but visit us often enough. It was a steel thing with a
- long pin to it, with which his long cloth outside gar-
- ment was fastened together in front. There were
- three of them. He had disappointed me twice, be-
- cause he did not come quite close enough to me to
- make my project entirely safe; but this time I suc-
- ceeded; I captured the lower clasp of the three, and
- when he missed it he thought he had lost it on the
- way.
-
- I had a chance to be glad about a minute, then
- straightway a chance to be sad again. For when the
- purchase was about to fail, as usual, the master sud-
- denly spoke up and said what would be worded thus --
- in modern English:
-
- "I'll tell you what I'll do. I'm tired supporting
- these two for no good. Give me twenty-two dollars
- for this one, and I'll throw the other one in."
-
- The king couldn't get his breath, he was in such a
- fury. He began to choke and gag, and meantime the
- master and the gentleman moved away discussing.
-
- "An ye will keep the offer open --"
-
- "'Tis open till the morrow at this hour."
-
- "Then I will answer you at that time," said the
- gentleman, and disappeared, the master following him.
-
- I had a time of it to cool the king down, but I
- managed it. I whispered in his ear, to this effect:
-
- "Your grace WILL go for nothing, but after another
- fashion. And so shall I. To-night we shall both be
- free."
-
- "Ah! How is that?"
-
- "With this thing which I have stolen, I will unlock
- these locks and cast off these chains to-night. When
- he comes about nine-thirty to inspect us for the night,
- we will seize him, gag him, batter him, and early in
- the morning we will march out of this town, proprietors
- of this caravan of slaves."
-
- That was as far as I went, but the king was charmed
- and satisfied. That evening we waited patiently for
- our fellow-slaves to get to sleep and signify it by the
- usual sign, for you must not take many chances on
- those poor fellows if you can avoid it. It is best to
- keep your own secrets. No doubt they fidgeted only
- about as usual, but it didn't seem so to me. It seemed
- to me that they were going to be forever getting down
- to their regular snoring. As the time dragged on I
- got nervously afraid we shouldn't have enough of it
- left for our needs; so I made several premature
- attempts, and merely delayed things by it; for I
- couldn't seem to touch a padlock, there in the dark,
- without starting a rattle out of it which interrupted
- somebody's sleep and made him turn over and wake
- some more of the gang.
-
- But finally I did get my last iron off, and was a free
- man once more. I took a good breath of relief, and
- reached for the king's irons. Too late! in comes the
- master, with a light in one hand and his heavy walking-
- staff in the other. I snuggled close among the wallow
- of snorers, to conceal as nearly as possible that I was
- naked of irons; and I kept a sharp lookout and pre-
- pared to spring for my man the moment he should
- bend over me.
-
- But he didn't approach. He stopped, gazed ab-
- sently toward our dusky mass a minute, evidently
- thinking about something else; then set down his
- light, moved musingly toward the door, and before a
- body could imagine what he was going to do, he was
- out of the door and had closed it behind him.
-
- "Quick!" said the king. "Fetch him back!"
-
- Of course, it was the thing to do, and I was up and
- out in a moment. But, dear me, there were no lamps
- in those days, and it was a dark night. But I glimpsed
- a dim figure a few steps away. I darted for it, threw
- myself upon it, and then there was a state of things
- and lively! We fought and scuffled and struggled,
- and drew a crowd in no time. They took an immense
- interest in the fight and encouraged us all they could,
- and, in fact, couldn't have been pleasanter or more
- cordial if it had been their own fight. Then a tremen-
- dous row broke out behind us, and as much as half of
- our audience left us, with a rush, to invest some sym-
- pathy in that. Lanterns began to swing in all direc-
- tions; it was the watch gathering from far and near.
- Presently a halberd fell across my back, as a reminder,
- and I knew what it meant. I was in custody. So
- was my adversary. We were marched off toward
- prison, one on each side of the watchman. Here was
- disaster, here was a fine scheme gone to sudden de-
- struction! I tried to imagine what would happen
- when the master should discover that it was I who
- had been fighting him; and what would happen if they
- jailed us together in the general apartment for brawlers
- and petty law-breakers, as was the custom; and what
- might --
-
- Just then my antagonist turned his face around in
- my direction, the freckled light from the watchman's
- tin lantern fell on it, and, by George, he was the wrong
- man!
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVII.
- AN AWFUL PREDICAMENT
-
- SLEEP? It was impossible. It would naturally
- have been impossible in that noisome cavern of
- a jail, with its mangy crowd of drunken, quarrelsome,
- and song-singing rapscallions. But the thing that
- made sleep all the more a thing not to be dreamed of,
- was my racking impatience to get out of this place and
- find out the whole size of what might have happened
- yonder in the slave-quarters in consequence of that
- intolerable miscarriage of mine.
-
- It was a long night, but the morning got around at
- last. I made a full and frank explanation to the court.
- I said I was a slave, the property of the great Earl
- Grip, who had arrived just after dark at the Tabard
- inn in the village on the other side of the water, and
- had stopped there over night, by compulsion, he being
- taken deadly sick with a strange and sudden disorder.
- I had been ordered to cross to the city in all haste and
- bring the best physician; I was doing my best;
- naturally I was running with all my might; the night
- was dark, I ran against this common person here, who
- seized me by the throat and began to pummel me,
- although I told him my errand, and implored him, for
- the sake of the great earl my master's mortal peril --
-
- The common person interrupted and said it was a
- lie; and was going to explain how I rushed upon him
- and attacked him without a word --
-
- "Silence, sirrah!" from the court. "Take him
- hence and give him a few stripes whereby to teach
- him how to treat the servant of a nobleman after a
- different fashion another time. Go!"
-
- Then the court begged my pardon, and hoped I
- would not fail to tell his lordship it was in no wise the
- court's fault that this high-handed thing had happened.
- I said I would make it all right, and so took my leave.
- Took it just in time, too; he was starting to ask me
- why I didn't fetch out these facts the moment I was
- arrested. I said I would if I had thought of it --
- which was true -- but that I was so battered by that
- man that all my wit was knocked out of me -- and
- so forth and so on, and got myself away, still mumbling.
- I didn't wait for breakfast. No grass grew under
- my feet. I was soon at the slave quarters. Empty --
- everybody gone! That is, everybody except one body
- -- the slave-master's. It lay there all battered to pulp;
- and all about were the evidences of a terrific fight.
- There was a rude board coffin on a cart at the door,
- and workmen, assisted by the police, were thinning a
- road through the gaping crowd in order that they
- might bring it in.
-
- I picked out a man humble enough in life to conde-
- scend to talk with one so shabby as I, and got his ac-
- count of the matter.
-
- "There were sixteen slaves here. They rose against
- their master in the night, and thou seest how it ended."
-
- "Yes. How did it begin?"
-
- "There was no witness but the slaves. They said
- the slave that was most valuable got free of his bonds
- and escaped in some strange way -- by magic arts
- 'twas thought, by reason that he had no key, and the
- locks were neither broke nor in any wise injured.
- When the master discovered his loss, he was mad with
- despair, and threw himself upon his people with his
- heavy stick, who resisted and brake his back and in
- other and divers ways did give him hurts that brought
- him swiftly to his end."
-
- "This is dreadful. It will go hard with the slaves,
- no doubt, upon the trial."
-
- "Marry, the trial is over."
-
- "Over!"
-
- "Would they be a week, think you -- and the
- matter so simple? They were not the half of a quarter
- of an hour at it."
-
- "Why, I don't see how they could determine which
- were the guilty ones in so short a time."
-
- "WHICH ones? Indeed, they considered not par-
- ticulars like to that. They condemned them in a body.
- Wit ye not the law? -- which men say the Romans left
- behind them here when they went -- that if one slave
- killeth his master all the slaves of that man must die
- for it."
-
- "True. I had forgotten. And when will these
- die?"
-
- "Belike within a four and twenty hours; albeit some
- say they will wait a pair of days more, if peradventure
- they may find the missing one meantime."
-
- The missing one! It made me feel uncomfortable.
-
- "Is it likely they will find him?"
-
- "Before the day is spent -- yes. They seek him
- everywhere. They stand at the gates of the town,
- with certain of the slaves who will discover him to
- them if he cometh, and none can pass out but he will
- be first examined."
-
- "Might one see the place where the rest are con-
- fined?"
-
- "The outside of it -- yes. The inside of it -- but
- ye will not want to see that."
-
- I took the address of that prison for future reference
- and then sauntered off. At the first second-hand
- clothing shop I came to, up a back street, I got a
- rough rig suitable for a common seaman who might be
- going on a cold voyage, and bound up my face with a
- liberal bandage, saying I had a toothache. This con-
- cealed my worst bruises. It was a transformation. I
- no longer resembled my former self. Then I struck
- out for that wire, found it and followed it to its den.
- It was a little room over a butcher's shop -- which
- meant that business wasn't very brisk in the telegraphic
- line. The young chap in charge was drowsing at his
- table. I locked the door and put the vast key in my
- bosom. This alarmed the young fellow, and he was
- going to make a noise; but I said:
-
- "Save your wind; if you open your mouth you are
- dead, sure. Tackle your instrument. Lively, now!
- Call Camelot."
-
- "This doth amaze me! How should such as you
- know aught of such matters as --"
-
- "Call Camelot! I am a desperate man. Call
- Camelot, or get away from the instrument and I will
- do it myself."
-
- "What -- you?"
-
- "Yes -- certainly. Stop gabbling. Call the palace."
-
- He made the call.
-
- "Now, then, call Clarence."
-
- "Clarence WHO?"
-
- "Never mind Clarence who. Say you want Clar-
- ence; you'll get an answer."
-
- He did so. We waited five nerve-straining minutes
- -- ten minutes -- how long it did seem! -- and then
- came a click that was as familiar to me as a human
- voice; for Clarence had been my own pupil.
-
- "Now, my lad, vacate! They would have known
- MY touch, maybe, and so your call was surest; but I'm
- all right now."
-
- He vacated the place and cocked his ear to listen --
- but it didn't win. I used a cipher. I didn't waste
- any time in sociabilities with Clarence, but squared
- away for business, straight-off -- thus:
-
- "The king is here and in danger. We were cap-
- tured and brought here as slaves. We should not be
- able to prove our identity -- and the fact is, I am not
- in a position to try. Send a telegram for the palace
- here which will carry conviction with it."
-
- His answer came straight back:
-
- "They don't know anything about the telegraph;
- they haven't had any experience yet, the line to Lon-
- don is so new. Better not venture that. They might
- hang you. Think up something else."
-
- Might hang us! Little he knew how closely he was
- crowding the facts. I couldn't think up anything for
- the moment. Then an idea struck me, and I started
- it along:
-
- "Send five hundred picked knights with Launcelot
- in the lead; and send them on the jump. Let them
- enter by the southwest gate, and look out for the man
- with a white cloth around his right arm."
-
- The answer was prompt:
-
- "They shall start in half an hour."
-
- "All right, Clarence; now tell this lad here that I'm
- a friend of yours and a dead-head; and that he must
- be discreet and say nothing about this visit of mine."
-
- The instrument began to talk to the youth and I
- hurried away. I fell to ciphering. In half an hour it
- would be nine o'clock. Knights and horses in heavy
- armor couldn't travel very fast. These would make
- the best time they could, and now that the ground was
- in good condition, and no snow or mud, they would
- probably make a seven-mile gait; they would have to
- change horses a couple of times; they would arrive
- about six, or a little after; it would still be plenty light
- enough; they would see the white cloth which I should
- tie around my right arm, and I would take command.
- We would surround that prison and have the king out
- in no time. It would be showy and picturesque
- enough, all things considered, though I would have
- preferred noonday, on account of the more theatrical
- aspect the thing would have.
-
- Now, then, in order to increase the strings to my
- bow, I thought I would look up some of those people
- whom I had formerly recognized, and make myself
- known. That would help us out of our scrape, with-
- out the knights. But I must proceed cautiously, for it
- was a risky business. I must get into sumptuous
- raiment, and it wouldn't do to run and jump into it.
- No, I must work up to it by degrees, buying suit after
- suit of clothes, in shops wide apart, and getting a little
- finer article with each change, until I should finally
- reach silk and velvet, and be ready for my project.
- So I started.
-
- But the scheme fell through like scat! The first
- corner I turned, I came plump upon one of our slaves,
- snooping around with a watchman. I coughed at the
- moment, and he gave me a sudden look that bit right
- into my marrow. I judge he thought he had heard
- that cough before. I turned immediately into a shop
- and worked along down the counter, pricing things
- and watching out of the corner of my eye. Those
- people had stopped, and were talking together and
- looking in at the door. I made up my mind to get
- out the back way, if there was a back way, and I asked
- the shopwoman if I could step out there and look for
- the escaped slave, who was believed to be in hiding
- back there somewhere, and said I was an officer in
- disguise, and my pard was yonder at the door with
- one of the murderers in charge, and would she be good
- enough to step there and tell him he needn't wait, but
- had better go at once to the further end of the back
- alley and be ready to head him off when I rousted him
- out.
-
- She was blazing with eagerness to see one of those
- already celebrated murderers, and she started on the
- errand at once. I slipped out the back way, locked
- the door behind me, put the key in my pocket and
- started off, chuckling to myself and comfortable.
-
- Well, I had gone and spoiled it again, made another
- mistake. A double one, in fact. There were plenty
- of ways to get rid of that officer by some simple and
- plausible device, but no, I must pick out a picturesque
- one; it is the crying defect of my character. And
- then, I had ordered my procedure upon what the
- officer, being human, would NATURALLY do; whereas
- when you are least expecting it, a man will now and
- then go and do the very thing which it's NOT natural
- for him to do. The natural thing for the officer to do,
- in this case, was to follow straight on my heels; he
- would find a stout oaken door, securely locked, be-
- tween him and me; before he could break it down, I
- should be far away and engaged in slipping into a suc-
- cession of baffling disguises which would soon get me
- into a sort of raiment which was a surer protection
- from meddling law-dogs in Britain than any amount of
- mere innocence and purity of character. But instead
- of doing the natural thing, the officer took me at my
- word, and followed my instructions. And so, as I
- came trotting out of that cul de sac, full of satisfaction
- with my own cleverness, he turned the corner and I
- walked right into his handcuffs. If I had known it was
- a cul de sac -- however, there isn't any excusing a
- blunder like that, let it go. Charge it up to profit and
- loss.
-
- Of course, I was indignant, and swore I had just
- come ashore from a long voyage, and all that sort of
- thing -- just to see, you know, if it would deceive that
- slave. But it didn't. He knew me. Then I re-
- proached him for betraying me. He was more sur-
- prised than hurt. He stretched his eyes wide, and
- said:
-
- "What, wouldst have me let thee, of all men, escape
- and not hang with us, when thou'rt the very CAUSE of
- our hanging? Go to!"
-
- "Go to" was their way of saying "I should smile!"
- or "I like that!" Queer talkers, those people.
-
- Well, there was a sort of bastard justice in his view
- of the case, and so I dropped the matter. When you
- can't cure a disaster by argument, what is the use to
- argue? It isn't my way. So I only said:
-
- "You're not going to be hanged. None of us are."
-
- Both men laughed, and the slave said:
-
- "Ye have not ranked as a fool -- before. You
- might better keep your reputation, seeing the strain
- would not be for long."
-
- "It will stand it, I reckon. Before to-morrow we
- shall be out of prison, and free to go where we will,
- besides."
-
- The witty officer lifted at his left ear with his thumb,
- made a rasping noise in his throat, and said:
-
- "Out of prison -- yes -- ye say true. And free
- likewise to go where ye will, so ye wander not out of
- his grace the Devil's sultry realm."
-
- I kept my temper, and said, indifferently:
-
- "Now I suppose you really think we are going to
- hang within a day or two."
-
- "I thought it not many minutes ago, for so the
- thing was decided and proclaimed."
-
- "Ah, then you've changed your mind, is that it?"
-
- "Even that. I only THOUGHT, then; I KNOW, now."
-
- I felt sarcastical, so I said:
-
- "Oh, sapient servant of the law, condescend to tell
- us, then, what you KNOW."
-
- "That ye will all be hanged TO-DAY, at mid-after-
- noon! Oho! that shot hit home! Lean upon me."
-
- The fact is I did need to lean upon somebody. My
- knights couldn't arrive in time. They would be as
- much as three hours too late. Nothing in the world
- could save the King of England; nor me, which was
- more important. More important, not merely to me,
- but to the nation -- the only nation on earth standing
- ready to blossom into civilization. I was sick. I said
- no more, there wasn't anything to say. I knew what
- the man meant; that if the missing slave was found,
- the postponement would be revoked, the execution
- take place to-day. Well, the missing slave was found.
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVIII.
- SIR LAUNCELOT AND KNIGHTS TO THE RESCUE
-
- NEARING four in the afternoon. The scene was
- just outside the walls of London. A cool, com-
- fortable, superb day, with a brilliant sun; the kind of
- day to make one want to live, not die. The multitude
- was prodigious and far-reaching; and yet we fifteen
- poor devils hadn't a friend in it. There was something
- painful in that thought, look at it how you might.
- There we sat, on our tall scaffold, the butt of the hate
- and mockery of all those enemies. We were being
- made a holiday spectacle. They had built a sort of
- grand stand for the nobility and gentry, and these were
- there in full force, with their ladies. We recognized a
- good many of them.
-
- The crowd got a brief and unexpected dash of
- diversion out of the king. The moment we were
- freed of our bonds he sprang up, in his fantastic rags,
- with face bruised out of all recognition, and proclaimed
- himself Arthur, King of Britain, and denounced the
- awful penalties of treason upon every soul there present
- if hair of his sacred head were touched. It startled
- and surprised him to hear them break into a vast roar
- of laughter. It wounded his dignity, and he locked
- himself up in silence. then, although the crowd begged
- him to go on, and tried to provoke him to it by cat-
- calls, jeers, and shouts of
-
- "Let him speak! The king! The king! his hum-
- ble subjects hunger and thirst for words of wisdom out
- of the mouth of their master his Serene and Sacred
- Raggedness!"
-
- But it went for nothing. He put on all his majesty
- and sat under this rain of contempt and insult un-
- moved. He certainly was great in his way. Absently,
- I had taken off my white bandage and wound it about
- my right arm. When the crowd noticed this, they
- began upon me. They said:
-
- "Doubtless this sailor-man is his minister -- observe
- his costly badge of office!"
-
- I let them go on until they got tired, and then I
- said:
-
- "Yes, I am his minister, The Boss; and to-morrow
- you will hear that from Camelot which --"
-
- I got no further. They drowned me out with joyous
- derision. But presently there was silence; for the
- sheriffs of London, in their official robes, with their
- subordinates, began to make a stir which indicated
- that business was about to begin. In the hush which
- followed, our crime was recited, the death warrant
- read, then everybody uncovered while a priest uttered
- a prayer.
-
- Then a slave was blindfolded; the hangman unslung
- his rope. There lay the smooth road below us, we
- upon one side of it, the banked multitude wailing its
- other side -- a good clear road, and kept free by the
- police -- how good it would be to see my five hundred
- horsemen come tearing down it! But no, it was out
- of the possibilities. I followed its receding thread out
- into the distance -- not a horseman on it, or sign of
- one.
-
- There was a jerk, and the slave hung dangling;
- dangling and hideously squirming, for his limbs were
- not tied.
-
- A second rope was unslung, in a moment another
- slave was dangling.
-
- In a minute a third slave was struggling in the air.
- It was dreadful. I turned away my head a moment,
- and when I turned back I missed the king! They
- were blindfolding him! I was paralyzed; I couldn't
- move, I was choking, my tongue was petrified. They
- finished blindfolding him, they led him under the
- rope. I couldn't shake off that clinging impotence.
- But when I saw them put the noose around his neck,
- then everything let go in me and I made a spring
- to the rescue -- and as I made it I shot one
- more glance abroad -- by George! here they came,
- a-tilting! -- five hundred mailed and belted knights on
- bicycles!
-
- The grandest sight that ever was seen. Lord, how
- the plumes streamed, how the sun flamed and flashed
- from the endless procession of webby wheels!
-
- I waved my right arm as Launcelot swept in -- he
- recognized my rag -- I tore away noose and bandage,
- and shouted:
-
- "On your knees, every rascal of you, and salute the
- king! Who fails shall sup in hell to-night!"
-
- I always use that high style when I'm climaxing an
- effect. Well, it was noble to see Launcelot and the
- boys swarm up onto that scaffold and heave sheriffs
- and such overboard. And it was fine to see that
- astonished multitude go down on their knees and beg
- their lives of the king they had just been deriding and
- insulting. And as he stood apart there, receiving this
- homage in rags, I thought to myself, well, really there
- is something peculiarly grand about the gait and bear-
- ing of a king, after all.
-
- I was immensely satisfied. Take the whole situation
- all around, it was one of the gaudiest effects I ever
- instigated.
-
- And presently up comes Clarence, his own self! and
- winks, and says, very modernly:
-
- "Good deal of a surprise, wasn't it? I knew you'd
- like it. I've had the boys practicing this long time,
- privately; and just hungry for a chance to show off."
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIX.
- THE YANKEE'S FIGHT WITH THE KNIGHTS
-
- HOME again, at Camelot. A morning or two later
- I found the paper, damp from the press, by my
- plate at the breakfast table. I turned to the adver-
- tising columns, knowing I should find something of
- personal interest to me there. It was this:
-
- DE PAR LE ROI.
-
- Know that the great lord and illus-
- trious Kni8ht, SIR SAGRAMOR LE
- DESIROUS naving condescended to
- meet the King's Minister, Hank Mor-
- gan, the which is surnamed The Boss,
- for satisfgction of offence anciently given,
- these wilL engage in the lists by
- Camelot about the fourth hour of the
- morning of the sixteenth day of this
- next succeeding month. The battle
- will be a l outrance, sith the said offence
- was of a deadly sort, admitting of no
- comPosition.
-
- DE PAR LE ROI
-
-
- Clarence's editorial reference to this affair was to this
- effect:
-
- It will be observed, by a gl7nce at our
- advertising columns, that the commu-
- nity is to be favored with a treat of un-
- usual interest in the tournament line.
- The n ames of the artists are warrant of
- good enterTemment. The box-office
- will be open at noon of the 13th; ad-
- mission 3 cents, reserved seatsh 5; pro-
- ceeds to go to the hospital fund The
- royal pair and all the Court will be pres-
- ent. With these exceptions, and the
- press and the clergy, the free list is strict-
- ly susPended. Parties are hereby warn-
- ed against buying tickets of speculators;
- they will not be good at the door.
- Everybody knows and likes The Boss,
- everybody knows and likes Sir Sag.;
- come, let us give the lads a good send-
- off. ReMember, the proceeds go to a
- great and free charity, and one whose
- broad begevolence stretches out its help-
- ing hand, warm with the blood of a lov-
- ing heart, to all that suffer, regardless of
- race, creed, condition or color--the
- only charity yet established in the earth
- which has no politico-religious stop-
- cock on its compassion, but says Here
- flows the stream, let ALL come and
- drink! Turn out, all hands! fetch along
- your dou3hnuts and your gum-drops
- and have a good time. Pie for sale on
- the grounds, and rocks to crack it with;
- and ciRcus-lemonade--three drops of
- lime juice to a barrel of water.
- N.B. This is the first tournament
- under the new law, whidh allow each
- combatant to use any weapon he may pre-
- fer. You may want to make a note of that.
-
- Up to the day set, there was no talk in all Britain of
- anything but this combat. All other topics sank into
- insignificance and passed out of men's thoughts and
- interest. It was not because a tournament was a great
- matter, it was not because Sir Sagramor had found
- the Holy Grail, for he had not, but had failed; it was
- not because the second (official) personage in the king-
- dom was one of the duellists; no, all these features
- were commonplace. Yet there was abundant reason
- for the extraordinary interest which this coming fight
- was creating. It was born of the fact that all the
- nation knew that this was not to be a duel between
- mere men, so to speak, but a duel between two mighty
- magicians; a duel not of muscle but of mind, not of
- human skill but of superhuman art and craft; a final
- struggle for supremacy between the two master en-
- chanters of the age. It was realized that the most
- prodigious achievements of the most renowned knights
- could not be worthy of comparison with a spectacle
- like this; they could be but child's play, contrasted
- with this mysterious and awful battle of the gods.
- Yes, all the world knew it was going to be in reality a
- duel between Merlin and me, a measuring of his magic
- powers against mine. It was known that Merlin had
- been busy whole days and nights together, imbuing Sir
- Sagramor's arms and armor with supernal powers of
- offense and defense, and that he had procured for him
- from the spirits of the air a fleecy veil which would
- render the wearer invisible to his antagonist while
- still visible to other men. Against Sir Sagramor, so
- weaponed and protected, a thousand knights could
- accomplish nothing; against him no known enchant-
- ments could prevail. These facts were sure; regard-
- ing them there was no doubt, no reason for doubt.
- There was but one question: might there be still other
- enchantments, UNKNOWN to Merlin, which could render
- Sir Sagramor's veil transparent to me, and make his
- enchanted mail vulnerable to my weapons? This was
- the one thing to be decided in the lists. Until then
- the world must remain in suspense.
-
- So the world thought there was a vast matter at stake
- here, and the world was right, but it was not the one
- they had in their minds. No, a far vaster one was
- upon the cast of this die: THE LIFE OF KNIGHT-ERRANTRY.
- I was a champion, it was true, but not the champion
- of the frivolous black arts, I was the champion of hard
- unsentimental common-sense and reason. I was enter-
- ing the lists to either destroy knight-errantry or be its
- victim.
-
- Vast as the show-grounds were, there were no vacant
- spaces in them outside of the lists, at ten o'clock on
- the morning of the 16th. The mammoth grand-stand
- was clothed in flags, streamers, and rich tapestries, and
- packed with several acres of small-fry tributary kings,
- their suites, and the British aristocracy; with our own
- royal gang in the chief place, and each and every
- individual a flashing prism of gaudy silks and velvets --
- well, I never saw anything to begin with it but a fight
- between an Upper Mississippi sunset and the aurora
- borealis. The huge camp of beflagged and gay-
- colored tents at one end of the lists, with a stiff-
- standing sentinel at every door and a shining shield
- hanging by him for challenge, was another fine sight.
- You see, every knight was there who had any ambition
- or any caste feeling; for my feeling toward their order
- was not much of a secret, and so here was their
- chance. If I won my fight with Sir Sagramor, others
- would have the right to call me out as long as I might
- be willing to respond.
-
- Down at our end there were but two tents; one for
- me, and another for my servants. At the appointed
- hour the king made a sign, and the heralds, in their
- tabards, appeared and made proclamation, naming the
- combatants and stating the cause of quarrel. There
- was a pause, then a ringing bugle-blast, which was the
- signal for us to come forth. All the multitude caught
- their breath, and an eager curiosity flashed into every
- face.
-
- Out from his tent rode great Sir Sagramor, an im-
- posing tower of iron, stately and rigid, his huge spear
- standing upright in its socket and grasped in his strong
- hand, his grand horse's face and breast cased in steel,
- his body clothed in rich trappings that almost dragged
- the ground -- oh, a most noble picture. A great shout
- went up, of welcome and admiration.
-
- And then out I came. But I didn't get any shout.
- There was a wondering and eloquent silence for a mo-
- ment, then a great wave of laughter began to sweep
- along that human sea, but a warning bugle-blast cut its
- career short. I was in the simplest and comfortablest
- of gymnast costumes -- flesh-colored tights from neck
- to heel, with blue silk puffings about my loins, and
- bareheaded. My horse was not above medium size,
- but he was alert, slender-limbed, muscled with watch-
- springs, and just a greyhound to go. He was a beauty,
- glossy as silk, and naked as he was when he was born,
- except for bridle and ranger-saddle.
-
- The iron tower and the gorgeous bedquilt came
- cumbrously but gracefully pirouetting down the lists,
- and we tripped lightly up to meet them. We halted;
- the tower saluted, I responded; then we wheeled and
- rode side by side to the grand-stand and faced our king
- and queen, to whom we made obeisance. The queen
- exclaimed:
-
- "Alack, Sir Boss, wilt fight naked, and without
- lance or sword or --"
-
- But the king checked her and made her understand,
- with a polite phrase or two, that this was none of her
- business. The bugles rang again; and we separated
- and rode to the ends of the lists, and took position.
- Now old Merlin stepped into view and cast a dainty
- web of gossamer threads over Sir Sagramor which
- turned him into Hamlet's ghost; the king made a
- sign, the bugles blew, Sir Sagramor laid his great
- lance in rest, and the next moment here he came
- thundering down the course with his veil flying out
- behind, and I went whistling through the air like an
- arrow to meet him -- cocking my ear the while, as if
- noting the invisible knight's position and progress by
- hearing, not sight. A chorus of encouraging shouts
- burst out for him, and one brave voice flung out a
- heartening word for me -- said:
-
- "Go it, slim Jim!"
-
- It was an even bet that Clarence had procured that
- favor for me -- and furnished the language, too. When
- that formidable lance-point was within a yard and a
- half of my breast I twitched my horse aside without an
- effort, and the big knight swept by, scoring a blank.
- I got plenty of applause that time. We turned,
- braced up, and down we came again. Another blank
- for the knight, a roar of applause for me. This same
- thing was repeated once more; and it fetched such a
- whirlwind of applause that Sir Sagramor lost his
- temper, and at once changed his tactics and set him-
- self the task of chasing me down. Why, he hadn't
- any show in the world at that; it was a game of tag,
- with all the advantage on my side; I whirled out of
- his path with ease whenever I chose, and once I
- slapped him on the back as I went to the rear. Finally
- I took the chase into my own hands; and after that,
- turn, or twist, or do what he would, he was never able
- to get behind me again; he found himself always in
- front at the end of his maneuver. So he gave up that
- business and retired to his end of the lists. His temper
- was clear gone now, and he forgot himself and flung
- an insult at me which disposed of mine. I slipped my
- lasso from the horn of my saddle, and grasped the coil
- in my right hand. This time you should have seen
- him come! -- it was a business trip, sure; by his gait
- there was blood in his eye. I was sitting my horse at
- ease, and swinging the great loop of my lasso in wide
- circles about my head; the moment he was under way,
- I started for him; when the space between us had
- narrowed to forty feet, I sent the snaky spirals of the
- rope a-cleaving through the air, then darted aside and
- faced about and brought my trained animal to a halt
- with all his feet braced under him for a surge. The
- next moment the rope sprang taut and yanked Sir
- Sagramor out of the saddle! Great Scott, but there
- was a sensation!
-
- Unquestionably, the popular thing in this world is
- novelty. These people had never seen anything of
- that cowboy business before, and it carried them clear
- off their feet with delight. From all around and every-
- where, the shout went up:
-
- "Encore! encore!"
-
- I wondered where they got the word, but there was
- no time to cipher on philological matters, because the
- whole knight-errantry hive was just humming now, and
- my prospect for trade couldn't have been better. The
- moment my lasso was released and Sir Sagramor had
- been assisted to his tent, I hauled in the slack, took
- my station and began to swing my loop around my
- head again. I was sure to have use for it as soon as
- they could elect a successor for Sir Sagramor, and
- that couldn't take long where there were so many
- hungry candidates. Indeed, they elected one straight
- off -- Sir Hervis de Revel.
-
- BZZ! Here he came, like a house afire; I dodged:
- he passed like a flash, with my horse-hair coils settling
- around his neck; a second or so later, FST! his saddle
- was empty.
-
- I got another encore; and another, and another, and
- still another. When I had snaked five men out, things
- began to look serious to the ironclads, and they
- stopped and consulted together. As a result, they de-
- cided that it was time to waive etiquette and send their
- greatest and best against me. To the astonishment of
- that little world, I lassoed Sir Lamorak de Galis, and
- after him Sir Galahad. So you see there was simply
- nothing to be done now, but play their right bower --
- bring out the superbest of the superb, the mightiest of
- the mighty, the great Sir Launcelot himself!
-
- A proud moment for me? I should think so.
- Yonder was Arthur, King of Britain; yonder was
- Guenever; yes, and whole tribes of little provincial
- kings and kinglets; and in the tented camp yonder,
- renowned knights from many lands; and likewise the
- selectest body known to chivalry, the Knights of the
- Table Round, the most illustrious in Christendom; and
- biggest fact of all, the very sun of their shining system
- was yonder couching his lance, the focal point of forty
- thousand adoring eyes; and all by myself, here was I
- laying for him. Across my mind flitted the dear
- image of a certain hello-girl of West Hartford, and I
- wished she could see me now. In that moment, down
- came the Invincible, with the rush of a whirlwind --
- the courtly world rose to its feet and bent forward --
- the fateful coils went circling through the air, and
- before you could wink I was towing Sir Launcelot
- across the field on his back, and kissing my hand to
- the storm of waving kerchiefs and the thunder-crash of
- applause that greeted me!
-
- Said I to myself, as I coiled my lariat and hung it on
- my saddle-horn, and sat there drunk with glory, "The
- victory is perfect -- no other will venture against me --
- knight-errantry is dead." Now imagine my astonish-
- ment -- and everybody else's, too -- to hear the peculiar
- bugle-call which announces that another competitor is
- about to enter the lists! There was a mystery here; I
- couldn't account for this thing. Next, I noticed Mer-
- lin gliding away from me; and then I noticed that my
- lasso was gone! The old sleight-of-hand expert had
- stolen it, sure, and slipped it under his robe.
-
- The bugle blew again. I looked, and down came
- Sagramor riding again, with his dust brushed off and
- is veil nicely re-arranged. I trotted up to meet him,
- and pretended to find him by the sound of his horse's
- hoofs. He said:
-
- "Thou'rt quick of ear, but it will not save thee from
- this!" and he touched the hilt of his great sword .
- "An ye are not able to see it, because of the influence
- of the veil, know that it is no cumbrous lance, but a
- sword -- and I ween ye will not be able to avoid it."
-
- His visor was up; there was death in his smile. I
- should never be able to dodge his sword, that was
- plain. Somebody was going to die this time. If he
- got the drop on me, I could name the corpse. We
- rode forward together, and saluted the royalties. This
- time the king was disturbed. He said:
-
- "Where is thy strange weapon?"
-
- "It is stolen, sire."
-
- "Hast another at hand?"
-
- "No, sire, I brought only the one."
-
- Then Merlin mixed in:
-
- "He brought but the one because there was but the
- one to bring. There exists none other but that one.
- It belongeth to the king of the Demons of the Sea.
- This man is a pretender, and ignorant, else he had
- known that that weapon can be used in but eight
- bouts only, and then it vanisheth away to its home
- under the sea."
-
- "Then is he weaponless," said the king. "Sir
- Sagramore, ye will grant him leave to borrow."
-
- "And I will lend!" said Sir Launcelot, limping
- up. "He is as brave a knight of his hands as any
- that be on live, and he shall have mine."
-
- He put his hand on his sword to draw it, but Sir
- Sagramor said:
-
- "Stay, it may not be. He shall fight with his own
- weapons; it was his privilege to choose them and bring
- them. If he has erred, on his head be it."
-
- "Knight!" said the king. "Thou'rt overwrought
- with passion; it disorders thy mind. Wouldst kill a
- naked man?"
-
- "An he do it, he shall answer it to me," said Sir
- Launcelot.
-
- "I will answer it to any he that desireth!" retorted
- Sir Sagramor hotly.
-
- Merlin broke in, rubbing his hands and smiling his
- lowdownest smile of malicious gratification:
-
- "'Tis well said, right well said! And 'tis enough
- of parleying, let my lord the king deliver the battle
- signal."
-
- The king had to yield. The bugle made proclama-
- tion, and we turned apart and rode to our stations.
- There we stood, a hundred yards apart, facing each
- other, rigid and motionless, like horsed statues. And
- so we remained, in a soundless hush, as much as a full
- minute, everybody gazing, nobody stirring. It seemed
- as if the king could not take heart to give the signal.
- But at last he lifted his hand, the clear note of the
- bugle followed, Sir Sagramor's long blade described a
- flashing curve in the air, and it was superb to see him
- come. I sat still. On he came. I did not move.
- People got so excited that they shouted to me:
-
- "Fly, fly! Save thyself! This is murther!"
-
- I never budged so much as an inch till that thunder-
- ng apparition had got within fifteen paces of me; then
- I snatched a dragoon revolver out of my holster, there
- was a flash and a roar, and the revolver was back in
- the holster before anybody could tell what had hap-
- pened.
-
- Here was a riderless horse plunging by, and yonder
- lay Sir Sagramor, stone dead.
-
- The people that ran to him were stricken dumb to
- find that the life was actually gone out of the man and
- no reason for it visible, no hurt upon his body, nothing
- like a wound. There was a hole through the breast of
- his chain-mail, but they attached no importance to a
- little thing like that; and as a bullet wound there pro-
- duces but little blood, none came in sight because of
- the clothing and swaddlings under the armor. The
- body was dragged over to let the king and the swells
- look down upon it. They were stupefied with aston-
- ishment naturally. I was requested to come and ex-
- plain the miracle. But I remained in my tracks, like
- a statue, and said:
-
- "If it is a command, I will come, but my lord the
- king knows that I am where the laws of combat require
- me to remain while any desire to come against me."
-
- I waited. Nobody challenged. Then I said:
-
- "If there are any who doubt that this field is well
- and fairly won, I do not wait for them to challenge
- me, I challenge them."
-
- "It is a gallant offer," said the king, "and well be-
- seems you. Whom will you name first?"
-
- "I name none, I challenge all! Here I stand, and
- dare the chivalry of England to come against me -- not
- by individuals, but in mass!"
-
- "What!" shouted a score of knights.
-
- "You have heard the challenge. Take it, or I pro-
- claim you recreant knights and vanquished, every
- one!"
-
- It was a "bluff" you know. At such a time it is
- sound judgment to put on a bold face and play your
- hand for a hundred times what it is worth; forty-nine
- times out of fifty nobody dares to "call," and you
- rake in the chips. But just this once -- well, things
- looked squally! In just no time, five hundred knights
- were scrambling into their saddles, and before you
- could wink a widely scattering drove were under way
- and clattering down upon me. I snatched both revol-
- vers from the holsters and began to measure distances
- and calculate chances.
-
- Bang! One saddle empty. Bang! another one.
- Bang -- bang, and I bagged two. Well, it was nip and
- tuck with us, and I knew it. If I spent the eleventh
- shot without convincing these people, the twelfth man
- would kill me, sure. And so I never did feel so happy
- as I did when my ninth downed its man and I detected
- the wavering in the crowd which is premonitory of
- panic. An instant lost now could knock out my last
- chance. But I didn't lose it. I raised both revolvers
- and pointed them -- the halted host stood their ground
- just about one good square moment, then broke and
- fled.
-
- The day was mine. Knight-errantry was a doomed
- institution. The march of civilization was begun.
- How did I feel? Ah, you never could imagine it.
-
- And Brer Merlin? His stock was flat again. Some-
- how, every time the magic of fol-de-rol tried conclu-
- sions with the magic of science, the magic of fol-de-rol
- got left.
-
-
- CHAPTER XL.
- THREE YEARS LATER
-
- WHEN I broke the back of knight-errantry that
- time, I no longer felt obliged to work in secret.
- So, the very next day I exposed my hidden schools,
- my mines, and my vast system of clandestine factories
- and workshops to an astonished world. That is to
- say, I exposed the nineteenth century to the inspec-
- tion of the sixth.
-
- Well, it is always a good plan to follow up an
- advantage promptly. The knights were temporarily
- down, but if I would keep them so I must just simply
- paralyze them -- nothing short of that would answer.
- You see, I was "bluffing" that last time in the field;
- it would be natural for them to work around to that
- conclusion, if I gave them a chance. So I must not
- give them time; and I didn't.
-
- I renewed my challenge, engraved it on brass, posted
- it up where any priest could read it to them, and also
- kept it standing in the advertising columns of the
- paper.
-
- I not only renewed it, but added to its proportions.
- I said, name the day, and I would take fifty assistants
- and stand up AGAINST THE MASSED CHIVALRY OF THE WHOLE
- EARTH AND DESTROY IT.
-
- I was not bluffing this time. I meant what I said;
- I could do what I promised. There wasn't any way
- to misunderstand the language of that challenge.
- Even the dullest of the chivalry perceived that this
- was a plain case of "put up, or shut up." They
- were wise and did the latter. In all the next three
- years they gave me no trouble worth mentioning.
-
- Consider the three years sped. Now look around
- on England. A happy and prosperous country, and
- strangely altered. Schools everywhere, and several
- colleges; a number of pretty good newspapers. Even
- authorship was taking a start; Sir Dinadan the Humor-
- ist was first in the field, with a volume of gray-headed
- jokes which I had been familiar with during thirteen
- centuries. If he had left out that old rancid one about
- the lecturer I wouldn't have said anything; but I
- couldn't stand that one. I suppressed the book and
- hanged the author.
-
- Slavery was dead and gone; all men were equal
- before the law; taxation had been equalized. The
- telegraph, the telephone, the phonograph, the type-
- writer, the sewing-machine, and all the thousand will-
- ing and handy servants of steam and electricity were
- working their way into favor. We had a steamboat or
- two on the Thames, we had steam warships, and the
- beginnings of a steam commercial marine; I was getting
- ready to send out an expedition to discover America.
-
- We were building several lines of railway, and our
- line from Camelot to London was already finished and
- in operation. I was shrewd enough to make all offices
- connected with the passenger service places of high
- and distinguished honor. My idea was to attract the
- chivalry and nobility, and make them useful and keep
- them out of mischief. The plan worked very well, the
- competition for the places was hot. The conductor of
- the 4.33 express was a duke; there wasn't a passenger
- conductor on the line below the degree of earl. They
- were good men, every one, but they had two defects
- which I couldn't cure, and so had to wink at: they
- wouldn't lay aside their armor, and they would "knock
- down" fare -- I mean rob the company.
-
- There was hardly a knight in all the land who wasn't
- in some useful employment. They were going from
- end to end of the country in all manner of useful
- missionary capacities; their penchant for wandering,
- and their experience in it, made them altogether the
- most effective spreaders of civilization we had. They
- went clothed in steel and equipped with sword and
- lance and battle-axe, and if they couldn't persuade a
- person to try a sewing-machine on the installment
- plan, or a melodeon, or a barbed-wire fence, or a
- prohibition journal, or any of the other thousand and
- one things they canvassed for, they removed him and
- passed on.
-
- I was very happy. Things were working steadily
- toward a secretly longed-for point. You see, I had
- two schemes in my head which were the vastest of all
- my projects. The one was to overthrow the Catholic
- Church and set up the Protestant faith on its ruins --
- not as an Established Church, but a go-as-you-please
- one; and the other project was to get a decree issued
- by and by, commanding that upon Arthur's death
- unlimited suffrage should be introduced, and given to
- men and women alike -- at any rate to all men, wise
- or unwise, and to all mothers who at middle age should
- be found to know nearly as much as their sons at
- twenty-one. Arthur was good for thirty years yet, he
- being about my own age -- that is to say, forty -- and
- I believed that in that time I could easily have the
- active part of the population of that day ready and
- eager for an event which should be the first of its kind
- in the history of the world -- a rounded and complete
- governmental revolution without bloodshed. The re-
- sult to be a republic. Well, I may as well confess,
- though I do feel ashamed when I think of it: I was
- beginning to have a base hankering to be its first presi-
- dent myself. Yes, there was more or less human
- nature in me; I found that out.
-
- Clarence was with me as concerned the revolution,
- but in a modified way. His idea was a republic, with-
- out privileged orders, but with a hereditary royal
- family at the head of it instead of an elective chief
- magistrate. He believed that no nation that had ever
- known the joy of worshiping a royal family could
- ever be robbed of it and not fade away and die of
- melancholy. I urged that kings were dangerous. He
- said, then have cats. He was sure that a royal family
- of cats would answer every purpose. They would be
- as useful as any other royal family, they would know
- as much, they would have the same virtues and the
- same treacheries, the same disposition to get up shin-
- dies with other royal cats, they would be laughably
- vain and absurd and never know it, they would be
- wholly inexpensive; finally, they would have as sound
- a divine right as any other royal house, and "Tom
- VII., or Tom XI., or Tom XIV. by the grace of God
- King," would sound as well as it would when applied
- to the ordinary royal tomcat with tights on. "And as
- a rule," said he, in his neat modern English, "the
- character of these cats would be considerably above
- the character of the average king, and this would be
- an immense moral advantage to the nation, for the
- reason that a nation always models its morals after its
- monarch's. The worship of royalty being founded in
- unreason, these graceful and harmless cats would easily
- become as sacred as any other royalties, and indeed
- more so, because it would presently be noticed that
- they hanged nobody, beheaded nobody, imprisoned
- nobody, inflicted no cruelties or injustices of any sort,
- and so must be worthy of a deeper love and reverence
- than the customary human king, and would certainly
- get it. The eyes of the whole harried world would
- soon be fixed upon this humane and gentle system,
- and royal butchers would presently begin to disappear;
- their subjects would fill the vacancies with catlings
- from our own royal house; we should become a fac-
- tory; we should supply the thrones of the world;
- within forty years all Europe would be governed by
- cats, and we should furnish the cats. The reign of
- universal peace would begin then, to end no more
- forever...... Me-e-e-yow-ow-ow-ow -- fzt! -- wow!"
-
- Hang him, I supposed he was in earnest, and was
- beginning to be persuaded by him, until he exploded
- that cat-howl and startled me almost out of my clothes.
- But he never could be in earnest. He didn't know
- what it was. He had pictured a distinct and perfectly
- rational and feasible improvement upon constitutional
- monarchy, but he was too feather-headed to know it,
- or care anything about it, either. I was going to give
- him a scolding, but Sandy came flying in at that
- moment, wild with terror, and so choked with sobs that
- for a minute she could not get her voice. I ran and
- took her in my arms, and lavished caresses upon her
- and said, beseechingly:
-
- "Speak, darling, speak! What is it?"
-
- Her head fell limp upon my bosom, and she gasped,
- almost inaudibly:
-
- "HELLO-CENTRAL!"
-
- "Quick!" I shouted to Clarence; "telephone the
- king's homeopath to come!"
-
- In two minutes I was kneeling by the child's crib,
- and Sandy was dispatching servants here, there, and
- everywhere, all over the palace. I took in the situa-
- tion almost at a glance -- membranous croup! I bent
- down and whispered:
-
- "Wake up, sweetheart! Hello-Central"
-
- She opened her soft eyes languidly, and made out
- to say:
-
- "Papa."
-
- That was a comfort. She was far from dead yet. I
- sent for preparations of sulphur, I rousted out the
- croup-kettle myself; for I don't sit down and wait for
- doctors when Sandy or the child is sick. I knew how
- to nurse both of them, and had had experience. This
- little chap had lived in my arms a good part of its
- small life, and often I could soothe away its troubles
- and get it to laugh through the tear-dews on its eye-
- lashes when even its mother couldn't.
-
- Sir Launcelot, in his richest armor, came striding
- along the great hall now on his way to the stock-
- board; he was president of the stock-board, and occu-
- pied the Siege Perilous, which he had bought of Sir
- Galahad; for the stock-board consisted of the Knights
- of the Round Table, and they used the Round Table
- for business purposes now. Seats at it were worth --
- well, you would never believe the figure, so it is no
- use to state it. Sir Launcelot was a bear, and he had
- put up a corner in one of the new lines, and was just
- getting ready to squeeze the shorts to-day; but what
- of that? He was the same old Launcelot, and when
- he glanced in as he was passing the door and found out
- that his pet was sick, that was enough for him; bulls
- and bears might fight it out their own way for all him,
- he would come right in here and stand by little Hello-
- Central for all he was worth. And that was what he
- did. He shied his helmet into the corner, and in half
- a minute he had a new wick in the alcohol lamp and
- was firing up on the croup-kettle. By this time Sandy
- had built a blanket canopy over the crib, and every-
- thing was ready.
-
- Sir Launcelot got up steam, he and I loaded up the
- kettle with unslaked lime and carbolic acid, with a
- touch of lactic acid added thereto, then filled the thing
- up with water and inserted the steam-spout under the
- canopy. Everything was ship-shape now, and we sat
- down on either side of the crib to stand our watch.
- Sandy was so grateful and so comforted that she
- charged a couple of church-wardens with willow-bark
- and sumach-tobacco for us, and told us to smoke as
- much as we pleased, it couldn't get under the canopy,
- and she was used to smoke, being the first lady in the
- land who had ever seen a cloud blown. Well, there
- couldn't be a more contented or comfortable sight
- than Sir Launcelot in his noble armor sitting in gracious
- serenity at the end of a yard of snowy church-warden.
- He was a beautiful man, a lovely man, and was just
- intended to make a wife and children happy. But, of
- course Guenever -- however, it's no use to cry over
- what's done and can't be helped.
-
- Well, he stood watch-and-watch with me, right
- straight through, for three days and nights, till the
- child was out of danger; then he took her up in his
- great arms and kissed her, with his plumes falling
- about her golden head, then laid her softly in Sandy's
- lap again and took his stately way down the vast hall,
- between the ranks of admiring men-at-arms and menials,
- and so disappeared. And no instinct warned me that
- I should never look upon him again in this world!
- Lord, what a world of heart-break it is.
-
- The doctors said we must take the child away, if we
- would coax her back to health and strength again.
- And she must have sea-air. So we took a man-of-
- war, and a suite of two hundred and sixty persons, and
- went cruising about, and after a fortnight of this we
- stepped ashore on the French coast, and the doctors
- thought it would be a good idea to make something of
- a stay there. The little king of that region offered us
- his hospitalities, and we were glad to accept. If he
- had had as many conveniences as he lacked, we should
- have been plenty comfortable enough; even as it was,
- we made out very well, in his queer old castle, by the
- help of comforts and luxuries from the ship.
-
- At the end of a month I sent the vessel home for
- fresh supplies, and for news. We expected her back
- in three or four days. She would bring me, along
- with other news, the result of a certain experiment
- which I had been starting. It was a project of mine
- to replace the tournament with something which might
- furnish an escape for the extra steam of the chivalry,
- keep those bucks entertained and out of mischief, and
- at the same time preserve the best thing in them,
- which was their hardy spirit of emulation. I had had
- a choice band of them in private training for some time,
- and the date was now arriving for their first public
- effort.
-
- This experiment was baseball. In order to give the
- thing vogue from the start, and place it out of the
- reach of criticism, I chose my nines by rank, not
- capacity. There wasn't a knight in either team who
- wasn't a sceptered sovereign. As for material of this
- sort, there was a glut of it always around Arthur.
- You couldn't throw a brick in any direction and not
- cripple a king. Of course, I couldn't get these people
- to leave off their armor; they wouldn't do that when
- they bathed. They consented to differentiate the armor
- so that a body could tell one team from the other, but
- that was the most they would do. So, one of the
- teams wore chain-mail ulsters, and the other wore plate-
- armor made of my new Bessemer steel. Their prac-
- tice in the field was the most fantastic thing I ever saw.
- Being ball-proof, they never skipped out of the way,
- but stood still and took the result; when a Bessemer
- was at the bat and a ball hit him, it would bound a
- hundred and fifty yards sometimes. And when a man
- was running, and threw himself on his stomach to slide
- to his base, it was like an iron-clad coming into port.
- At first I appointed men of no rank to act as umpires,
- but I had to discontinue that. These people were no
- easier to please than other nines. The umpire's first
- decision was usually his last; they broke him in two
- with a bat, and his friends toted him home on a
- shutter. When it was noticed that no umpire ever
- survived a game, umpiring got to be unpopular. So
- I was obliged to appoint somebody whose rank and
- lofty position under the government would protect
- him.
-
- Here are the names of the nines:
-
- BESSEMERS ULSTERS
-
- KING ARTHUR. EMPEROR LUCIUS.
- KING LOT OF LOTHIAN. KING LOGRIS.
- KING OF NORTHGALIS. KING MARHALT OF IRELAND.
- KING MARSIL. KING MORGANORE.
- KING OF LITTLE BRITAIN. KING MARK OF CORNWALL.
- KING LABOR. KING NENTRES OF GARLOT.
- KING PELLAM OF LISTENGESE. KING MELIODAS OF LIONES.
- KING BAGDEMAGUS. KING OF THE LAKE.
- KING TOLLEME LA FEINTES. THE SOWDAN OF SYRIA.
-
- Umpire -- CLARENCE.
-
- The first public game would certainly draw fifty
- thousand people; and for solid fun would be worth
- going around the world to see. Everything would be
- favorable; it was balmy and beautiful spring weather
- now, and Nature was all tailored out in her new clothes.
-
-
- CHAPTER XLI.
- THE INTERDICT
-
- HOWEVER, my attention was suddenly snatched
- from such matters; our child began to lose
- ground again, and we had to go to sitting up with her,
- her case became so serious. We couldn't bear to
- allow anybody to help in this service, so we two stood
- watch-and-watch, day in and day out. Ah, Sandy,
- what a right heart she had, how simple, and genuine,
- and good she was! She was a flawless wife and
- mother; and yet I had married her for no other par-
- ticular reasons, except that by the customs of chivalry
- she was my property until some knight should win her
- from me in the field. She had hunted Britain over for
- me; had found me at the hanging-bout outside of
- London, and had straightway resumed her old place at
- my side in the placidest way and as of right. I was a
- New Englander, and in my opinion this sort of partner-
- ship would compromise her, sooner or later. She
- couldn't see how, but I cut argument short and we
- had a wedding.
-
- Now I didn't know I was drawing a prize, yet that
- was what I did draw. Within the twelvemonth I be-
- came her worshiper; and ours was the dearest and
- perfectest comradeship that ever was. People talk
- about beautiful friendships between two persons of the
- same sex. What is the best of that sort, as compared
- with the friendship of man and wife, where the best
- impulses and highest ideals of both are the same?
- There is no place for comparison between the two
- friendships; the one is earthly, the other divine.
-
- In my dreams, along at first, I still wandered thirteen
- centuries away, and my unsatisfied spirit went calling
- and harking all up and down the unreplying vacancies
- of a vanished world. Many a time Sandy heard that
- imploring cry come from my lips in my sleep. With
- a grand magnanimity she saddled that cry of mine
- upon our child, conceiving it to be the name of some
- lost darling of mine. It touched me to tears, and it
- also nearly knocked me off my feet, too, when she
- smiled up in my face for an earned reward, and played
- her quaint and pretty surprise upon me:
-
- "The name of one who was dear to thee is here
- preserved, here made holy, and the music of it will
- abide alway in our ears. Now thou'lt kiss me, as
- knowing the name I have given the child."
-
- But I didn't know it, all the same. I hadn't an
- idea in the world; but it would have been cruel to
- confess it and spoil her pretty game; so I never let on,
- but said:
-
- "Yes, I know, sweetheart -- how dear and good it
- is of you, too! But I want to hear these lips of yours,
- which are also mine, utter it first -- then its music will
- be perfect."
-
- Pleased to the marrow, she murmured:
-
- "HELLO-CENTRAL!"
-
- I didn't laugh -- I am always thankful for that -- but
- the strain ruptured every cartilage in me, and for weeks
- afterward I could hear my bones clack when I walked.
- She never found out her mistake. The first time she
- heard that form of salute used at the telephone she was
- surprised, and not pleased; but I told her I had given
- order for it: that henceforth and forever the tele-
- phone must always be invoked with that reverent for-
- mality, in perpetual honor and remembrance of my
- lost friend and her small namesake. This was not
- true. But it answered.
-
- Well, during two weeks and a half we watched by
- the crib, and in our deep solicitude we were uncon-
- scious of any world outside of that sick-room. Then
- our reward came: the center of the universe turned the
- corner and began to mend. Grateful? It isn't the
- term. There ISN'T any term for it. You know that
- yourself, if you've watched your child through the
- Valley of the Shadow and seen it come back to life
- and sweep night out of the earth with one all-illumi-
- nating smile that you could cover with your hand.
-
- Why, we were back in this world in one instant!
- Then we looked the same startled thought into each
- other's eyes at the same moment; more than two
- weeks gone, and that ship not back yet!
-
- In another minute I appeared in the presence of my
- train. They had been steeped in troubled bodings all
- this time -- their faces showed it. I called an escort
- and we galloped five miles to a hilltop overlooking the
- sea. Where was my great commerce that so lately
- had made these glistening expanses populous and
- beautiful with its white-winged flocks? Vanished,
- every one! Not a sail, from verge to verge, not a
- smoke-bank -- just a dead and empty solitude, in place
- of all that brisk and breezy life.
-
- I went swiftly back, saying not a word to anybody.
- I told Sandy this ghastly news. We could imagine no
- explanation that would begin to explain. Had there
- been an invasion? an earthquake? a pestilence? Had
- the nation been swept out of existence? But guessing
- was profitless. I must go -- at once. I borrowed the
- king's navy -- a "ship" no bigger than a steam
- launch -- and was soon ready.
-
- The parting -- ah, yes, that was hard. As I was
- devouring the child with last kisses, it brisked up and
- jabbered out its vocabulary! -- the first time in more
- than two weeks, and it made fools of us for joy. The
- darling mispronunciations of childhood! -- dear me,
- there's no music that can touch it; and how one
- grieves when it wastes away and dissolves into correct-
- ness, knowing it will never visit his bereaved ear again.
- Well, how good it was to be able to carry that gracious
- memory away with me!
-
- I approached England the next morning, with the
- wide highway of salt water all to myself. There were
- ships in the harbor, at Dover, but they were naked as
- to sails, and there was no sign of life about them. It
- was Sunday; yet at Canterbury the streets were
- empty; strangest of all, there was not even a priest
- in sight, and no stroke of a bell fell upon my ear.
- The mournfulness of death was everywhere. I couldn't
- understand it. At last, in the further edge of that
- town I saw a small funeral procession -- just a family
- and a few friends following a coffin -- no priest; a
- funeral without bell, book, or candle; there was a
- church there close at hand, but they passed it by
- weeping, and did not enter it; I glanced up at the
- belfry, and there hung the bell, shrouded in black,
- and its tongue tied back. Now I knew! Now I
- understood the stupendous calamity that had overtaken
- England. Invasion? Invasion is a triviality to it. It
- was the INTERDICT!
-
- I asked no questions; I didn't need to ask any.
- The Church had struck; the thing for me to do was
- to get into a disguise, and go warily. One of my
- servants gave me a suit of clothes, and when we were
- safe beyond the town I put them on, and from that
- time I traveled alone; I could not risk the embarrass-
- ment of company.
-
- A miserable journey. A desolate silence everywhere.
- Even in London itself. Traffic had ceased; men did
- not talk or laugh, or go in groups, or even in couples;
- they moved aimlessly about, each man by himself,
- with his head down, and woe and terror at his heart.
- The Tower showed recent war-scars. Verily, much
- had been happening.
-
- Of course, I meant to take the train for Camelot.
- Train! Why, the station was as vacant as a cavern.
- I moved on. The journey to Camelot was a repetition
- of what I had already seen. The Monday and the
- Tuesday differed in no way from the Sunday. I
- arrived far in the night. From being the best electric-
- lighted town in the kingdom and the most like a
- recumbent sun of anything you ever saw, it was be-
- come simply a blot -- a blot upon darkness -- that is
- to say, it was darker and solider than the rest of the
- darkness, and so you could see it a little better; it
- made me feel as if maybe it was symbolical -- a sort of
- sign that the Church was going to KEEP the upper hand
- now, and snuff out all my beautiful civilization just like
- that. I found no life stirring in the somber streets. I
- groped my way with a heavy heart. The vast castle
- loomed black upon the hilltop, not a spark visible
- about it. The drawbridge was down, the great gate
- stood wide, I entered without challenge, my own heels
- making the only sound I heard -- and it was sepulchral
- enough, in those huge vacant courts.
-
-
- CHAPTER XLII.
- WAR!
-
- I FOUND Clarence alone in his quarters, drowned in
- melancholy; and in place of the electric light, he
- had reinstituted the ancient rag-lamp, and sat there in
- a grisly twilight with all curtains drawn tight. He
- sprang up and rushed for me eagerly, saying:
-
- "Oh, it's worth a billion milrays to look upon a
- live person again!"
-
- He knew me as easily as if I hadn't been disguised
- at all. Which frightened me; one may easily believe
- that.
-
- "Quick, now, tell me the meaning of this fearful
- disaster," I said. "How did it come about?"
-
- "Well, if there hadn't been any Queen Guenever, it
- wouldn't have come so early; but it would have come,
- anyway. It would have come on your own account
- by and by; by luck, it happened to come on the
- queen's."
-
- "AND Sir Launcelot's?"
-
- "Just so."
-
- "Give me the details."
-
- "I reckon you will grant that during some years
- there has been only one pair of eyes in these kingdoms
- that has not been looking steadily askance at the queen
- and Sir Launcelot --"
-
- "Yes, King Arthur's."
-
- "-- and only one heart that was without suspicion --"
-
- "Yes -- the king's; a heart that isn't capable of
- thinking evil of a friend."
-
- "Well, the king might have gone on, still happy
- and unsuspecting, to the end of his days, but for one
- of your modern improvements -- the stock-board.
- When you left, three miles of the London, Canterbury
- and Dover were ready for the rails, and also ready and
- ripe for manipulation in the stock-market. It was
- wildcat, and everybody knew it. The stock was for
- sale at a give-away. What does Sir Launcelot do,
- but --"
-
- "Yes, I know; he quietly picked up nearly all of it
- for a song; then he bought about twice as much more,
- deliverable upon call; and he was about to call when I
- left."
-
- "Very well, he did call. The boys couldn't de-
- liver. Oh, he had them -- and he just settled his grip
- and squeezed them. They were laughing in their
- sleeves over their smartness in selling stock to him at
- 15 and 16 and along there that wasn't worth 10.
- Well, when they had laughed long enough on that
- side of their mouths, they rested-up that side by shift-
- ing the laugh to the other side. That was when they
- compromised with the Invincible at 283!"
-
- "Good land!"
-
- "He skinned them alive, and they deserved it --
- anyway, the whole kingdom rejoiced. Well, among
- the flayed were Sir Agravaine and Sir Mordred,
- nephews to the king. End of the first act. Act
- second, scene first, an apartment in Carlisle castle,
- where the court had gone for a few days' hunting.
- Persons present, the whole tribe of the king's nephews.
- Mordred and Agravaine propose to call the guileless
- Arthur's attention to Guenever and Sir Launcelot. Sir
- Gawaine, Sir Gareth, and Sir Gaheris will have nothing
- to do with it. A dispute ensues, with loud talk; in
- the midst of it enter the king. Mordred and Agravaine
- spring their devastating tale upon him. TABLEAU. A
- trap is laid for Launcelot, by the king's command, and
- Sir Launcelot walks into it. He made it sufficiently
- uncomfortable for the ambushed witnesses -- to wit,
- Mordred, Agravaine, and twelve knights of lesser rank,
- for he killed every one of them but Mordred; but of
- course that couldn't straighten matters between Launce-
- lot and the king, and didn't."
-
- "Oh, dear, only one thing could result -- I see that.
- War, and the knights of the realm divided into a king's
- party and a Sir Launcelot's party."
-
- "Yes -- that was the way of it. The king sent the
- queen to the stake, proposing to purify her with fire.
- Launcelot and his knights rescued her, and in doing it
- slew certain good old friends of yours and mine -- in
- fact, some of the best we ever had; to wit, Sir Belias le
- Orgulous, Sir Segwarides, Sir Griflet le Fils de Dieu,
- Sir Brandiles, Sir Aglovale --"
-
- "Oh, you tear out my heartstrings."
-
- "-- wait, I'm not done yet -- Sir Tor, Sir Gauter,
- Sir Gillimer --"
-
- "The very best man in my subordinate nine.
- What a handy right-fielder he was!"
-
- "-- Sir Reynold's three brothers, Sir Damus, Sir
- Priamus, Sir Kay the Stranger --"
-
- "My peerless short-stop! I've seen him catch a
- daisy-cutter in his teeth. Come, I can't stand this!"
-
- "-- Sir Driant, Sir Lambegus, Sir Herminde, Sir
- Pertilope, Sir Perimones, and -- whom do you think?"
-
- "Rush! Go on."
-
- "Sir Gaheris, and Sir Gareth -- both!"
-
- "Oh, incredible! Their love for Launcelot was in-
- destructible."
-
- "Well, it was an accident. They were simply on-
- lookers; they were unarmed, and were merely there to
- witness the queen's punishment. Sir Launcelot smote
- down whoever came in the way of his blind fury, and
- he killed these without noticing who they were. Here
- is an instantaneous photograph one of our boys got of
- the battle; it's for sale on every news-stand. There
- -- the figures nearest the queen are Sir Launcelot with
- his sword up, and Sir Gareth gasping his latest breath.
- You can catch the agony in the queen's face through
- the curling smoke. It's a rattling battle-picture."
-
- "Indeed, it is. We must take good care of it; its
- historical value is incalculable. Go on."
-
- "Well, the rest of the tale is just war, pure and
- simple. Launcelot retreated to his town and castle of
- Joyous Gard, and gathered there a great following of
- knights. The king, with a great host, went there, and
- there was desperate fighting during several days, and,
- as a result, all the plain around was paved with corpses
- and cast-iron. Then the Church patched up a peace
- between Arthur and Launcelot and the queen and
- everybody -- everybody but Sir Gawaine. He was
- bitter about the slaying of his brothers, Gareth and
- Gaheris, and would not be appeased. He notified
- Launcelot to get him thence, and make swift prepara-
- tion, and look to be soon attacked. So Launcelot
- sailed to his Duchy of Guienne with his following, and
- Gawaine soon followed with an army, and he beguiled
- Arthur to go with him. Arthur left the kingdom in
- Sir Mordred's hands until you should return --"
-
- "Ah -- a king's customary wisdom!"
-
- "Yes. Sir Mordred set himself at once to work to
- make his kingship permanent. He was going to marry
- Guenever, as a first move; but she fled and shut her-
- self up in the Tower of London. Mordred attacked;
- the Bishop of Canterbury dropped down on him with
- the Interdict. The king returned; Mordred fought
- him at Dover, at Canterbury, and again at Barham
- Down. Then there was talk of peace and a composi-
- tion. Terms, Mordred to have Cornwall and Kent
- during Arthur's life, and the whole kingdom after-
- ward."
-
- "Well, upon my word! My dream of a republic to
- BE a dream, and so remain."
-
- "Yes. The two armies lay near Salisbury. Ga-
- waine -- Gawaine's head is at Dover Castle, he fell in
- the fight there -- Gawaine appeared to Arthur in a
- dream, at least his ghost did, and warned him to re-
- frain from conflict for a month, let the delay cost what
- it might. But battle was precipitated by an accident.
- Arthur had given order that if a sword was raised
- during the consultation over the proposed treaty with
- Mordred, sound the trumpet and fall on! for he had
- no confidence in Mordred. Mordred had given a
- similar order to HIS people. Well, by and by an
- adder bit a knight's heel; the knight forgot all about
- the order, and made a slash at the adder with his
- sword. Inside of half a minute those two prodigious
- hosts came together with a crash! They butchered
- away all day. Then the king -- however, we have
- started something fresh since you left -- our paper
- has."
-
- "No? What is that?"
-
- "War correspondence!"
-
- "Why, that's good."
-
- "Yes, the paper was booming right along, for the
- Interdict made no impression, got no grip, while the
- war lasted. I had war correspondents with both
- armies. I will finish that battle by reading you what
- one of the boys says:
-
- Then the king looked about him, and then was he
- ware of all his host and of all his good knights
- were left no more on live but two knights, that
- was Sir Lucan de Butlere, and his brother Sir
- Bedivere: and they were full sore wounded. Jesu
- mercy, said the king, where are all my noble
- knights becomen? Alas that ever I should see this
- doleful day. For now, said Arthur, I am come to
- mine end. But would to God that I wist where were
- that traitor Sir Mordred, that hath caused all
- this mischief. Then was King Arthur ware where Sir
- Mordred leaned upon his sword among a great heap
- of dead men. Now give me my spear, said Arthur
- unto Sir Lucan, for yonder I have espied the
- traitor that all this woe hath wrought. Sir, let
- him be, said Sir Lucan, for he is unhappy; and if
- ye pass this unhappy day, ye shall be right well
- revenged upon him. Good lord, remember ye of your
- night's dream, and what the spirit of Sir Gawaine
- told you this night, yet God of his great goodness
- hath preserved you hitherto. Therefore, for God's
- sake, my lord, leave off by this. For blessed be
- God ye have won the field: for here we be three
- on live, and with Sir Mordred is none on live.
- And if ye leave off now, this wicked day of
- destiny is past. Tide me death, betide me life,
- saith the king, now I see him yonder alone, he
- shall never escape mine hands, for at a better
- avail shall I never have him. God speed you well,
- said Sir Bedivere. Then the king gat his spear
- in both his hands, and ran toward Sir Mordred
- crying, Traitor, now is thy death day come. And
- when Sir Mordred heard Sir Arthur, he ran until
- him with his sword drawn in his hand. And then
- King Arthur smote Sir Mordred under the shield,
- with a foin of his spear throughout the body more
- than a fathom. And when Sir Mordred felt that he
- had his death's wound, he thrust himself, with
- the might that he had, up to the butt of King
- Arthur's spear. And right so he smote his father
- Arthur with his sword holden in both his hands,
- on the side of the head, that the sword pierced
- the helmet and the brain-pan, and therewithal
- Sir Mordred fell stark dead to the earth. And
- the noble Arthur fell in a swoon to the earth,
- and there he swooned oft-times
-
- "That is a good piece of war correspondence,
- Clarence; you are a first-rate newspaper man. Well
- -- is the king all right?" Did he get well?"
-
- "Poor soul, no. He is dead."
-
- I was utterly stunned; it had not seemed to me that
- any wound could be mortal to him.
-
- "And the queen, Clarence?"
-
- "She is a nun, in Almesbury."
-
- "What changes! and in such a short while. It is
- inconceivable. What next, I wonder?"
-
- "I can tell you what next."
-
- "Well?"
-
- "Stake our lives and stand by them!"
-
- "What do you mean by that?"
-
- "The Church is master now. The Interdict in-
- cluded you with Mordred; it is not to be removed
- while you remain alive. The clans are gathering. The
- Church has gathered all the knights that are left alive,
- and as soon as you are discovered we shall have busi-
- ness on our hands."
-
- "Stuff! With our deadly scientific war-material;
- with our hosts of trained --"
-
- "Save your breath -- we haven't sixty faithful left!"
-
- "What are you saying? Our schools, our colleges,
- our vast workshops, our --"
-
- "When those knights come, those establishments
- will empty themselves and go over to the enemy. Did
- you think you had educated the superstition out of
- those people?"
-
- "I certainly did think it."
-
- "Well, then, you may unthink it. They stood
- every strain easily -- until the Interdict. Since then,
- they merely put on a bold outside -- at heart they are
- quaking. Make up your mind to it -- when the armies
- come, the mask will fall."
-
- "It's hard news. We are lost. They will turn our
- own science against us."
-
- "No they won't."
-
- "Why?"
-
- "Because I and a handful of the faithful have
- blocked that game. I'll tell you what I've done, and
- what moved me to it. Smart as you are, the Church
- was smarter. It was the Church that sent you cruising
- -- through her servants, the doctors."
-
- "Clarence!"
-
- "It is the truth. I know it. Every officer of your
- ship was the Church's picked servant, and so was every
- man of the crew."
-
- "Oh, come!"
-
- "It is just as I tell you. I did not find out these
- things at once, but I found them out finally. Did you
- send me verbal information, by the commander of the
- ship, to the effect that upon his return to you, with
- supplies, you were going to leave Cadiz --"
-
- "Cadiz! I haven't been at Cadiz at all!"
-
- "-- going to leave Cadiz and cruise in distant seas
- indefinitely, for the health of your family? Did you
- send me that word?"
-
- "Of course not. I would have written, wouldn't
- I?"
-
- "Naturally. I was troubled and suspicious. When
- the commander sailed again I managed to ship a spy
- with him. I have never heard of vessel or spy since.
- I gave myself two weeks to hear from you in. Then I
- resolved to send a ship to Cadiz. There was a reason
- why I didn't."
-
- "What was that?"
-
- "Our navy had suddenly and mysteriously disap-
- peared! Also, as suddenly and as mysteriously, the
- railway and telegraph and telephone service ceased,
- the men all deserted, poles were cut down, the Church
- laid a ban upon the electric light! I had to be up
- and doing -- and straight off. Your life was safe --
- nobody in these kingdoms but Merlin would venture to
- touch such a magician as you without ten thousand
- men at his back -- I had nothing to think of but how
- to put preparations in the best trim against your
- coming. I felt safe myself -- nobody would be anxious
- to touch a pet of yours. So this is what I did. From
- our various works I selected all the men -- boys I
- mean -- whose faithfulness under whatsoever pressure
- I could swear to, and I called them together secretly
- and gave them their instructions. There are fifty-two
- of them; none younger than fourteen, and none above
- seventeen years old."
-
- "Why did you select boys?"
-
- "Because all the others were born in an atmosphere
- of superstition and reared in it. It is in their blood
- and bones. We imagined we had educated it out of
- them; they thought so, too; the Interdict woke them
- up like a thunderclap! It revealed them to themselves,
- and it revealed them to me, too. With boys it was
- different. Such as have been under our training from
- seven to ten years have had no acquaintance with the
- Church's terrors, and it was among these that I found
- my fifty-two. As a next move, I paid a private visit
- to that old cave of Merlin's -- not the small one -- the
- big one --"
-
- "Yes, the one where we secretly established our first
- great electric plant when I was projecting a miracle."
-
- "Just so. And as that miracle hadn't become
- necessary then, I thought it might be a good idea to
- utilize the plant now. I've provisioned the cave for a
- siege --"
-
- "A good idea, a first-rate idea."
-
- "I think so. I placed four of my boys there as a
- guard -- inside, and out of sight. Nobody was to be
- hurt -- while outside; but any attempt to enter -- well,
- we said just let anybody try it! Then I went out into
- the hills and uncovered and cut the secret wires which
- connected your bedroom with the wires that go to the
- dynamite deposits under all our vast factories, mills,
- workshops, magazines, etc., and about midnight I and
- my boys turned out and connected that wire with the
- cave, and nobody but you and I suspects where the
- other end of it goes to. We laid it under ground, of
- course, and it was all finished in a couple of hours or
- so. We sha'n't have to leave our fortress now when
- we want to blow up our civilization."
-
- "It was the right move -- and the natural one;
- military necessity, in the changed condition of things.
- Well, what changes HAVE come! We expected to be
- besieged in the palace some time or other, but -- how-
- ever, go on."
-
- "Next, we built a wire fence."
-
- "Wire fence?"
-
- "Yes. You dropped the hint of it yourself, two or
- three years ago."
-
- "Oh, I remember -- the time the Church tried her
- strength against us the first time, and presently thought
- it wise to wait for a hopefuler season. Well, how have
- you arranged the fence?"
-
- "I start twelve immensely strong wires -- naked, not
- insulated -- from a big dynamo in the cave -- dynamo
- with no brushes except a positive and a negative one --"
-
- "Yes, that's right."
-
- "The wires go out from the cave and fence in a
- circle of level ground a hundred yards in diameter;
- they make twelve independent fences, ten feet apart --
- that is to say, twelve circles within circles -- and their
- ends come into the cave again."
-
- "Right; go on."
-
- "The fences are fastened to heavy oaken posts only
- three feet apart, and these posts are sunk five feet in
- the ground."
-
- "That is good and strong."
-
- "Yes. The wires have no ground-connection out-
- side of the cave. They go out from the positive brush
- of the dynamo; there is a ground-connection through
- the negative brush; the other ends of the wire return
- to the cave, and each is grounded independently."
-
- "Nono, that won't do!"
-
- "Why?"
-
- "It's too expensive -- uses up force for nothing.
- You don't want any ground-connection except the one
- through the negative brush. The other end of every
- wire must be brought back into the cave and fastened
- independently, and WITHOUT any ground-connection.
- Now, then, observe the economy of it. A cavalry
- charge hurls itself against the fence; you are using no
- power, you are spending no money, for there is only
- one ground-connection till those horses come against
- the wire; the moment they touch it they form a con-
- nection with the negative brush THROUGH THE GROUND,
- and drop dead. Don't you see? -- you are using no
- energy until it is needed; your lightning is there, and
- ready, like the load in a gun; but it isn't costing you
- a cent till you touch it off. Oh, yes, the single
- ground-connection --"
-
- "Of course! I don't know how I overlooked that.
- It's not only cheaper, but it's more effectual than the
- other way, for if wires break or get tangled, no harm
- is done.
-
- "No, especially if we have a tell-tale in the cave
- and disconnect the broken wire. Well, go on. The
- gatlings?"
-
- "Yes -- that's arranged. In the center of the inner
- circle, on a spacious platform six feet high, I've
- grouped a battery of thirteen gatling guns, and pro-
- vided plenty of ammunition."
-
- "That's it. They command every approach, and
- when the Church's knights arrive, there's going to be
- music. The brow of the precipice over the cave --"
-
- "I've got a wire fence there, and a gatling. They
- won't drop any rocks down on us."
-
- "Well, and the glass-cylinder dynamite torpedoes?"
-
- "That's attended to. It's the prettiest garden that
- was ever planted. It's a belt forty feet wide, and goes
- around the outer fence -- distance between it and the
- fence one hundred yards -- kind of neutral ground that
- space is. There isn't a single square yard of that
- whole belt but is equipped with a torpedo. We laid
- them on the surface of the ground, and sprinkled a
- layer of sand over them. It's an innocent looking
- garden, but you let a man start in to hoe it once, and
- you'll see."
-
- "You tested the torpedoes?"
-
- "Well, I was going to, but --"
-
- "But what? Why, it's an immense oversight not
- to apply a --"
-
- "Test? Yes, I know; but they're all right; I laid
- a few in the public road beyond our lines and they've
- been tested."
-
- "Oh, that alters the case. Who did it?"
-
- "A Church committee."
-
- "How kind!"
-
- "Yes. They came to command us to make submis-
- sion . You see they didn't really come to test the
- torpedoes; that was merely an incident."
-
- "Did the committee make a report?"
-
- "Yes, they made one. You could have heard it a
- mile."
-
- "Unanimous?"
-
- "That was the nature of it. After that I put up
- some signs, for the protection of future committees,
- and we have had no intruders since."
-
- "Clarence, you've done a world of work, and done
- it perfectly."
-
- "We had plenty of time for it; there wasn't any
- occasion for hurry."
-
- We sat silent awhile, thinking. Then my mind was
- made up, and I said:
-
- "Yes, everything is ready; everything is shipshape,
- no detail is wanting. I know what to do now."
-
- "So do I; sit down and wait."
-
- "No, SIR! rise up and STRIKE!"
-
- "Do you mean it?"
-
- "Yes, indeed! The DEfensive isn't in my line, and
- the OFfensive is. That is, when I hold a fair hand --
- two-thirds as good a hand as the enemy. Oh, yes,
- we'll rise up and strike; that's our game."
-
- " A hundred to one you are right. When does the
- performance begin?"
-
- "NOW! We'll proclaim the Republic."
-
- "Well, that WILL precipitate things, sure enough!"
-
- "It will make them buzz, I tell you! England will
- be a hornets' nest before noon to-morrow, if the
- Church's hand hasn't lost its cunning -- and we know
- it hasn't. Now you write and I'll dictate thus:
-
- "PROCLAMATION
-
- ---
-
- "BE IT KNOWN UNTO ALL. Whereas the king having died
- and left no heir, it becomes my duty to continue the
- executive authority vested in me, until a government
- shall have been created and set in motion. The
- monarchy has lapsed, it no longer exists. By
- consequence, all political power has reverted to its
- original source, the people of the nation. With the
- monarchy, its several adjuncts died also; wherefore
- there is no longer a nobility, no longer a privileged
- class, no longer an Established Church; all men are
- become exactly equal; they are upon one common
- level, and religion is free. A REPUBLIC IS HEREBY
- PROCLAIMED, as being the natural estate of a nation
- when other authority has ceased. It is the duty of
- the British people to meet together immediately,
- and by their votes elect representatives and deliver
- into their hands the government."
-
- I signed it "The Boss," and dated it from Merlin's
- Cave. Clarence said --
-
- "Why, that tells where we are, and invites them to
- call right away."
-
- "That is the idea. We STRIKE -- by the Proclama-
- tion -- then it's their innings. Now have the thing set
- up and printed and posted, right off; that is, give the
- order; then, if you've got a couple of bicycles handy
- at the foot of the hill, ho for Merlin's Cave!"
-
- "I shall be ready in ten minutes. What a cyclone
- there is going to be to-morrow when this piece of
- paper gets to work!...... It's a pleasant old palace,
- this is; I wonder if we shall ever again -- but never
- mind about that."
-
-
- CHAPTER XLIII.
- THE BATTLE OF THE SAND BELT
-
- IN Merlin's Cave -- Clarence and I and fifty-two
- fresh, bright, well-educated, clean-minded young
- British boys. At dawn I sent an order to the factories
- and to all our great works to stop operations and re-
- move all life to a safe distance, as everything was
- going to be blown up by secret mines, "AND NO TELLING
- AT WHAT MOMENT -- THEREFORE, VACATE AT ONCE." These
- people knew me, and had confidence in my word.
- They would clear out without waiting to part their
- hair, and I could take my own time about dating the
- explosion. You couldn't hire one of them to go back
- during the century, if the explosion was still impending.
-
- We had a week of waiting. It was not dull for me,
- because I was writing all the time. During the first
- three days, I finished turning my old diary into this
- narrative form; it only required a chapter or so to
- bring it down to date. The rest of the week I took up
- in writing letters to my wife. It was always my habit
- to write to Sandy every day, whenever we were
- separate, and now I kept up the habit for love of it,
- and of her, though I couldn't do anything with the
- letters, of course, after I had written them. But it
- put in the time, you see, and was almost like talking;
- it was almost as if I was saying, "Sandy, if you and
- Hello-Central were here in the cave, instead of only
- your photographs, what good times we could have!"
- And then, you know, I could imagine the baby goo-
- gooing something out in reply, with its fists in its
- mouth and itself stretched across its mother's lap on
- its back, and she a-laughing and admiring and worship-
- ing, and now and then tickling under the baby's chin
- to set it cackling, and then maybe throwing in a word
- of answer to me herself -- and so on and so on -- well,
- don't you know, I could sit there in the cave with my
- pen, and keep it up, that way, by the hour with them.
- Why, it was almost like having us all together again.
-
- I had spies out every night, of course, to get news.
- Every report made things look more and more im-
- pressive. The hosts were gathering, gathering; down
- all the roads and paths of England the knights were
- riding, and priests rode with them, to hearten these
- original Crusaders, this being the Church's war. All
- the nobilities, big and little, were on their way, and all
- the gentry. This was all as was expected. We should
- thin out this sort of folk to such a degree that the
- people would have nothing to do but just step to the
- front with their republic and --
-
- Ah, what a donkey I was! Toward the end of the
- week I began to get this large and disenchanting fact
- through my head: that the mass of the nation had
- swung their caps and shouted for the republic for
- about one day, and there an end! The Church, the
- nobles, and the gentry then turned one grand, all-
- disapproving frown upon them and shriveled them
- into sheep! From that moment the sheep had begun
- to gather to the fold -- that is to say, the camps -- and
- offer their valueless lives and their valuable wool to the
- "righteous cause." Why, even the very men who
- had lately been slaves were in the "righteous cause,"
- and glorifying it, praying for it, sentimentally slabber-
- ing over it, just like all the other commoners. Im-
- agine such human muck as this; conceive of this
- folly!
-
- Yes, it was now "Death to the Republic!" every-
- where -- not a dissenting voice. All England was
- marching against us! Truly, this was more than I had
- bargained for.
-
- I watched my fifty-two boys narrowly; watched their
- faces, their walk, their unconscious attitudes: for all
- these are a language -- a language given us purposely
- that it may betray us in times of emergency, when we
- have secrets which we want to keep. I knew that that
- thought would keep saying itself over and over again
- in their minds and hearts, ALL ENGLAND IS MARCHING
- AGAINST US! and ever more strenuously imploring atten-
- tion with each repetition, ever more sharply realizing
- itself to their imaginations, until even in their sleep
- they would find no rest from it, but hear the vague
- and flitting creatures of the dreams say, ALL ENG-
- LAND -- ALL ENGLAND! -- IS MARCHING AGAINST YOU! I
- knew all this would happen; I knew that ultimately
- the pressure would become so great that it would
- compel utterance; therefore, I must be ready with an
- answer at that time -- an answer well chosen and tran-
- quilizing.
-
- I was right. The time came. They HAD to speak.
- Poor lads, it was pitiful to see, they were so pale, so
- worn, so troubled. At first their spokesman could
- hardly find voice or words; but he presently got both.
- This is what he said -- and he put it in the neat modern
- English taught him in my schools:
-
- "We have tried to forget what we are -- English
- boys! We have tried to put reason before sentiment,
- duty before love; our minds approve, but our hearts
- reproach us. While apparently it was only the nobility,
- only the gentry, only the twenty-five or thirty thousand
- knights left alive out of the late wars, we were of one
- mind, and undisturbed by any troubling doubt; each
- and every one of these fifty-two lads who stand here
- before you, said, 'They have chosen -- it is their
- affair.' But think! -- the matter is altered -- ALL ENG-
- LAND IS MARCHING AGAINST US! Oh, sir, consider! --
- reflect! -- these people are our people, they are bone
- of our bone, flesh of our flesh, we love them -- do not
- ask us to destroy our nation!"
-
- Well, it shows the value of looking ahead, and being
- ready for a thing when it happens. If I hadn't fore-
- seen this thing and been fixed, that boy would have
- had me! -- I couldn't have said a word. But I was
- fixed. I said:
-
- "My boys, your hearts are in the right place, you
- have thought the worthy thought, you have done the
- worthy thing. You are English boys, you will remain
- English boys, and you will keep that name unsmirched.
- Give yourselves no further concern, let your minds be
- at peace. Consider this: while all England is march-
- ing against us, who is in the van? Who, by the com-
- monest rules of war, will march in the front? Answer
- me."
-
- "The mounted host of mailed knights."
-
- "True. They are 30,000 strong. Acres deep they
- will march. Now, observe: none but THEY will ever
- strike the sand-belt! Then there will be an episode!
- Immediately after, the civilian multitude in the rear
- will retire, to meet business engagements elsewhere.
- None but nobles and gentry are knights, and NONE BUT
- THESE will remain to dance to our music after that epi-
- sode. It is absolutely true that we shall have to fight
- nobody but these thirty thousand knights. Now speak,
- and it shall be as you decide. Shall we avoid the
- battle, retire from the field?"
-
- "NO!!!"
-
- The shout was unanimous and hearty.
-
- "Are you -- are you -- well, afraid of these thirty
- thousand knights?"
-
- That joke brought out a good laugh, the boys'
- troubles vanished away, and they went gaily to their
- posts. Ah, they were a darling fifty-two! As pretty
- as girls, too.
-
- I was ready for the enemy now. Let the approach-
- ing big day come along -- it would find us on deck.
-
- The big day arrived on time. At dawn the sentry
- on watch in the corral came into the cave and reported
- a moving black mass under the horizon, and a faint
- sound which he thought to be military music. Break-
- fast was just ready; we sat down and ate it.
-
- This over, I made the boys a little speech, and then
- sent out a detail to man the battery, with Clarence in
- command of it.
-
- The sun rose presently and sent its unobstructed
- splendors over the land, and we saw a prodigious host
- moving slowly toward us, with the steady drift and
- aligned front of a wave of the sea. Nearer and nearer
- it came, and more and more sublimely imposing be-
- came its aspect; yes, all England was there, appar-
- ently. Soon we could see the innumerable banners
- fluttering, and then the sun struck the sea of armor
- and set it all aflash. Yes, it was a fine sight; I hadn't
- ever seen anything to beat it.
-
- At last we could make out details. All the front
- ranks, no telling how many acres deep, were horse-
- men -- plumed knights in armor. Suddenly we heard
- the blare of trumpets; the slow walk burst into a
- gallop, and then -- well, it was wonderful to see!
- Down swept that vast horse-shoe wave -- it approached
- the sand-belt -- my breath stood still; nearer, nearer --
- the strip of green turf beyond the yellow belt grew
- narrow -- narrower still -- became a mere ribbon in
- front of the horses -- then disappeared under their
- hoofs. Great Scott! Why, the whole front of that
- host shot into the sky with a thunder-crash, and be-
- came a whirling tempest of rags and fragments; and
- along the ground lay a thick wall of smoke that hid
- what was left of the multitude from our sight.
-
- Time for the second step in the plan of campaign!
- I touched a button, and shook the bones of England
- loose from her spine!
-
- In that explosion all our noble civilization-factories
- went up in the air and disappeared from the earth. It
- was a pity, but it was necessary. We could not afford
- to let the enemy turn our own weapons against us.
-
- Now ensued one of the dullest quarter-hours I had
- ever endured. We waited in a silent solitude enclosed
- by our circles of wire, and by a circle of heavy smoke
- outside of these. We couldn't see over the wall of
- smoke, and we couldn't see through it. But at last it
- began to shred away lazily, and by the end of another
- quarter-hour the land was clear and our curiosity was
- enabled to satisfy itself. No living creature was in
- sight! We now perceived that additions had been
- made to our defenses. The dynamite had dug a ditch
- more than a hundred feet wide, all around us, and cast
- up an embankment some twenty-five feet high on both
- borders of it. As to destruction of life, it was amazing.
- Moreover, it was beyond estimate. Of course, we
- could not COUNT the dead, because they did not exist
- as individuals, but merely as homogeneous protoplasm,
- with alloys of iron and buttons.
-
- No life was in sight, but necessarily there must have
- been some wounded in the rear ranks, who were carried
- off the field under cover of the wall of smoke; there
- would be sickness among the others -- there always is,
- after an episode like that. But there would be no
- reinforcements; this was the last stand of the chivalry
- of England; it was all that was left of the order, after
- the recent annihilating wars. So I felt quite safe in
- believing that the utmost force that could for the future
- be brought against us would be but small; that is, of
- knights. I therefore issued a congratulatory proclama-
- tion to my army in these words:
-
- SOLDIERS, CHAMPIONS OF HUMAN LIBERTY AND EQUALITY:
- Your General congratulates you! In the pride of his
- strength and the vanity of his renown, an arrogant
- enemy came against you. You were ready. The conflict
- was brief; on your side, glorious. This mighty
- victory, having been achieved utterly without loss,
- stands without example in history. So long as the
- planets shall continue to move in their orbits, the
- BATTLE OF THE SAND-BELT will not perish out of the
- memories of men.
-
- THE BOSS.
-
- I read it well, and the applause I got was very grati-
- fying to me. I then wound up with these remarks:
-
- "The war with the English nation, as a nation, is at
- an end. The nation has retired from the field and the
- war. Before it can be persuaded to return, war will
- have ceased. This campaign is the only one that is
- going to be fought. It will be brief -- the briefest in
- history. Also the most destructive to life, considered
- from the standpoint of proportion of casualties to
- numbers engaged. We are done with the nation;
- henceforth we deal only with the knights. English
- knights can be killed, but they cannot be conquered.
- We know what is before us. While one of these men
- remains alive, our task is not finished, the war is not
- ended. We will kill them all." [Loud and long con-
- tinued applause.]
-
- I picketed the great embankments thrown up around
- our lines by the dynamite explosion -- merely a look-
- out of a couple of boys to announce the enemy when
- he should appear again.
-
- Next, I sent an engineer and forty men to a point
- just beyond our lines on the south, to turn a mountain
- brook that was there, and bring it within our lines and
- under our command, arranging it in such a way that I
- could make instant use of it in an emergency. The
- forty men were divided into two shifts of twenty each,
- and were to relieve each other every two hours. In
- ten hours the work was accomplished.
-
- It was nightfall now, and I withdrew my pickets.
- The one who had had the northern outlook reported a
- camp in sight, but visible with the glass only. He also
- reported that a few knights had been feeling their way
- toward us, and had driven some cattle across our lines,
- but that the knights themselves had not come very
- near. That was what I had been expecting. They
- were feeling us, you see; they wanted to know if we
- were going to play that red terror on them again.
- They would grow bolder in the night, perhaps. I be-
- lieved I knew what project they would attempt, because
- it was plainly the thing I would attempt myself if I
- were in their places and as ignorant as they were. I
- mentioned it to Clarence.
-
- "I think you are right," said he; "it is the obvious
- thing for them to try."
-
- "Well, then," I said, "if they do it they are
- doomed.
-
- "Certainly."
-
- They won't have the slightest show in the world."
-
- "Of course they won't."
-
- "It's dreadful, Clarence. It seems an awful pity."
-
- The thing disturbed me so that I couldn't get any
- peace of mind.for thinking of it and worrying over it.
- So, at last, to quiet my conscience, I framed this
- message to the knights:
-
- TO THE HONORABLE THE COMMANDER OF THE INSURGENT
- CHIVALRY OF ENGLAND: YOU fight in vain. We know
- your strength -- if one may call it by that name.
- We know that at the utmost you cannot bring
- against us above five and twenty thousand knights.
- Therefore, you have no chance -- none whatever.
- Reflect: we are well equipped, well fortified, we
- number 54. Fifty-four what? Men? No, MINDS -- the
- capablest in the world; a force against which
- mere animal might may no more hope to prevail than
- may the idle waves of the sea hope to prevail
- against the granite barriers of England. Be advised.
- We offer you your lives; for the sake of your
- families, do not reject the gift. We offer you
- this chance, and it is the last: throw down your
- arms; surrender unconditionally to the Republic,
- and all will be forgiven.
-
- (Signed) THE BOSS.
-
- I read it to Clarence, and said I proposed to send it
- by a flag of truce. He laughed the sarcastic laugh he
- was born with, and said:
-
- "Somehow it seems impossible for you to ever fully
- realize what these nobilities are. Now let us save a
- little time and trouble. Consider me the commander
- of the knights yonder. Now, then, you are the flag
- of truce; approach and deliver me your message, and
- I will give you your answer."
-
- I humored the idea. I came forward under an
- imaginary guard of the enemy's soldiers, produced my
- paper, and read it through. For answer, Clarence
- struck the paper out of my hand, pursed up a scorn-
- ful lip and said with lofty disdain:
-
- "Dismember me this animal, and return him in a
- basket to the base-born knave who sent him; other
- answer have I none!"
-
- How empty is theory in presence of fact! And this
- was just fact, and nothing else. It was the thing that
- would have happened, there was no getting around
- that. I tore up the paper and granted my mistimed
- sentimentalities a permanent rest.
-
- Then, to business. I tested the electric signals from
- the gatling platform to the cave, and made sure that
- they were all right; I tested and retested those which
- commanded the fences -- these were signals whereby I
- could break and renew the electric current in each
- fence independently of the others at will. I placed
- the brook-connection under the guard and authority of
- three of my best boys, who would alternate in two-
- hour watches all night and promptly obey my signal,
- if I should have occasion to give it -- three revolver-
- shots in quick succession. Sentry-duty was discarded
- for the night, and the corral left empty of life; I
- ordered that quiet be maintained in the cave, and the
- electric lights turned down to a glimmer.
-
- As soon as it was good and dark, I shut off the
- current from all the fences, and then groped my way
- out to the embankment bordering our side of the great
- dynamite ditch. I crept to the top of it and lay there
- on the slant of the muck to watch. But it was too
- dark to see anything. As for sounds, there were none.
- The stillness was deathlike. True, there were the
- usual night-sounds of the country -- the whir of night-
- birds, the buzzing of insects, the barking of distant
- dogs, the mellow lowing of far-off kine -- but these
- didn't seem to break the stillness, they only intensified
- it, and added a grewsome melancholy to it into the
- bargain.
-
- I presently gave up looking, the night shut down so
- black, but I kept my ears strained to catch the least
- suspicious sound, for I judged I had only to wait, and
- I shouldn't be disappointed. However, I had to wait
- a long time. At last I caught what you may call in
- distinct glimpses of soundQdulled metallic sound. I
- pricked up my ears, then, and held my breath, for this
- was the sort of thing I had been waiting for. This
- sound thickened, and approached -- from toward the
- north. Presently, I heard it at my own level -- the
- ridge-top of the opposite embankment, a hundred feet
- or more away. Then I seemed to see a row of black
- dots appear along that ridge -- human heads? I
- couldn't tell; it mightn't be anything at all; you
- can't depend on your eyes when your imagination is
- out of focus. However, the question was soon settled.
- I heard that metallic noise descending into the great
- ditch. It augmented fast, it spread all along, and it
- unmistakably furnished me this fact: an armed host
- was taking up its quarters in the ditch. Yes, these
- people were arranging a little surprise party for us.
- We could expect entertainment about dawn, possibly
- earlier.
-
- I groped my way back to the corral now; I had
- seen enough. I went to the platform and signaled to
- turn the current on to the two inner fences. Then I
- went into the cave, and found everything satisfactory
- there -- nobody awake but the working-watch. I woke
- Clarence and told him the great ditch was filling up
- with men, and that I believed all the knights were
- coming for us in a body. It was my notion that as
- soon as dawn approached we could expect the ditch's
- ambuscaded thousands to swarm up over the embank-
- ment and make an assault, and be followed immediately
- by the rest of their army.
-
- Clarence said:
-
- "They will be wanting to send a scout or two in the
- dark to make preliminary observations. Why not take
- the lightning off the outer fences, and give them a
- chance?"
-
- "I've already done it, Clarence. Did you ever
- know me to be inhospitable?"
-
- "No, you are a good heart. I want to go and --"
-
- "Be a reception committee? I will go, too."
-
- We crossed the corral and lay down together between
- the two inside fences. Even the dim light of the cave
- had disordered our eyesight somewhat, but the focus
- straightway began to regulate itself and soon it was ad-
- justed for present circumstances. We had had to feel
- our way before, but we could make out to see the
- fence posts now. We started a whispered conversa-
- tion, but suddenly Clarence broke off and said:
-
- "What is that?"
-
- "What is what?"
-
- "That thing yonder."
-
- "What thing -- where?"
-
- "There beyond you a little piece -- dark some-
- thing -- a dull shape of some kind -- against the second
- fence."
-
- I gazed and he gazed. I said:
-
- "Could it be a man, Clarence?"
-
- "No, I think not. If you notice, it looks a lit --
- why, it IS a man! -- leaning on the fence."
-
- "I certainly believe it is; let us go and see."
-
- We crept along on our hands and knees until we
- were pretty close, and then looked up. Yes, it was a
- man -- a dim great figure in armor, standing erect,
- with both hands on the upper wire -- and, of course,
- there was a smell of burning flesh. Poor fellow, dead
- as a door-nail, and never knew what hurt him. He
- stood there like a statue -- no motion about him, ex-
- cept that his plumes swished about a little in the night
- wind. We rose up and looked in through the bars of
- his visor, but couldn't make out whether we knew him
- or not -- features too dim and shadowed.
-
- We heard muffled sounds approaching, and we sank
- down to the ground where we were. We made out
- another knight vaguely; he was coming very stealthily,
- and feeling his way. He was near enough now for us
- to see him put out a hand, find an upper wire, then
- bend and step under it and over the lower one. Now
- he arrived at the first knight -- and started slightly
- when he discovered him. He stood a moment -- no
- doubt wondering why the other one didn't move on;
- then he said, in a low voice, "Why dreamest thou
- here, good Sir Mar --" then he laid his hand on the
- corpse's shoulder -- and just uttered a little soft moan
- and sunk down dead. Killed by a dead man, you
- see -- killed by a dead friend, in fact. There was
- something awful about it.
-
- These early birds came scattering along after each
- other, about one every five minutes in our vicinity,
- during half an hour. They brought no armor of
- offense but their swords; as a rule, they carried the
- sword ready in the hand, and put it forward and found
- the wires with it. We would now and then see a blue
- spark when the knight that caused it was so far away
- as to be invisible to us; but we knew what had hap-
- pened, all the same; poor fellow, he had touched a
- charged wire with his sword and been elected. We
- had brief intervals of grim stillness, interrupted with
- piteous regularity by the clash made by the falling of
- an iron-clad; and this sort of thing was going on, right
- along, and was very creepy there in the dark and
- lonesomeness.
-
- We concluded to make a tour between the inner
- fences. We elected to walk upright, for convenience's
- sake; we argued that if discerned, we should be taken
- for friends rather than enemies, and in any case we
- should be out of reach of swords, and these gentry did
- not seem to have any spears along. Well, it was a
- curious trip. Everywhere dead men were lying out-
- side the second fence -- not plainly visible, but still
- visible; and we counted fifteen of those pathetic
- statues -- dead knights standing with their hands on
- the upper wire.
-
- One thing seemed to be sufficiently demonstrated:
- our current was so tremendous that it killed before the
- victim could cry out. Pretty soon we detected a
- muffled and heavy sound, and next moment we guessed
- what it was. It was a surprise in force coming!
- whispered Clarence to go and wake the army, and
- notify it to wait in silence in the cave for further orders.
- He was soon back, and we stood by the inner fence
- and watched the silent lightning do its awful work
- upon that swarming host. One could make out but
- little of detail; but he could note that a black mass
- was piling itself up beyond the second fence. That
- swelling bulk was dead men! Our camp was enclosed
- with a solid wall of the dead -- a bulwark, a breast-
- work, of corpses, you may say. One terrible thing
- about this thing was the absence of human voices;
- there were no cheers, no war cries; being intent upon
- a surprise, these men moved as noiselessly as they
- could; and always when the front rank was near
- enough to their goal to make it proper for them to
- begin to get a shout ready, of course they struck the
- fatal line and went down without testifying.
-
- I sent a current through the third fence now; and
- almost immediately through the fourth and fifth, so
- quickly were the gaps filled up. I believed the time
- was come now for my climax; I believed that that
- whole army was in our trap. Anyway, it was high
- time to find out. So I touched a button and set fifty
- electric suns aflame on the top of our precipice.
-
- Land, what a sight! We were enclosed in three
- walls of dead men! All the other fences were pretty
- nearly filled with the living, who were stealthily work-
- ing their way forward through the wires. The sudden
- glare paralyzed this host, petrified them, you may say,
- with astonishment; there was just one instant for me
- to utilize their immobility in, and I didn't lose the
- chance. You see, in another instant they would have
- recovered their faculties, then they'd have burst into a
- cheer and made a rush, and my wires would have gone
- down before it; but that lost instant lost them their
- opportunity forever; while even that slight fragment of
- time was still unspent, I shot the current through all
- the fences and struck the whole host dead in their
- tracks! THERE was a groan you could HEAR! It voiced
- the death-pang of eleven thousand men. It swelled
- out on the night with awful pathos.
-
- A glance showed that the rest of the enemy -- per-
- haps ten thousand strong -- were between us and the
- encircling ditch, and pressing forward to the assault.
- Consequently we had them ALL! and had them past
- help. Time for the last act of the tragedy. I fired the
- three appointed revolver shots -- which meant:
-
- "Turn on the water!"
-
- There was a sudden rush and roar, and in a minute
- the mountain brook was raging through the big ditch
- and creating a river a hundred feet wide and twenty-
- five deep.
-
- "Stand to your guns, men! Open fire!"
-
- The thirteen gatlings began to vomit death into the
- fated ten thousand. They halted, they stood their
- ground a moment against that withering deluge of fire,
- then they broke, faced about and swept toward the
- ditch like chaff before a gale. A full fourth part of
- their force never reached the top of the lofty embank-
- ment; the three-fourths reached it and plunged over --
- to death by drowning.
-
- Within ten short minutes after we had opened fire,
- armed resistance was totally annihilated, the campaign
- was ended, we fifty-four were masters of England.
- Twenty-five thousand men lay dead around us.
-
- But how treacherous is fortune! In a little while --
- say an hour -- happened a thing, by my own fault, which
- -- but I have no heart to write that. Let the record
- end here.
-
-
- CHAPTER XLIV.
- A POSTSCRIPT BY CLARENCE
-
- I, CLARENCE, must write it for him. He proposed
- that we two go out and see if any help could be
- accorded the wounded. I was strenuous against the
- project. I said that if there were many, we could do
- but little for them; and it would not be wise for us to
- trust ourselves among them, anyway. But he could
- seldom be turned from a purpose once formed; so we
- shut off the electric current from the fences, took an
- escort along, climbed over the enclosing ramparts of
- dead knights, and moved out upon the field. The first
- wounded mall who appealed for help was sitting with
- his back against a dead comrade. When The Boss
- bent over him and spoke to him, the man recognized
- him and stabbed him. That knight was Sir Meliag-
- raunce, as I found out by tearing off his helmet. He
- will not ask for help any more.
-
- We carried The Boss to the cave and gave his
- wound, which was not very serious, the best care we
- could. In this service we had the help of Merlin,
- though we did not know it. He was disguised as a
- woman, and appeared to be a simple old peasant good-
- wife. In this disguise, with brown-stained face and
- smooth shaven, he had appeared a few days after The
- Boss was hurt and offered to cook for us, saying her
- people had gone off to join certain new camps which
- the enemy were forming, and that she was starving.
- The Boss had been getting along very well, and had
- amused himself with finishing up his record.
-
- We were glad to have this woman, for we were short
- handed. We were in a trap, you see -- a trap of our
- own making. If we stayed where we were, our dead
- would kill us; if we moved out of our defenses, we
- should no longer be invincible. We had conquered;
- in turn we were conquered. The Boss recognized
- this; we all recognized it. If we could go to one of
- those new camps and patch up some kind of terms
- with the enemy -- yes, but The Boss could not go, and
- neither could I, for I was among the first that were
- made sick by the poisonous air bred by those dead
- thousands. Others were taken down, and still others.
- To-morrow --
-
- TO-MORROW. It is here. And with it the end.
- About midnight I awoke, and saw that hag making
- curious passes in the air about The Boss's head and
- face, and wondered what it meant. Everybody but
- the dynamo-watch lay steeped in sleep; there was no
- sound. The woman ceased from her mysterious fool-
- ery, and started tip-toeing toward the door. I called
- out:
-
- "Stop! What have you been doing?"
-
- She halted, and said with an accent of malicious
- satisfaction:
-
- "Ye were conquerors; ye are conquered! These
- others are perishing -- you also. Ye shall all die in
- this place -- every one -- except HIM. He sleepeth
- now -- and shall sleep thirteen centuries. I am
- Merlin!"
-
- Then such a delirium of silly laughter overtook him
- that he reeled about like a drunken man, and presently
- fetched up against one of our wires. His mouth is
- spread open yet; apparently he is still laughing. I
- suppose the face will retain that petrified laugh until
- the corpse turns to dust.
-
- The Boss has never stirred -- sleeps like a stone. If
- he does not wake to-day we shall understand what
- kind of a sleep it is, and his body will then be borne
- to a place in one of the remote recesses of the cave
- where none will ever find it to desecrate it. As for
- the rest of us -- well, it is agreed that if any one of us
- ever escapes alive from this place, he will write the
- fact here, and loyally hide this Manuscript with The
- Boss, our dear good chief, whose property it is, be he
- alive or dead.
-
- THE END OF THE MANUSCRIPT
-
-
- FINAL P.S. BY M.T.
-
- THE dawn was come when I laid the Manuscript
- aside. The rain had almost ceased, the world
- was gray and sad, the exhausted storm was sighing
- and sobbing itself to rest. I went to the stranger's
- room, and listened at his door, which was slightly ajar.
- I could hear his voice, and so I knocked. There was
- no answer, but I still heard the voice. I peeped in.
- The man lay on his back in bed, talking brokenly but
- with spirit, and punctuating with his arms, which he
- thrashed about, restlessly, as sick people do in de-
- lirium. I slipped in softly and bent over him. His
- mutterings and ejaculations went on. I spoke -- merely
- a word, to call his attention. His glassy eyes and his
- ashy face were alight in an instant with pleasure, grati-
- tude, gladness, welcome:
-
- "Oh, Sandy, you are come at last -- how I have
- longed for you! Sit by me -- do not leave me --
- never leave me again, Sandy, never again. Where is
- your hand? -- give it me, dear, let me hold it -- there
- -- now all is well, all is peace, and I am happy again --
- WE are happy again, isn't it so, Sandy? You are so
- dim, so vague, you are but a mist, a cloud, but you
- are HERE, and that is blessedness sufficient; and I have
- your hand; don't take it away -- it is for only a little
- while, I shall not require it long...... Was that the
- child?...... Hello-Central!...... she doesn't answer.
- Asleep, perhaps? Bring her when she wakes, and let
- me touch her hands, her face, her hair, and tell her
- good-bye...... Sandy! Yes, you are there. I
- lost myself a moment, and I thought you were
- gone...... Have I been sick long? It must be so;
- it seems months to me. And such dreams! such
- strange and awful dreams, Sandy! Dreams that were
- as real as reality -- delirium, of course, but SO real!
- Why, I thought the king was dead, I thought you
- were in Gaul and couldn't get home, I thought there
- was a revolution; in the fantastic frenzy of these
- dreams, I thought that Clarence and I and a hand-
- ful of my cadets fought and exterminated the whole
- chivalry of England! But even that was not the
- strangest. I seemed to be a creature out of a remote
- unborn age, centuries hence, and even THAT was as real
- as the rest! Yes, I seemed to have flown back out of
- that age into this of ours, and then forward to it again,
- and was set down, a stranger and forlorn in that strange
- England, with an abyss of thirteen centuries yawning
- between me and you! between me and my home and
- my friends! between me and all that is dear to me, all
- that could make life worth the living! It was awful --
- awfuler than you can ever imagine, Sandy. Ah,
- watch by me, Sandy -- stay by me every moment --
- DON'T let me go out of my mind again; death is noth-
- ing, let it come, but not with those dreams, not with
- the torture of those hideous dreams -- I cannot endure
- THAT again...... Sandy?......"
-
- He lay muttering incoherently some little time; then
- for a time he lay silent, and apparently sinking away
- toward death. Presently his fingers began to pick
- busily at the coverlet, and by that sign I knew that his
- end was at hand with the first suggestion of the
- death-rattle in his throat he started up slightly, and
- seemed to listen: then he said:
-
- "A bugle?...... It is the king! The drawbridge,
- there! Man the battlements! -- turn out the --"
-
- He was getting up his last "effect"; but he never
- finished it.
-
-
- End of the Project Gutenberg [Wiretap] Edition
- of A Connecticut Yankee In King Arthur's Court
-
-
-
-
-